of_o christ_n hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v rule_v thereby_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o stay_n of_o truth_n so_o call_v because_o that_o where_o so_o ever_o the_o church_n be_v either_o visible_a or_o invisible_a there_o be_v the_o truth_n saint_n paul_n by_o this_o title_n do_v admonish_v pastor_n and_o preacher_n how_o great_a a_o burden_n and_o charge_n they_o sustain_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n can_v not_o be_v continue_v in_o the_o world_n but_o by_o their_o ministry_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o stay_n of_o truth_n this_o their_o duty_n true_a preacher_n consider_v be_v diligent_a in_o their_o calling_n to_o preach_v the_o truth_n as_o our_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o stay_n of_o truth_n so_o be_v she_o also_o the_o house_n of_o truth_n which_o know_v nothing_o but_o he_o that_o be_v the_o truth_n itself_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o most_o holy_a scripture_n in_o which_o this_o truth_n be_v sign_v and_o testify_v we_o require_v you_o to_o believe_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n only_o and_o immediate_o again_o to_o the_o contrary_a we_o require_v you_o not_o to_o believe_v any_o one_o company_n of_o man_n more_o than_o a_o other_o ar._n 82._o 81._o 93._o 99_o 62._o 77._o 100_o 108._o 62._o this_o contradiction_n be_v easy_o reconcile_v the_o true_a church_n may_v err_v but_o not_o in_o any_o point_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o everlasting_a salvation_n we_o require_v man_n to_o believe_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n only_o not_o for_o the_o company_n but_o for_o the_o truth_n 34_o the_o error_n of_o purgatory_n and_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a be_v continue_v from_o a_o corrupt_a state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n unto_o a_o plain_a depart_v away_o into_o the_o church_n of_o antichrist_n contra_fw-la the_o true_a and_o only_a church_n of_o god_n be_v so_o guide_v by_o god_n spirit_n and_o direct_v by_o his_o word_n that_o she_o can_v not_o induce_v any_o damnable_a error_n to_o conâânââ_n no_o nor_o suffer_v any_o man_n damnable_o abuse_v her_o religion_n without_o open_a reprehension_n and_o yet_o purgatory_n etc._n etc._n come_v in_o with_o silence_n the_o error_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o damnable_a while_o it_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o church_n of_o antichrist_n by_o derogate_a full_a satisfaction_n from_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v make_v it_o damnable_a 35_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n a_o judgement_n to_o discern_v true_a writing_n from_o counterfeit_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o infallible_a verity_n from_o the_o write_n of_o man_n which_o may_v err_v she_o have_v commend_v the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v believe_v of_o all_o true_a christian_n we_o persuade_v we_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n book_n because_o we_o have_v most_o steadfast_a assurance_n of_o god_n spirit_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o it_o with_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o all_o age_n ar._n 5._o 4._o 9_o contra_fw-la all_o other_o writing_n be_v in_o better_a case_n than_o the_o scripture_n be_v with_o you_o for_o other_o writing_n may_v be_v count_v the_o work_n of_o their_o author_n without_o your_o censure_n the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v not_o be_v count_v the_o word_n of_o god_n except_o you_o listen_v so_o to_o allow_v it_o other_o writing_n be_v of_o credit_n according_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o writer_n the_o holy_a scripture_n with_o you_o have_v not_o credit_n according_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n the_o author_n of_o they_o but_o according_a to_o your_o determination_n pur._n 219._o here_o be_v no_o show_n of_o contradiction_n but_o a_o wretched_a beg_n of_o the_o principle_n that_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ._n of_o such_o contradiction_n you_o may_v make_v not_o 50_o but_o 500000._o 36_o those_o that_o by_o true_a christian_n have_v be_v call_v and_o count_v for_o heretic_n have_v prove_v so_o in_o deed_n ar._n 65._o contra_fw-la this_o demand_n have_v a_o false_a principle_n that_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o christian_a man_n only_o it_o be_v not_o in_o doctor_n allens_n principle_n stay_v in_o all_o trouble_n and_o tempest_n the_o first_o proposition_n be_v a_o ironical_a imitation_n of_o allens_n absurd_a proposition_n and_o not_o a_o absolute_a assertion_n of_o i_o 37_o and_o therefore_o the_o papist_n be_v call_v and_o count_v heretic_n of_o true_a christian_n that_o be_v of_o the_o protestant_n without_o doubt_n be_v heretic_n in_o deed_n ar_n 65._o contra._n he_o be_v a_o foolish_a sophister_n that_o reason_v from_o name_n to_o thing_n as_o you_o do_v most_o vain_o and_o childish_o ar._n 66._o the_o former_a proposition_n be_v the_o conclusion_n which_o i_o retort_v upon_o allens_n principle_n that_o whosoever_o by_o true_a christian_n be_v call_v heretic_n do_v prove_v so_o in_o deed_n 38_o there_o be_v never_o heresy_n but_o there_o be_v as_o great_a doubt_n of_o the_o church_n as_o of_o the_o matter_n in_o question_n ar._n 86._o contra_fw-la augustine_n argument_n of_o the_o public_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n take_v no_o hold_n of_o the_o pelagian_n by_o force_n of_o truth_n that_o be_v in_o it_o but_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n and_o grant_n of_o that_o prayer_n to_o be_v godly_a and_o they_o to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n that_o so_o pray_v but_o now_o the_o controversy_n be_v not_o only_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o doctrine_n but_o of_o the_o church_n itself_o also_o the_o donatist_n challenge_v the_o church_n to_o themselves_o pur._n 367._o here_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o any_o shadow_n of_o contradiction_n for_o in_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o donatist_n the_o chief_a controversy_n be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o for_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n they_o use_v it_o themselves_o as_o well_o as_o the_o true_a catholic_n out_o of_o which_o prayer_n augustine_n gather_v a_o argument_n against_o they_o 39_o but_o for_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o christian_n religion_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o be_v real_a presence_n etc._n etc._n the_o most_o approve_a writer_n be_v utter_o against_o you_o and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v of_o your_o church_n contra_fw-la but_o the_o lutheran_n and_o zwinglians_n as_o it_o please_v you_o to_o call_v they_o be_v of_o one_o true_a church_n although_o they_o differ_v in_o one_o opinion_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n the_o one_o assirm_v a_o real_a presence_n the_o other_o deny_v it_o the_o contradiction_n be_v easy_o avoid_v by_o show_v that_o the_o real_a presence_n among_o a_o number_n of_o thing_n in_o that_o place_n rehearse_v may_v be_v one_o chief_a point_n of_o religion_n and_o yet_o not_o a_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o i_o say_v the_o ancient_a father_n agree_v with_o we_o in_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o see_v the_o lutheran_n hold_v with_o we_o the_o dissent_n in_o one_o chief_a point_n of_o religion_n can_v not_o dissever_v they_o from_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o they_o dissent_v not_o unto_o idolatry_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v and_o where_o bristol_n slander_v i_o to_o say_v that_o i_o count_v the_o error_n of_o some_o of_o that_o latter_a sort_n of_o old_a father_n in_o honour_v relic_n invocation_n of_o saint_n merit_n tradition_n unwritten_a verity_n image_n of_o the_o cross_n to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o foundation_n he_o be_v able_a to_o show_v no_o place_n where_o i_o so_o affirm_v and_o albeit_o they_o do_v so_o earnest_o maintain_v some_o of_o those_o error_n that_o they_o condemn_v by_o their_o private_a censure_n the_o contrary_a truth_n for_o heresy_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o they_o be_v heretic_n for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o hold_v a_o error_n earnest_o a_o other_o to_o hold_v it_o obstinate_o so_o that_o he_o be_v condemn_v of_o his_o own_o conscience_n when_o he_o will_v not_o yield_v to_o the_o manifest_a truth_n plam_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 40_o we_o know_v that_o luther_n do_v not_o obstinate_o and_o malicious_o err_v in_o any_o article_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o substance_n of_o religion_n luther_n caluine_n and_o bucer_n shall_v come_v with_o christ_n to_o judge_v the_o world_n as_o for_o illyrian_n if_o you_o call_v they_o of_o flaccius_n illyricus_n they_o be_v lutheran_n in_o opinion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o differ_v only_o in_o ceremony_n which_o can_v not_o divide_v they_o from_o the_o faith_n ar._n 10._o 61._o pur._n 403._o contra_fw-la what_o flaccius_n or_o any_o such_o as_o he_o be_v have_v say_v neither_o do_v i_o know_v neither_o do_v i_o regard_v let_v they_o answer_v for_o themselves_o but_o whereas_o you_o charge_v m._n
be_v damn_v for_o ever_o etc._n etc._n which_o he_o say_v also_o shall_v be_v my_o reply_n but_o when_o bristol_n say_v that_o christ_n bodily_a death_n without_o any_o suffering_n of_o his_o soul_n be_v the_o full_a redemption_n of_o the_o world_n he_o make_v his_o torment_n of_o mind_n whereof_o he_o complain_v that_o his_o soul_n be_v heavy_a unto_o death_n which_o make_v he_o to_o sweat_v blood_n before_o his_o body_n be_v touch_v to_o be_v of_o no_o force_n except_o it_o be_v to_o argue_v great_a imbecility_n of_o christ_n who_o fear_v so_o much_o bodylie_a death_n that_o many_o of_o his_o servant_n have_v joyful_o embrace_v and_o that_o strange_a cry_n and_o tear_n with_o which_o he_o utter_v his_o prayer_n on_o the_o cross_n and_o that_o most_o lamentable_a complaint_n that_o god_n have_v forsake_v he_o be_v for_o nothing_o but_o for_o that_o he_o be_v not_o deliver_v from_o the_o cross_n as_o bristol_n write_v it_o be_v too_o much_o injurious_a to_o his_o most_o bitter_a passion_n to_o imagine_v and_o therefore_o we_o must_v needs_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o suffer_v more_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n who_o justice_n he_o be_v to_o satisfy_v than_o he_o suffer_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n and_o so_o the_o question_n that_o bristol_n propound_v to_o i_o be_v answer_v why_o descendit_fw-la ad_fw-la inferos_fw-la come_v after_o sepultus_fw-la because_o the_o order_n of_o the_o symbol_n be_v first_o to_o show_v what_o suffer_v before_o man_n and_o then_o what_o hesuffer_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n as_o for_o the_o blasphemy_n of_o theodorus_n mopsevestenus_fw-la that_o christ_n have_v inclination_n to_o sin_n etc._n etc._n there_o be_v no_o more_o reason_n why_o bristol_n shall_v charge_v we_o with_o it_o then_o with_o those_o other_o blasphemy_n that_o christ_n do_v despair_v in_o god_n or_o blaspheme_v god_n or_o commit_v some_o other_o sin_n against_o god_n for_o our_o redemption_n which_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v maintain_v of_o some_o caluiniste_n for_o which_o detestable_a slander_n if_o he_o have_v no_o better_a ground_n than_o he_o show_v let_v he_o remember_v that_o the_o mouth_n which_o lie_v kill_v the_o soul_n i_o will_v spare_v to_o amplify_v though_o i_o lack_v no_o matter_n albeit_o that_o bristol_n feign_v monster_n of_o slander_n as_o jupiters_n giant_n &_o then_o cast_v they_o down_o with_o thunderbolt_n deride_v myknowledge_n in_o amplification_n the_o 9_o be_v about_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n wherein_o first_o he_o charge_v i_o with_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o heluidian_o &_o antidicomarianite_n who_o be_v condemn_v for_o heretic_n for_o deny_v her_o perpetual_a virginity_n whereas_o he_o come_v near_a to_o the_o colliridian_n likewise_o condemn_v they_o we_o to_o the_o heluidian_o but_o let_v we_o see_v his_o impudent_a quarrel_n first_o i_o say_v as_o for_o the_o perpetual_a virginity_n of_o the_o mother_n of_o christ_n as_o we_o think_v it_o be_v true_a so_o because_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o reveil_v it_o neither_o pertain_v it_o unto_o we_o we_o make_v no_o question_n of_o it_o here_o be_v a_o great_a conjunction_n with_o heretic_n which_o trouble_v the_o church_n with_o contention_n a_o bout_n a_o matter_n which_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n yet_o say_v bristol_n you_o forge_v a_o principle_n of_o only_a scripture_n in_o their_o favour_n sure_o that_o principle_n as_o it_o be_v not_o forge_v so_o it_o favore_v they_o nothing_o at_o al._n for_o their_o contentious_a assertion_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o within_o 4._o line_n afore_o i_o be_o contrary_a to_o myself_o where_o i_o say_v all_o truth_n may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n if_o i_o have_v to_o do_v with_o a_o man_n of_o reason_n as_o i_o have_v to_o do_v with_o a_o papist_n he_o will_v understand_v my_o proposition_n according_a to_o the_o whole_a matter_n in_o controversy_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v necessary_a or_o profitable_a for_o a_o christian_n man_n to_o know_v unto_o salvation_n for_o otherwise_o i_o think_v many_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a that_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o i_o think_v that_o bristol_n lack_v wit_n learning_n &_o honesty_n thus_o to_o quarrel_v which_o be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o gather_v by_o other_o reason_n yet_o he_o say_v i_o may_v which_o more_o honesty_n have_v say_v that_o it_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n where_o she_o say_v luk._n 1._o because_o i_o know_v no_o man_n that_o be_v say_v he_o because_o i_o have_v make_v a_o vow_n of_o virginity_n a_o like_a matter_n that_o she_o will_v marry_v if_o she_o have_v make_v a_o vow_n of_o viginitie_n yet_o bristol_n confess_v this_o place_n prove_v not_o invincible_o her_o perpetual_a virginity_n although_o it_o so_o prove_v her_o vow_n but_o if_o bristol_n be_v conden_v or_o have_v vow_v to_o lie_v in_o prison_n until_o he_o can_v frame_v a_o invincible_a argument_n to_o prove_v her_o vow_n out_o of_o that_o place_n yea_o or_o any_o other_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o be_v condemn_v to_o perpetual_a prison_n or_o vow_v the_o same_o another_o point_n of_o that_o dishonour_n be_v where_o i_o control_v allen_n for_o except_v the_o mother_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o sinner_n which_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v christ_n be_v not_o a_o saviour_n of_o his_o mother_n or_o that_o she_o have_v no_o need_n of_o his_o salvation_n and_o here_o he_o charge_v i_o with_o read_v caluine_n more_o than_o augustine_n as_o though_o augustine_n defend_v the_o virgin_n marie_n to_o be_v free_a from_o sin_n because_o he_o say_v against_o the_o pelagian_n that_o he_o will_v have_v no_o question_n of_o she_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o lord_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o sin_n for_o hereof_o we_o know_v that_o more_o grace_n be_v give_v to_o she_o to_o overcome_v sin_n of_o all_o part_n which_o be_v worthy_a to_o conceive_v and_o bring_v forth_o he_o ãâ¦ã_o be_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o have_v no_o sin_n denat_n &_o great_a 136._o it_o be_v all_o one_o with_o bristol_n to_o overcome_v sin_n &_o to_o be_v void_a of_o all_o sin_n what_o victory_n be_v there_o without_o a_o battle_n if_o the_o flesh_n in_o the_o virgin_n marie_n do_v not_o rebel_v against_o the_o spirit_n what_o victory_n have_v she_o by_o grace_n but_o it_o be_v plain_a pelagianisme_n to_o hold_v that_o she_o be_v void_a of_o sin_n or_o perfect_o righteous_a the_o pelagian_n name_v also_o ipsam_fw-la etian_n domini_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o very_a mother_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n which_o he_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a for_o godliness_n that_o we_o confess_v that_o she_o be_v with_o out_o sin_n but_o thereof_o augustine_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o lord_n will_v have_v no_o question_n signify_v that_o although_o she_o be_v not_o clear_a and_o exempt_v from_o fi_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o e_o but_o have_v grace_n to_o overcome_v sin_n yet_o for_o reverence_n of_o christ_n her_o son_n he_o will_v not_o reason_v thereof_o to_o bring_v she_o within_o the_o common_a compass_n of_o all_o siner_n but_o bristol_n perceive_v that_o i_o will_v not_o have_v so_o answer_v see_v i_o affirm_v that_o by_o the_o reprehension_n of_o christ_n john_n 2._o she_o do_v offend_v for_o he_o will_v never_o have_v reprove_v his_o mother_n without_o a_o cause_n and_o say_v what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v with_o thou_o woman_n except_o she_o have_v intermedle_v in_o his_o office_n more_o than_o of_o duty_n she_o ought_v but_o bristol_n will_v colour_v his_o reproof_n two_o way_n one_o by_o false_a translation_n of_o the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d what_o to_o i_o and_o thou_o o_o woman_n not_o understand_v the_o greek_n phrase_n which_o be_v by_o those_o word_n to_o refuse_v to_o have_v to_o do_v with_o one_o as_o the_o devil_n matt._n 8._o cry_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d what_o have_v we_o to_o do_v with_o thou_o jesus_n thou_o son_n of_o god_n and_o not_o as_o bristol_n translate_v what_o to_o we_o and_o thou_o jesus_n etc._n etc._n but_o because_o bristol_n say_v that_o if_o christ_n shall_v mean_v that_o the_o want_n of_o wine_n pertein_v neither_o to_o he_o nor_o to_o his_o mother_n yet_o she_o be_v not_o discharge_v of_o error_n to_o move_v he_o in_o a_o matter_n which_o belong_v neither_o to_o he_o nor_o she_o he_o say_v i_o may_v do_v well_o to_o tell_v he_o what_o be_v those_o sin_n of_o she_o i_o think_v the_o answer_n of_o christ_n show_v what_o her_o offence_n be_v here_o and_o luk._n 5._o that_o she_o presume_v to_o intermeddle_v under_o colour_n of_o her_o motherly_a authority_n with_o matter_n appertein_v to_o his_o divine_a office_n of_o be_v christ_n
the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o else_o he_o acknowledge_v he_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n without_o distinction_n of_o person_n and_o with_o a_o blasphemous_a confusion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o christ._n for_o the_o figure_n call_v the_o communication_n of_o speech_n can_v not_o help_v he_o in_o this_o case_n see_v he_o will_v admit_v no_o figure_n but_o a_o most_o proper_a speech_n in_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n whereas_o it_o be_v evident_a to_o all_o man_n that_o be_v not_o obstinate_o blind_a that_o if_o christ_n have_v purpose_v to_o make_v the_o sacrament_n real_o and_o essential_o all_o that_o himself_o be_v and_o will_v have_v declare_v the_o same_o in_o proper_a speech_n he_o will_v not_o have_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o be_v but_o a_o part_n of_o he_o and_o the_o low_a part_n of_o he_o but_o he_o will_v have_v say_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v jesus_n christ_n or_o this_o be_v all_o that_o i_o be_o but_o when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n &_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o figurative_a speech_n shall_v be_v a_o dead_a body_n and_o a_o senseless_a blood_n he_o show_v manifest_o that_o he_o commend_v not_o a_o meta_fw-la physical_a transmutation_n of_o the_o element_n into_o his_o natural_a flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o a_o heavenly_a and_o divine_a mystery_n teach_v we_o and_o assure_v we_o that_o god_n the_o son_n be_v join_v with_o we_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o humanity_n which_o he_o have_v take_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o spiritual_a virtue_n of_o his_o body_n break_v and_o blood_n shed_v for_o we_o on_o the_o cross_n do_v wonderful_o feed_v we_o and_o nourish_v we_o as_o it_o be_v with_o meat_n and_o drink_v unto_o eternal_a salvation_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n if_o any_o man_n think_v that_o i_o refer_v the_o word_n of_o saunder_n to_o the_o sacrament_n which_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n general_o let_v he_o read_v the_o whole_a epistle_n and_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o title_n of_o salutation_n which_o i_o have_v set_v down_o in_o his_o own_o word_n consider_v whether_o saunder_n profess_v that_o he_o speak_v therein_o to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n can_v be_v reasonable_o understand_v of_o christ_n after_o any_o other_o sort_n then_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n wherefore_o such_o bold_a speech_n as_o he_o use_v in_o this_o dedication_n tend_v to_o so_o gross_a heresy_n be_v a_o declaration_n of_o his_o proud_a stomach_n now_o break_v forth_o into_o heinous_a treason_n against_o his_o own_o country_n and_o actual_a rebellion_n against_o his_o sovereign_a and_o natural_a prince_n but_o thou_o o_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n our_o only_a saviour_n and_o redeemer_n who_o we_o adore_v and_o worship_n as_o our_o king_n and_o god_n not_o under_o the_o accidental_a shape_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o above_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n sit_v on_o the_o throne_n of_o magnificence_n of_o god_n thy_o eternal_a father_n in_o heaven_n to_o who_o with_o thou_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o give_v all_o honour_n &_o praise_v for_o ever_o vouchsafe_v if_o it_o be_v thy_o holy_a will_n to_o convert_v these_o enemy_n of_o thy_o majesty_n unto_o the_o true_a understanding_n of_o thy_o bless_a word_n or_o if_o their_o obstinate_a resist_n of_o thy_o spirit_n so_o require_v show_v forth_o thy_o glorious_a might_n in_o their_o speedy_a overthrow_n and_o confusion_n that_o we_o thy_o humble_a servant_n behold_v thy_o wonderful_a judgement_n may_v laud_v and_o magnify_v thy_o holy_a name_n as_o well_o in_o the_o salvation_n of_o thou_o elect_v as_o in_o the_o destruction_n of_o thy_o enemy_n to_o thy_o everlasting_a praise_n and_o renown_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n the_o preface_n to_o the_o christian_a reader_n saunder_n the_o proposition_n of_o this_o paint_a preface_n be_v that_o the_o scripture_n fulke_n must_v be_v expound_v according_a to_o the_o great_a authority_n that_o may_v be_v find_v in_o that_o kind_n which_o saunder_n assume_v to_o be_v the_o use_n custom_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n this_o assumption_n be_v false_a although_o if_o it_o be_v true_a it_o help_v the_o papist_n nothing_o at_o all_o which_o can_v not_o show_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o all_o time_n for_o any_o error_n which_o they_o maintain_v against_o us._n the_o great_a authority_n in_o expound_v of_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o iudgemenr_n can_v not_o be_v certain_o find_v but_o in_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o wherefore_o conference_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o god_n be_v of_o great_a authority_n than_o the_o practice_n of_o man_n the_o scripture_n inspire_v of_o god_n be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n they_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a prepare_v to_o all_o good_a work_n 2._o tim._n 3._o wherefore_o the_o practice_n and_o custom_n of_o god_n people_n must_v be_v examine_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o the_o scripture_n expound_v after_o it_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o prophesy_a must_v be_v according_a to_o the_o analogic_n of_o faith_n rom._n 12._o but_o faith_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o custom_n of_o man_n therefore_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o after_o the_o usage_n of_o man_n the_o example_n which_o saunder_n use_v to_o confirm_v his_o false_a assumption_n be_v of_o baptise_v of_o infant_n of_o christian_n before_o they_o be_v teach_v which_o doctrine_n he_o deni_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o order_n of_o christ_n word_n matth._n 28._o but_o by_o the_o use_n and_o consent_n of_o all_o nation_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o use_n and_o consent_n of_o all_o nation_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o warrant_v the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n of_o the_o faithful_a except_o the_o same_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o scripture_n in_o other_o place_n as_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o institution_n of_o circumcision_n according_a to_o the_o covenant_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o all_o our_o father_n be_v baptize_v in_o the_o cloud_n and_o in_o the_o sea_n 1._o cor._n 10._o and_o the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v holy_a therefore_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o baptism_n 1._o cor._n 7._o because_o they_o be_v comprehend_v in_o god_n covenant_n according_a to_o which_o scripture_n they_o be_v baptize_v &_o the_o infant_n of_o jew_n or_o gentile_n refuse_v and_o not_o only_o upon_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o church_n custom_n and_o use_n therein_o as_o saunder_n affirm_v which_o custom_n be_v good_a because_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o authorize_v by_o that_o custom_n wherefore_o popish_a confirmation_n and_o adoration_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n although_o he_o false_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v the_o like_a custom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n are_z jewde_z and_o ungodly_a practice_n of_o the_o papist_n because_o they_o be_v not_o warrant_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o be_v prove_v contrary_a to_o the_o same_o but_o whereas_o we_o allege_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n for_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n to_o be_v against_o transubstantiation_n and_o adoration_n saunder_n repli_v that_o thing_n uncertein_a must_v be_v judge_v by_o thing_n certain_a and_o not_o contrariwise_o this_o principle_n be_v true_a but_o it_o be_v false_a that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n be_v uncerteine_a as_o also_o that_o those_o four_o certainty_n which_o he_o rehearse_v be_v either_o all_o certainty_n or_o certain_o on_o his_o side_n the_o first_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n this_o be_v my_o body_n about_o who_o understanding_n be_v all_o the_o controversy_n and_o therefore_o no_o certainty_n that_o they_o be_v on_o their_o side_n more_o than_o these_o word_n be_v certain_a on_o our_o side_n against_o transubstantiation_n the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v etc._n etc._n so_o often_o as_o you_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n etc._n etc._n the_o second_o be_v false_a that_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n all_o man_n worship_v the_o real_a body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n etc._n etc._n for_o it_o be_v the_o practice_n only_o of_o the_o popish_a church_n and_o that_o but_o of_o late_a year_n never_o admit_v by_o the_o oriental_a church_n beside_o many_o church_n and_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n in_o the_o west_n that_o ever_o do_v abhor_v it_o three_o the_o council_n of_o laterane_n
christ_n we_o be_v nourish_v to_o immortality_n hereupon_o saunder_n infer_v that_o nourishmenr_n be_v meat_n real_o present_a ergo_fw-la the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o present_a this_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o present_a with_o they_o who_o it_o nourish_v understand_v real_o for_o true_o and_o indeed_o and_o unfeigned_o but_o christ_n say_v saunder_n give_v with_o his_o hand_n that_o which_o nourish_v in_o proper_a form_n of_o speech_n this_o be_v false_a for_o he_o have_v not_o his_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n in_o his_o hand_n but_o a_o sacrament_n thereof_o which_o be_v a_o seal_n and_o certain_a persuasion_n unto_o the_o faithful_a of_o the_o performance_n of_o his_o promise_n which_o be_v the_o communicate_v of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v perform_v after_o a_o heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a manner_n cap._n vi_o the_o union_n which_o be_v make_v by_o eat_v christ_n real_a flesh_n must_v saunder_n needs_o be_v a_o natural_a union_n before_o it_o be_v a_o mystical_a for_o this_o natural_a union_n he_o bring_v no_o proof_n but_o fulke_n promise_v the_o proof_n in_o other_o place_n follow_v &_o therefore_o unto_o those_o place_n i_o defer_v the_o answer_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n it_o be_v a_o monstrous_a absurdity_n that_o see_v the_o mystical_a union_n with_o christ_n be_v of_o all_o the_o elect_a that_o ever_o be_v he_o affirm_v that_o it_o can_v be_v without_o a_o natural_a union_n by_o eat_v christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n cap._n vii_o that_o the_o apology_n speak_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n go_v clean_o saunder_n from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o word_n of_o the_o apology_n be_v these_o we_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o eucharist_n or_o the_o lord_n supper_n to_o be_v a_o fulke_n sacrament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o evident_a token_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n this_o be_v to_o bring_v man_n from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n say_v he_o to_z the_o tradition_n of_o man_n for_o where_o have_v you_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v a_o sign_n or_o token_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o because_o these_o word_n be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o genesis_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n write_v in_o so_o many_o letter_n he_o foam_v and_o fret_v like_o a_o mad_a dog_n against_o the_o author_n of_o the_o apology_n for_o go_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n augustine_n and_o ambrose_n etc._n etc._n then_o the_o which_o quarrel_n nothing_o can_v be_v invent_v more_o foolish_a or_o further_o from_o all_o wit_n learning_n and_o honesty_n for_o when_o we_o appeal_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o all_o thing_n we_o never_o mean_v or_o say_v that_o all_o other_o word_n shall_v be_v forsake_v which_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o bible_n but_o that_o no_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v credit_v by_o what_o term_n so_o ever_o it_o be_v utter_v except_o the_o same_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o manifest_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n either_o express_v in_o plain_a word_n or_o else_o gather_v by_o necessary_a consequence_n therefore_o see_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n sign_n or_o token_n may_v necessary_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n have_v be_v take_v up_o and_o use_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n we_o use_v they_o as_o free_o as_o they_o do_v and_o as_o we_o use_v other_o name_n likewise_o the_o meaning_n of_o which_o be_v plain_a to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n although_o the_o term_n themselves_o be_v not_o as_o trinity_n person_n consubstantial_a etc._n etc._n if_o saunder_n dare_v deny_v the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n sign_n or_o token_n to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n i_o will_v take_v pain_n to_o prove_v they_o but_o see_v he_o confess_v that_o they_o be_v good_a and_o lawful_a to_o be_v use_v of_o the_o supper_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v superfluous_a la_fw-fr bour_o to_o travel_v in_o a_o needless_a question_n among_o the_o name_n that_o be_v give_v to_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o cup_n be_v call_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o of_o s._n paul_n the_o supper_n be_v call_v spiritual_a meat_n and_o spiritual_a drink_n which_o last_o name_n saunder_n heap_v up_o the_o rest_n omit_v it_o do_v prove_v the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n sign_n and_o token_n so_o invincible_o that_o we_o be_v no_o more_o afraid_a to_o use_v they_o than_o any_o of_o the_o other_o express_v in_o plain_a word_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o name_n of_o sacrifice_n which_o he_o enterlace_v by_o the_o way_n because_o it_o be_v afterward_o more_o at_o large_a discuss_v i_o omit_v to_o write_v of_o at_o this_o time_n cap._n viii_o that_o s._n ambrose_n and_o s._n augustine_n teach_v more_o than_o two_o sacrament_n saunder_n it_o have_v be_v meet_a that_o a_o sacrament_n have_v be_v first_o define_v ãâ¦ã_o and_o then_o this_o trifle_a shall_v not_o have_v arisen_a of_o the_o word_n saunder_n himself_o understand_v mysterium_fw-la in_o s._n ambrose_n for_o a_o mystery_n or_o sacrament_n and_o in_o deed_n the_o greek_n call_v that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o the_o latin_n call_v sacramentum_fw-la but_o if_o every_o mystery_n shall_v be_v a_o sacrament_n in_o that_o sense_n that_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v so_o call_v there_o shall_v not_o be_v only_o seven_o sacrament_n as_o he_o will_v have_v but_o more_o than_o seventie_o the_o name_n therefore_o of_o sacrament_n or_o mystery_n be_v somtim_n general_o take_v for_o every_o secret_a thing_n that_o have_v a_o hide_a understanding_n so_o be_v matrimony_n of_o s._n paul_n call_v a_o mystery_n and_o of_o augustine_n the_o sacrament_n of_o matrimony_n and_o ordination_n be_v use_v de_fw-fr bon_fw-fr con._n cap._n 24._o so_o be_v oil_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n count_n donat._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 20._o reckon_v among_o the_o mystery_n and_o sacrament_n but_o that_o which_o saunder_n do_v allege_v out_o of_o ambrose_n be_v enforce_v for_o speak_v of_o the_o power_n which_o priest_n have_v to_o remit_v sin_n by_o repentance_n or_o by_o baptism_n he_o say_v vnum_fw-la in_o utroque_fw-la mysterium_fw-la sed_fw-la dices_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o âavacro_fw-la operatur_fw-la mysteriorum_fw-la gratia_fw-la quid_fw-la in_o poenitentia_fw-la nun_n dei_fw-la nomen_fw-la operatur_fw-la there_o be_v one_o mystery_n in_o both_o but_o thou_o will_v say_v because_o in_o baptism_n the_o grace_n of_o the_o mystery_n do_v work_v what_o in_o repentance_n do_v not_o the_o name_n of_o god_n work_n in_o these_o word_n although_o he_o call_v they_o both_o mystery_n yet_o he_o put_v a_o manifest_a difference_n for_o in_o baptism_n he_o acknowledge_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o mystery_n to_o work_v with_o that_o visible_a seal_n in_o the_o other_o the_o name_n of_o god_n only_o wtout_fw-fr a_o visible_a seal_n which_o saunder_n perceive_v and_o not_o be_v able_a to_o answer_v these_o place_n of_o augustine_n and_o ambrose_n which_o be_v cite_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o apologie_n for_o the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n fly_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o late_a council_n of_o florence_n not_o regard_v what_o ambrose_n or_o augustine_n have_v write_v who_o he_o say_v have_v not_o the_o charge_n to_o reckon_v up_o how_o many_o sacrament_n there_o be_v and_o i_o say_v that_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n be_v not_o name_v in_o any_o session_n of_o that_o council_n but_o only_o in_o a_o decree_n of_o eugenius_n the_o four_o upon_o the_o surâised_a reconciliation_n of_o the_o armenian_n which_o be_v of_o small_a credit_n the_o same_o eugenius_n for_o his_o notable_a wickedness_n be_v long_o before_o depose_v by_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n and_o a_o other_o pope_n be_v choose_v in_o his_o place_n cap._n ix_o that_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v the_o chief_a sacrament_n of_o all_o but_o saunder_n not_o acknowledge_v of_o the_o apology_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n see_v the_o holy_a scripture_n prefer_v not_o the_o one_o sacrament_n fulk_n above_o the_o other_o and_o they_o be_v both_o a_o like_a effectual_a seal_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o elect_a there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o apology_n shall_v acknowledge_v such_o excellency_n of_o the_o one_o above_o the_o other_o as_o saunder_n will_v imagine_v but_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a importance_n with_o saunder_n that_o dionysius_n call_v it_o the_o sacrament_n of_o sacrament_n whereby_o it_o be_v not_o only_o prove_v to_o
of_o the_o condition_n of_o all_o infant_n which_o be_v not_o change_v by_o baptism_n although_o sin_n be_v not_o impute_v unto_o they_o wherefore_o to_o speak_v after_o your_o popish_a supposition_n of_o baptism_n that_o by_o the_o work_n wrought_v all_o sin_n commit_v before_o baptism_n be_v abolish_v in_o baptism_n what_o if_o the_o infant_n not_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o baptism_n be_v angry_a with_o they_o that_o have_v take_v he_o out_o of_o his_o warm_a clothes_n and_o plunge_v he_o in_o baptism_n be_v this_o no_o sin_n but_o what_o infant_n can_v examine_v himself_o of_o this_o sin_n and_o what_o can_v the_o examination_n of_o other_o man_n profit_v he_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v have_v to_o examine_v himself_o as_o for_o the_o distinction_n of_o votum_fw-la explicitum_fw-la &_o implicitum_fw-la he_o send_v we_o to_o allens_n book_n de_fw-fr euch._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 31._o etc._n etc._n for_o how_o can_v we_o be_v assure_v that_o child_n have_v a_o close_a desire_n to_o baptism_n more_o than_o to_o the_o communion_n or_o how_o can_v it_o be_v prove_v that_o they_o have_v any_o desire_n explicit_a or_o implicit_a to_o either_o of_o both_o the_o sacrament_n if_o ãâã_d be_v lawful_a to_o imagine_v of_o infant_n against_o all_o reason_n and_o without_o all_o scripture_n we_o may_v fill_v book_n with_o distinction_n and_o devise_n innumerable_a last_o of_o all_o he_o charge_v i_o with_o falsification_n by_o add_v because_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n say_v that_o manner_n be_v aliquando_fw-la in_o quibusdam_fw-la locis_fw-la some_o time_n and_o in_o some_o place_n but_o i_o pray_v thou_o bristol_n what_o have_v i_o falsify_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o thou_o affirm_v that_o i_o do_v never_o read_v thou_o say_v they_o that_o do_v communicate_v infant_n be_v not_o so_o many_o as_o fulke_n do_v make_v they_o why_o how_o many_o do_v i_o make_v they_o i_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o they_o that_o take_v his_o part_n in_o s._n augustine_n time_n be_v in_o this_o error_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v minister_v to_o infant_n and_o have_v i_o not_o plain_o and_o now_o also_o plentiful_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o saint_n augustine_n where_o be_v then_o this_o falsification_n if_o i_o have_v not_o prove_v that_o which_o i_o say_v yet_o there_o be_v difference_n betwixt_o falsification_n and_o a_o false_a affirmation_n and_o because_o the_o tridentine_a council_n say_v it_o be_v aliquando_fw-la as_o though_o that_o error_n have_v not_o long_o continue_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v minister_v to_o infant_n before_o cyprian_n time_n and_o continue_v five_o or_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o witness_v beatus_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la in_o tertulli_n de_fw-fr coron_n mil._n where_o he_o show_v that_o this_o manner_n be_v continue_v until_o the_o time_n of_o ludovicus_n pius_n and_o lotharius_n and_o after_o cite_v these_o word_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o ceremony_n call_v agendae_fw-la of_o infant_n new_o baptize_v si_fw-mi episcopus_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o the_o bishop_n be_v present_a it_o must_v be_v immediate_o confirm_v and_o then_o communicate_v if_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o present_a before_o the_o infante_n do_v suck_v or_o taste_v any_o thing_n let_v the_o priest_n give_v he_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n yea_o before_o the_o mass_n if_o necessity_n require_v by_o this_o testimony_n it_o appear_v not_o only_o that_o this_o custom_n be_v long_o observe_v but_o also_o that_o it_o be_v join_v with_o opinion_n of_o necessity_n so_o that_o mass_n shall_v not_o be_v tarry_v for_o if_o the_o infant_n be_v in_o any_o danger_n concern_v the_o error_n that_o he_o lay_v to_o the_o church_n of_o late_a time_n and_o not_o of_o old_a and_o 1._o touch_v the_o body_n of_o angel_n bristol_n according_a to_o the_o demand_n of_o the_o challenger_n fulke_n which_o require_v any_o one_o error_n or_o false_a interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n make_v by_o the_o popish_a church_n to_o be_v show_v he_o i_o bring_v certain_a example_n of_o diverse_a kind_n of_o error_n which_o be_v not_o the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n between_o we_o but_o such_o as_o if_o the_o papist_n be_v not_o impudent_a they_o themselves_o will_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v error_n now_o come_v bristol_n in_o this_o his_o bald_a and_o confuse_a reply_n and_o as_o though_o i_o be_v able_a to_o note_v none_o error_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n but_o those_o which_o i_o note_v upon_o such_o occasion_n will_v all_o they_o that_o will_v know_v the_o true_a church_n to_o consider_v that_o these_o error_n if_o they_o be_v any_o be_v so_o few_o and_o so_o light_a that_o they_o may_v be_v a_o sure_a confirmation_n to_o papist_n and_o a_o just_a motive_n to_o all_o other_o to_o embrace_v the_o church_n of_o this_o time_n no_o less_o then_o of_o old_a time_n consider_v it_o be_v no_o less_o but_o much_o more_o unreprovable_a of_o the_o adversary_n nevertheless_o as_o few_o and_o as_o light_a as_o these_o error_n seem_v they_o be_v sufficient_a if_o they_o be_v but_o one_o to_o prove_v that_o which_o i_o intend_v namely_o that_o the_o popish_a church_n have_v err_v which_o be_v prove_v the_o sure_a pillar_n of_o popery_n be_v break_v and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o opinion_n which_o they_o hold_v against_o the_o scripture_n &_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n when_o it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o popish_a church_n have_v err_v will_v show_v themselves_o to_o be_v error_n which_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o gain_v they_o credit_n but_o this_o one_o false_a principle_n that_o the_o popish_a church_n can_v not_o err_v and_o touch_v the_o body_n of_o angel_n where_o i_o say_v ar._n 60._o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a determine_v that_o angel_n and_o soul_n of_o man_n have_v body_n be_v visible_a and_o circumscriptible_a and_o therefore_o must_v be_v paint_v affirm_v this_o to_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n bristol_n answer_v that_o i_o misreport_v the_o matter_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o counsel_n determination_n nor_o say_v but_o the_o say_n only_o of_o joannes_n bishop_n of_o thessalonica_n rehearse_v in_o the_o council_n with_o a_o admonition_n give_v by_o tharasius_n b._n of_o const_n against_o the_o madness_n of_o they_o that_o overthrow_v the_o image_n of_o our_o lord_n &_o his_o undefiled_a mother_n see_v this_o holy_a father_n do_v show_v that_o angel_n also_o may_v be_v paint_v but_o the_o truth_n be_v as_o may_v appear_v to_o every_o man_n that_o will_v read_v the_o council_n act_n 5_o that_o this_o be_v a_o vain_a gloss_n of_o bristol_n to_o elude_v the_o matter_n after_z the_o say_v of_o joannes_n be_v rehearse_v in_o which_o this_o gross_a error_n be_v contain_v tharasius_n the_o archb_n of_o const._n thereupon_o conclude_v ostendit_fw-la autem_fw-la pater_fw-la quòd_fw-la &_o angelos_fw-la pingore_fw-la oporteat_fw-la quando_fw-la circumscribi_fw-la possunt_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la homines_fw-la apparuerunt_fw-la this_o father_n show_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o paint_v the_o angel_n also_o see_v they_o may_v be_v circumscribe_v &_o have_v appear_v as_o man_n by_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o tharasius_n approve_v the_o opinion_n of_o joannes_n will_v you_o now_o have_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n it_o follow_v immediate_o sacra_fw-la synodus_fw-la dixit_fw-la etiam_fw-la domine_fw-la the_o holy_a synod_n say_v yea_o forsooth_o my_o lord_n by_o this_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o not_o i_o but_o bristol_n have_v misreport_v the_o matter_n where_o i_o say_v if_o this_o be_v not_o to_o induce_v a_o error_n to_o make_v man_n believe_v that_o angel_n and_o spirit_n have_v body_n visible_a and_o circumscriptible_a there_o be_v never_o any_o error_n since_o the_o world_n begin_v bristol_n pull_v i_o back_o and_o say_v soft_a man_n other_o manner_n of_o error_n have_v be_v defend_v since_o the_o world_n begin_v i_o wot_v well_o &_o great_a but_o if_o any_o of_o they_o be_v a_o manifest_a error_n this_o be_v as_o manifest_a as_o any_o of_o they_o all_o yet_o be_v bristol_n so_o zealous_a in_o excuse_v this_o error_n that_o he_o shame_v not_o with_o that_o ignorant_a bishop_n of_o thessalonica_n to_o slander_v many_o of_o the_o most_o catholic_a and_o ancient_a father_n with_o it_o basilius_n athanasius_n methodius_n yea_o augustine_n he_o say_v make_v a_o question_n of_o it_o in_o which_o point_n he_o show_v great_a ignorance_n or_o wilful_a malice_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v find_v in_o any_o of_o those_o ancient_a writer_n sound_v to_o such_o a_o purpose_n it_o only_o by_o mistake_v the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d or_o corpus_fw-la which_o they_o use_v general_o for_o that_o which_o now_o in_o the_o school_n according_a to_o aristotle_n be_v call_v ãâã_d
pope_n superiority_n over_o the_o council_n and_o three_o that_o by_o his_o precedent_n he_o accept_v such_o presidency_n as_o the_o council_n will_v grant_v without_o all_o jurisdiction_n of_o compulsion_n be_v himself_o compel_v to_o betaine_v that_o order_n of_o proceed_v which_o the_o council_n before_o âis_n presidencie_n be_v admit_v have_v observe_v what_o leo_n âhe_v ten_o in_o his_o laterane_n council_n decree_v against_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n i_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o it_o except_o ãâã_d be_v to_o prove_v that_o one_o pope_n go_v against_o the_o decree_n of_o ânother_n pope_n and_o one_o council_n against_o another_o that_o âeither_o of_o both_o be_v to_o be_v credit_v how_o childish_a my_o insultation_n be_v how_o void_a of_o victory_n my_o triumph_n how_o ânsoluble_a forsooth_o my_o argument_n be_v as_o bristol_n scofâeth_v i_o leave_v to_o all_o reasonable_a man_n to_o consider_v 3._o touch_v the_o constance_n counsel_v presumption_n bristol_n i_o say_v it_o be_v horrible_a presumption_n that_o the_o council_n fulke_n of_o constance_n decree_v contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o plain_a word_n that_o notwithstanding_o christ_n institute_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v receive_v in_o both_o kind_n and_o that_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v so_o receive_v it_o yet_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v prevail_v and_o whosoever_o say_v contrary_a it_o âan_v heretic_n these_o word_n he_o say_v i_o print_v as_o though_o i_o be_v a_o printer_n which_o be_v 70._o mile_n off_o at_o least_o from_o the_o place_n where_o they_o be_v print_v in_o a_o distincte_n letter_n as_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o the_o council_n whereas_o these_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n here_o be_v the_o quarrel_n no_o sir_n i_o never_o mean_v to_o print_v these_o word_n as_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n but_o as_o the_o sum_n and_o content_n of_o they_o which_o because_o they_o be_v large_a i_o will_v not_o set_v down_o at_o large_a in_o a_o bymatter_v but_o now_o be_v urge_v with_o falsification_n or_o at_o least_o false_a collection_n i_o will_v set_v they_o down_o as_o they_o a_o ãâ¦ã_o con_fw-mi const_n sessâ_n 13._o wtout_o any_o such_o interruption_n as_o be_v usual_a with_o you_o to_o make_v that_o you_o may_v carry_v away_o the_o simple_a read_v mind_n from_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o they_o cùm_fw-la in_o nonnullis_fw-la etc._n etc._n whereas_o in_o certain_a part_n of_o the_o world_n certain_a parson_n presume_v rash_o to_o affirm_v that_o christian_n people_n ought_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o that_o euchariste_fw-fr under_o both_o kind_n oâ_n bread_n &_o wine_n &_o do_v communicate_v the_o lay_a people_n every_o where_n not_o only_o under_o the_o kind_n of_o bread_n but_o also_o under_o ãâã_d kind_n of_o wine_n yea_o after_o supper_n or_o otherwise_o not_o fast_v and_o stubberne_o affirm_v that_o they_o ought_v so_o to_o be_v communicate_v against_o the_o laudable_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n reasonable_o approve_v which_o as_o sacrilegious_a damnable_o they_o go_v about_o to_o reprove_v hereof_o it_o be_v that_o this_o present_a holy_a general_a council_n of_o constance_n lawful_o gather_v together_o in_o the_o holyghost_n intend_v to_o provide_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o faithful_a against_o this_o error_n have_v have_v before_o ripe_a deliberation_n of_o many_o doctor_n both_o of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o of_o man_n declare_v decree_v &_o define_v that_o although_o christ_n after_o supper_n do_v institute_v &_o minister_v unto_o his_o disciple_n this_o holy_a sacrament_n under_o both_o kind_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n yet_o this_o notwithstanding_o the_o laudable_a authority_n of_o holy_a canon_n &_o the_o approve_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n have_v observe_v &_o do_v observe_v that_o this_o sacrament_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v make_v after_o supper_n neither_o to_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o faithful_a not_o fast_v but_o in_o case_n of_o sickness_n or_o other_o necessity_n of_o right_n or_o of_o the_o church_n grant_v or_o admit_v and_o as_o this_o custom_n to_o avoid_v certain_a danger_n and_o offence_n be_v reasonable_o bring_v in_o that_o although_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v of_o the_o faithful_a under_o both_o kind_n &_o afterward_o of_o they_o which_o make_v it_o it_o be_v receive_v under_o both_o kind_n &_o of_o the_o lay_v people_n only_o under_o the_o kind_n of_o bread_n see_v it_o ought_v most_o steadfast_o to_o be_v believe_v &_o by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o contain_v as_o well_o under_o the_o kind_n of_o bread_n as_o under_o the_o kind_n of_o wine_n whereupon_o see_v such_o a_o custom_n by_o the_o church_n &_o holy_a father_n be_v reasonable_o bring_v in_o &_o have_v be_v very_o long_o observe_v it_o must_v be_v take_v for_o a_o law_n which_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o reprove_v or_o with_o out_z the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o change_v at_o man_n pleasure_n âherfore_o to_o say_v that_o to_o keep_v this_o custom_n or_o law_n be_v sacrilege_n ãâã_d unlawful_a it_o ought_v to_o be_v judge_v erroneous_a and_o they_o âhich_v stubborn_o affirm_v the_o contrary_a of_o the_o premise_n be_v ãâã_d be_v drive_v away_o as_o heretic_n &_o to_o be_v grevos_o punish_v ây_a that_o dyocessane_n of_o the_o place_n or_o their_o official_o or_o by_o the_o inquisitor_n of_o heretical_a pravity_n in_o those_o kingdom_n or_o province_n in_o which_o any_o thing_n perhaps_o shall_v be_v attempt_v or_o presume_v against_o this_o decree_n according_a to_o the_o canonical_a ând_n lawful_a function_n which_o have_v be_v solemn_o invent_v ãâã_d favour_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n against_o heretic_n and_o âheir_a fautor_n here_o you_o see_v the_o prelate_n of_o the_o council_n take_v âpon_n they_o as_o great_a authority_n in_o alter_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v a_o necessary_a part_n of_o the_o institution_n thereof_o âs_v in_o order_v the_o time_n in_o which_o it_o shall_v be_v minister_v which_o âs_v no_o part_n of_o the_o institution_n thereof_o also_o that_o they_o confess_v that_o ân_n the_o primitive_a church_n the_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v in_o both_o âinds_n therefore_o they_o be_v presumptuous_a to_o say_v hoc_fw-la non_fw-la obstante_fw-la âhis_fw-la notwtstaÌding_n the_o custom_n of_o late_a year_n bring_v in_o âs_n reasonable_a &_o shall_v be_v observe_v as_o a_o law_n the_o gainsayer_n âherof_o be_v conden_v &_o punish_v as_o heretic_n brist_n cavill_v that_o they_o say_v not_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o i_o say_v as_o though_o when_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n they_o mean_v any_o other_o church_n but_o the_o church_n of_o r._n such_o babble_n b._n have_v to_o cover_v their_o blasphemous_a &_o sacriâlegious_a presumption_n touch_v certain_a false_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n fulke_n to_o colour_v the_o false_a interpretation_n follow_v he_o commend_v the_o saying_n of_o august_n de_fw-fr doct_n christ._n li._n 1._o ca._n 36._o &_o lib._n 3._o ca._n 27._o in_o which_o first_o he_o require_v every_o man_n principal_o to_o shoot_v at_o that_o sense_n of_o the_o writer_n in_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o if_o he_o miss_v that_o sense_n &_o hit_v any_o other_o which_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o right_a faith_n or_o be_v profitable_a to_o build_v charity_n towards_o god_n &_o our_o neighbour_n he_o be_v not_o pernicious_o deceive_v etc._n etc._n upon_o this_o allen_n in_o his_o offer_n to_o that_o protestant_n say_v ar._n 86._o &_o 87._o let_v any_o man_n prove_v unto_o i_o that_o the_o true_a &_o only_a church_n of_o god_n may_v false_o interpret_v any_o sentence_n of_o holy_a scripture_n &_o i_o recant_v this_o general_a offer_n without_o any_o qualification_n of_o not_o err_v perniciouslye_o or_o wilful_o lie_v as_o be_v contain_v in_o saint_n augustine_n say_n unto_o which_o bristol_n will_v now_o seem_v to_o make_v relation_n i_o do_v accept_v and_o first_o i_o prove_v that_o pope_n innocent_a with_o s._n augustine_n and_o all_o the_o western_a church_n do_v false_o interpret_v this_o scripture_n joan._n 6._o except_o you_o eat_v etc._n etc._n and_o that_o to_o maintain_v a_o false_a opinion_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o communion_n for_o all_o person_n and_o even_o infant_n that_o shall_v have_v life_n everlasting_a and_o therefore_o repugnant_a to_o right_a faith_n as_o be_v more_o declare_v in_o the_o 2._o part_n of_o this_o chapter_n second_o i_o note_v diverse_a place_n of_o scripture_n not_o only_o false_o but_o also_o ridiculous_o expound_v in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a to_o maintain_v idolatry_n against_o the_o express_a commandment_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o contrary_a to_o the_o right_a faith_n
of_o this_o book_n of_o bristol_n i_o pray_v you_o sir_n have_v you_o peruse_v and_o allow_v thiâ_n book_n what_o else_o do_v you_o not_o see_v it_o print_v in_o the_o first_o leaf_n peruse_v and_o allow_v by_o i_o thomas_n stapleton_n and_o be_v you_o so_o good_a a_o peruser_n and_o allower_n of_o book_n master_n stapleton_n that_o you_o can_v espy_v in_o they_o chalk_v take_v for_o cheese_n do_v you_o not_o see_v your_o scholar_n bristol_n allege_v saint_n cyrill_n a_o greek_a doctor_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o greek_a text_n lib._n 7._o in_o joan_n cap._n 10._o and_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o there_o be_v no_o such_o book_n of_o cyrill_n the_o ancient_a greek_a doctor_n extant_a but_o it_o be_v poor_a jodocus_n clicthovius_fw-la a_o late_a latin_a writer_n that_o have_v supply_v those_o 4._o book_n of_o cyrill_n that_o be_v lose_v wherefore_o to_o return_v to_o you_o m._n bristol_n except_o your_o council_n be_v better_a and_o savour_n more_o of_o good_a learning_n and_o knowledge_n you_o may_v keep_v it_o for_o your_o friend_n as_o for_o your_o assertion_n without_o doubt_n that_o the_o copy_n which_o your_o authentical_a translator_n follow_v have_v even_o as_o he_o translate_v help_v you_o little_a or_o nothing_o which_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v how_o can_v you_o prove_v that_o he_o translate_v it_o as_o you_o now_o read_v it_o see_v it_o be_v certain_o know_v to_o they_o that_o have_v confer_v his_o translation_n with_o the_o original_n that_o beside_o that_o in_o diverse_a place_n he_o give_v not_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o greek_a in_o many_o text_n also_o he_o be_v corrupt_v where_o he_o have_v translate_v right_o wherefore_o how_o full_o i_o be_o answer_v on_o every_o side_n concern_v this_o text_n as_o you_o boast_v in_o the_o end_n let_v the_o reader_n judge_n in_o the_o last_o place_v you_o set_v down_o my_o word_n ar._n 7._o in_o which_o i_o accuse_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o thrust_v upon_o we_o that_o corrupt_a latin_a translation_n which_o all_o learned_a man_n do_v know_v to_o be_v corrupt_a in_o such_o text_n as_o be_v the_o most_o coulerable_a place_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o popish_a doctrine_n of_o which_o i_o give_v one_o example_n for_o all_o they_o allege_v the_o text_n 1._o cor._n 10._o qui_fw-la stat_fw-la videat_fw-la ne_fw-la cadat_fw-la he_o that_o stand_v let_v he_o take_v heedâ_n he_o fall_v not_o against_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n where_o as_o the_o greek_a have_v not_o he_o that_o stand_v but_o he_o that_o think_v he_o stand_v etc._n etc._n bristol_n bid_v i_o look_v better_o in_o the_o text_n their_o translation_n be_v not_o as_o i_o charge_v it_o but_o even_o as_o i_o say_v the_o greek_a to_o be_v qui_fw-la se_fw-la existimat_fw-la stare_v &c_n &c_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o margin_n he_o bid_v stand_v out_o of_o his_o light_n that_o the_o child_n may_v see_v may_v not_o i_o say_v shore_n up_o your_o eye_n sir_n richard_n and_o see_v that_o i_o do_v not_o say_v the_o text_n be_v so_o translate_v but_o so_o allege_v they_o allege_v the_o text_n qui_fw-la stat_fw-la videat_fw-la ne_fw-la cadat_fw-la and_o if_o you_o require_v my_o author_n who_o allege_v it_o so_o look_v in_o haymo_n upon_o the_o very_a place_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v these_o very_a word_n qui_fw-la stat_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la &_o operibus_fw-la videat_fw-la ne_fw-la cadat_fw-la he_o that_o stand_v in_o faith_n and_o work_v let_v he_o see_v that_o he_o fall_v not_o and_o if_o you_o will_v have_v a_o late_a writer_n that_o so_o allege_v it_o look_v in_o gregory_n martin_n one_o of_o your_o brood_n who_o in_o his_o book_n of_o schism_n allege_v it_o in_o so_o many_o word_n qui_fw-la stat_fw-la videat_fw-la ne_fw-la cadat_fw-la in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n and_o what_o have_v bring_v they_o to_o this_o understanding_n but_o your_o corrupt_a translation_n qui_fw-la se_fw-la existimat_fw-la starâ_n he_o that_o judge_v or_o be_v persuade_v that_o he_o stand_v for_o existimare_fw-la signify_v proper_o to_o judge_v or_o esteem_v upon_o good_a ground_n to_o think_v certeine_o and_o not_o like_o putare_fw-la which_o word_n ambrose_n use_v in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o this_o text_n and_o signify_v to_o think_v vain_o and_o so_o be_v existimare_fw-la use_v by_o your_o translator_n in_o other_o place_n rom._n 6._o ita_fw-la &_o vos_fw-la existimate_n etc._n etc._n so_o you_o esteem_v or_o judge_v yourselves_o to_o be_v dead_a unto_o sin_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o 1._o cor._n 6_o sic_fw-la nos_fw-la existimet_fw-la homo_fw-la ut_fw-la ministros_fw-la christi_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v a_o man_n thus_o esteem_v or_o judge_v of_o we_o as_o of_o the_o minister_n of_o christ._n again_o jac._n 1._o omne_fw-la gaudium_fw-la existimate_n etc._n etc._n my_o brethren_n count_v it_o all_o joy_n when_o you_o fall_v into_o diverse_a temptation_n in_o all_o which_o place_v existimare_fw-la signify_v to_o think_v certeine_o &_o not_o vain_o as_o in_o this_o text_n 1._o cor._n 10._o it_o shall_v be_v qui_fw-la se_fw-la putat_fw-la stare_v he_o that_o vain_o think_v that_o he_o stand_v let_v he_o take_v heed_n that_o he_o fall_v not_o i_o confess_v i_o may_v have_v bring_v a_o hundred_o place_n of_o scripture_n in_o which_o the_o corruption_n be_v more_o clear_a unto_o every_o simple_a man_n understanding_n but_o this_o i_o take_v to_o be_v sufficient_a see_v to_o prove_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o translation_n be_v not_o the_o principal_a matter_n of_o the_o demand_n which_o i_o answer_v but_o to_o yield_v a_o reason_n why_o the_o popish_a church_n do_v not_o as_o well_o corrupt_a the_o text_n of_o the_o testament_n as_o the_o true_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o same_o cap._n vii_o that_o he_o have_v no_o other_o shift_n against_o our_o manifold_a evidence_n bristol_n so_o clear_a they_o be_v but_o the_o name_n of_o only_a scripture_n as_o well_o about_o each_o controversy_n as_o also_o about_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n itself_o and_o how_o timorous_a he_o make_v we_o and_o how_o bold_a he_o bear_v himself_o hereupon_o first_o he_o charge_v i_o with_o shameful_a confession_n that_o i_o have_v be_v fain_o to_o make_v against_o my_o own_o side_n and_o fulke_n for_o their_o side_n which_o what_o they_o be_v you_o have_v hear_v already_o and_o what_o shame_n i_o have_v get_v by_o they_o and_o what_o advantage_n their_o side_n have_v of_o they_o next_o he_o promise_v to_o show_v the_o same_o more_o clear_o by_o run_v over_o those_o common_a evidence_n of_o christian_a truth_n out_o of_o which_o he_o frame_v his_o motive_n and_o demand_n which_o i_o confess_v to_o be_v all_o against_o i_o because_o i_o take_v exception_n against_o they_o &_o say_v that_o only_a scripture_n be_v good_a evidence_n in_o such_o suit_n etc._n etc._n but_o what_o i_o confess_v or_o deny_v of_o those_o evidence_n may_v best_o be_v see_v in_o my_o retentive_a against_o his_o motive_n and_o demand_n the_o first_o part_n how_o he_o except_v by_o only_a scripture_n against_o all_o other_o evidence_n bristol_n in_o the_o controversy_n that_o be_v between_o we_o and_o first_o against_o the_o rule_n to_o know_v heresy_n etc._n etc._n he_o rehearse_v many_o sentence_n of_o my_o mangle_a &_o fulke_n interrupt_v with_o his_o own_o gloss_n in_o which_o i_o profess_v that_o no_o opinion_n be_v heresy_n which_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n although_o it_o be_v account_v heresy_n of_o the_o world_n where_o he_o slaunder_v i_o to_o term_v they_o the_o world_n which_o before_o i_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n the_o place_n art_n 44._o where_o i_o speak_v of_o they_o which_o preach_v in_o these_o late_a time_n against_o popery_n have_v be_v of_o the_o romishe_a church_n condemn_v for_o heretic_n as_o waldo_n wickelief_n hus_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o process_n follow_v where_o i_o say_v that_o if_o aerius_n have_v not_o be_v a_o arrian_n the_o opinion_n he_o hold_v against_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a can_v not_o have_v make_v he_o a_o heretic_n bristol_n count_v my_o say_n to_o be_v blasphemy_n belike_o against_o the_o pope_n kitchen_n add_v that_o it_o seem_v i_o know_v not_o the_o purpose_n of_o augustine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr haer._n which_o he_o say_v be_v the_o purpose_n of_o epiphanius_n also_o not_o to_o confute_v but_o only_o to_o report_v of_o heresy_n that_o have_v benbefore_n his_o time_n see_v it_o be_v enough_o to_o know_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n judgement_n be_v against_o they_o and_o that_o it_o help_v much_o the_o faithful_a heart_n only_o to_o know_v what_o must_v not_o be_v believe_v although_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o confute_v it_o by_o dispute_v and_o why_o seem_v i_o ignorant_a of_o this_o purpose_n except_o it_o be_v because_o i_o say_v that_o neither_o epiphanus_n
nor_o augustine_n reprove_v by_o scripture_n that_o which_o in_o aerius_n they_o count_v to_o be_v a_o error_n but_o the_o case_n be_v so_o clear_a say_v bristol_n that_o the_o very_a adversary_n confess_v that_o it_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n that_o judge_v aerius_n to_o be_v a_o heretic_n yea_o sir_n for_o his_o arrianisme_n but_o i_o never_o confess_v neither_o can_v you_o ever_o prove_v that_o any_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o general_a council_n pass_v against_o aerius_n for_o deny_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a before_o the_o day_n of_o epiphanius_n or_o augustine_n although_o the_o error_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o âead_a in_o that_o age_n be_v common_o receyve_v not_o upon_o any_o good_a ground_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o upon_o a_o corrupt_a custom_n first_o bring_v in_o by_o heretic_n afterward_o where_o i_o follow_v a_o allegory_n of_o dog_n use_v by_o allen_n tell_v he_o that_o he_o must_v not_o teach_v his_o scholar_n to_o bark_v &_o bawl_v against_o we_o nothing_o but_o the_o church_n the_o church_n like_o âinkers_n cur_n etc._n etc._n he_o cry_v out_o in_o the_o margin_n o_o worthy_a estimation_n that_o he_o have_v of_o the_o church_n as_o though_o i_o think_v less_o worthy_o of_o the_o church_n because_o i_o deride_v the_o vain_a boast_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n in_o they_o which_o be_v nothing_o less_o than_o the_o true_a church_n neither_o do_v i_o appoint_v my_o enemy_n not_o to_o invade_v i_o with_o a_o gun_n as_o he_o say_v when_o i_o make_v the_o scripture_n only_o to_o be_v my_o weapon_n both_o invasive_a and_o defensive_a but_o it_o be_v a_o great_a absurdity_n as_o he_o âweeneth_v that_o i_o say_v a_o heretic_n be_v he_o which_o in_o the_o church_n obstinate_o mainteyn_v a_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n see_v s._n john_n say_v exierunt_fw-la a_o nobis_fw-la they_o be_v go_v out_o from_o us._n and_o if_o a_o heretikee_n be_v a_o man_n in_o the_o church_n we_o be_v cockesure_n with_o all_o heretic_n and_o the_o papist_n only_a in_o danger_n why_o bristol_n make_v you_o no_o difference_n between_o he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o he_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v not_o all_o member_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o s._n john_n say_v of_o they_o that_o be_v go_v from_o we_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o we_o they_o will_v have_v tarry_v with_o us._n and_o do_v you_o account_v he_o a_o heretic_n that_o hold_v a_o error_n clean_o out_o of_o the_o church_n then_o may_v you_o count_v all_o pagan_n turk_n and_o jew_n to_o be_v heretic_n what_o say_v you_o of_o antichrist_n that_o sit_v ever_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n it_o help_v not_o heretic_n that_o they_o rise_v up_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n from_o whence_o also_o they_o be_v often_o time_n cast_v out_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o invisible_a church_n and_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n which_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o we_o all_o where_o i_o say_v that_o whosoever_o hold_v a_o opinion_n obstinate_o which_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n although_o he_o have_v many_o author_n before_o he_o yet_o he_o be_v nevertheless_o a_o heretic_n bristol_n add_v in_o the_o margin_n though_o it_o be_v s._n augustine_n himself_o and_o though_o he_o hold_v the_o foundation_n here_o cap._n 5._o touch_v the_o former_a part_n i_o say_v not_o only_o though_o it_o be_v saint_n augustine_n but_o although_o it_o be_v saint_n peter_n himself_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n gal._n 1._o touch_v the_o late_a part_n i_o answer_v my_o meaning_n be_v of_o such_o opinion_n as_o be_v against_o the_o foundation_n and_o so_o be_v my_o whole_a discourse_n purge_v 412._o whence_o this_o say_n be_v borrow_v again_o where_o he_o conclude_v that_o i_o confess_v aerius_n jovinian_a and_o vigilantius_n to_o have_v be_v condemn_v by_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o point_n of_o doctrine_n as_o we_o agree_v with_o he_o i_o answer_v as_o before_o of_o aerius_n alone_o i_o never_o make_v such_o confession_n in_o that_o i_o refuse_v to_o find_v the_o first_o author_n of_o all_o their_o error_n he_o say_v i_o be_o fain_a to_o flee_v to_o my_o cold_a exception_n of_o only_a scripture_n as_o though_o to_o justify_v our_o doctrine_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o so_o sensible_o be_v not_o enough_o o_o sensible_a justification_n by_o which_o all_o error_n who_o first_o author_n can_v be_v find_v must_v be_v lay_v upon_o the_o apostle_n but_o most_o ridiculous_a of_o all_o be_v fulke_n where_o he_o come_v in_o with_o this_o exception_n upon_o tertullians_n rule_n id_fw-la esse_fw-la verum_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v true_a what_o soever_o be_v first_o that_o be_v false_a &_o forge_v which_o be_v late_a but_o how_o shall_v the_o first_o doctrine_n be_v know_v but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wherein_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n be_v teach_v what_o be_v here_o i_o pray_v you_o to_o be_v laugh_v at_o forsooth_o bristol_n say_v tâââullian_n have_v there_o a_o other_o rule_n against_o such_o heresy_n as_o presume_v to_o say_v their_o founder_n live_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o this_o rule_n he_o give_v against_o all_o such_o as_o rise_v any_o time_n after_o as_o aerius_n luther_n caluine_n etc._n etc._n bid_v we_o consider_v what_o be_v teach_v and_o belecue_v immediate_o before_o they_o arise_v for_o that_o undoubted_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o their_o late_a doctrine_n be_v falsehood_n but_o what_o if_o bristol_n take_v richard_n for_o robert_n be_v not_o he_o then_o ridiculous_a the_o rule_n of_o tertullian_n whereof_o i_o speak_v purg._n 410._o &_o ar._n 42._o be_v write_v in_o his_o book_n adversus_fw-la praxeam_fw-la although_o allen_n do_v false_o quote_v it_o de_fw-fr praescriptionibus_fw-la but_o what_o if_o tertullian_n even_o in_o this_o rule_n give_v against_o heretic_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr praescriptionibus_fw-la do_v express_o affirm_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o trial_n of_o that_o which_o ãâã_d former_a and_o true_a to_o convince_v that_o which_o be_v latter_a and_o âlse_a be_v not_o bristol_n most_o ridiculous_a of_o all_o his_o word_n âe_v these_o sed_fw-la ab_fw-la excessu_fw-la revertar_fw-la ad_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la veritatis_fw-la &_o âosteritatem_fw-la mendaciâatis_fw-la deputandam_fw-la ex_fw-la illius_fw-la quoque_fw-la parabo_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o patrocinio_fw-la quae_fw-la bonum_fw-la semen_fw-mi frumenti_fw-la a_o domino_fw-la seminatum_fw-la ârimò_fw-la constituit_fw-la avenarum_fw-la aut_fw-la sterilis_fw-la foeni_fw-la adulterium_fw-la ab_fw-la iniâico_fw-la diabolo_fw-la postea_fw-la superducit_fw-la propriè_fw-la enim_fw-la doctrinarum_fw-la diâtinctionem_fw-la figurat_fw-la quia_fw-la &_o alibi_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la seminis_fw-la similiâdo_fw-la est_fw-la ita_fw-la ex_fw-la ipso_fw-la ordine_fw-la manifestatur_fw-la id_fw-la esse_fw-la dominicum_fw-la &_o âerum_fw-la quod_fw-la sit_fw-la prius_fw-la tradiââm_fw-la id_fw-la autem_fw-la extraneum_fw-la &_o salâum_fw-la quod_fw-la sie_n posterius_fw-la immissum_fw-la ea_fw-la sententia_fw-la manebit_fw-la adverâs_fw-la posteriores_fw-la quasque_fw-la haereses_fw-la quibus_fw-la nulla_fw-la constantia_fw-la de_fw-la conâciencia_fw-la compettt_fw-mi ad_fw-la defendendam_fw-la sibi_fw-la veritatem_fw-la but_o from_o this_o excess_n i_o will_v return_v to_o show_v the_o priority_n of_o truth_n &_o poâterioritie_n of_o falsehood_n even_o out_o of_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o parable_n âhich_v first_o of_o all_o set_v forth_o the_o good_a seed_n of_o wheat_n sow_v ây_a our_o lord_n and_o afterward_o bring_v on_o the_o counterfeit_n of_o oat_n or_o baren_a grass_n by_o the_o enemy_n the_o âivel_n for_o it_o figure_v proper_o the_o difference_n of_o doctrine_n because_o elsewhere_o also_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o similitude_n of_o seed_n so_o by_o the_o very_a order_n it_o be_v make_v manife_a that_o to_o be_v the_o lord_n &_o true_a which_o be_v foremost_a deliver_v that_o to_o be_v strange_a and_o false_a which_o be_v cast_v in_o afterwards_o this_o decree_n shall_v remain_v against_o late_a heresy_n whatsoever_o which_o have_v no_o constancy_n of_o conscience_n to_o deâend_v the_o truth_n to_o be_v on_o the_o irside_n where_o be_v there_o here_o any_o word_n of_o bristow_v gloss_n of_o tertullian_n bid_v we_o consider_v &_o c_o i_o think_v he_o have_v not_o read_v the_o place_n in_o tertullian_n himself_o but_o follow_v some_o papist_n collection_n upon_o it_o and_o because_o he_o can_v not_o avoid_v that_o which_o i_o say_v he_o think_v it_o best_o by_o call_v it_o so_o much_o and_o so_o often_o ridiculous_a to_o laugh_v it_o out_o as_o they_o say_v when_o he_o be_v not_o able_a otherwise_o to_o answer_v it_o likewise_o i_o say_v that_o we_o refuse_v not_o the_o rule_n of_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n concern_v antiquity_n so_o you_o can_v prove_v god_n to_o
your_o doctrine_n because_o you_o do_v not_o justify_v it_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o the_o faithful_a you_o think_v for_o all_o that_o be_v not_o so_o straight_o lace_v but_o believe_v they_o upon_o their_o own_o word_n both_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n because_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n that_o he_o send_v to_o they_o and_o god_n be_v thank_v we_o as_o faithful_a man_n acknowledge_v without_o controversy_n the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n in_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n but_o he_o have_v not_o send_v his_o spirit_n to_o they_o only_o say_v bristol_n but_o also_o to_o his_o church_n after_o they_o for_o ever_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o he_o have_v give_v his_o spirit_n to_o his_o church_n but_o not_o in_o such_o full_a measure_n as_o to_o his_o apostle_n and_o if_o he_o have_v how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o church_n that_o have_v the_o same_o spirit_n but_o by_o trial_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v undoubted_o write_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n bristol_n say_v the_o faithful_a will_n no_o less_o believe_v the_o church_n at_o all_o time_n for_o the_o same_o spirit_n than_o the_o apostle_n he_o must_v first_o prove_v the_o spirit_n so_o give_v to_o the_o church_n that_o she_o can_v no_o more_o err_v in_o her_o decree_n than_o the_o apostle_n can_v in_o their_o writing_n second_o if_o that_o be_v prove_v the_o trial_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v necessary_a to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n from_o all_o false_a congregation_n which_o all_o boast_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n as_o much_o as_o the_o true_a church_n and_o see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o his_o instrument_n s._n john_n bid_v we_o not_o believe_v every_o spirit_n but_o try_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n we_o know_v none_o so_o sure_a a_o trial_n as_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o doctrine_n with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n whether_o it_o be_v a_o multitude_n of_o man_n or_o several_a person_n of_o one_o age_n or_o another_o of_o one_o degree_n or_o other_o that_o offer_v to_o teach_v any_o doctrine_n which_o he_o or_o they_o pretend_v to_o have_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n last_o of_o all_o where_o i_o say_v age_n can_v never_o make_v falsehood_n to_o be_v truth_n and_o therefore_o i_o wây_v not_o your_o proud_a brag_n worth_a a_o straw_n bristol_n note_v in_o the_o margin_n it_o be_v pride_n to_o follow_v the_o father_n and_o humility_n to_o condemn_v they_o whereto_o i_o answer_v to_o boast_v of_o the_o father_n to_o maintain_v a_o old_a error_n be_v stink_a pride_n and_o it_o be_v not_o against_o true_a humility_n to_o make_v father_n and_o mother_n and_o all_o thing_n else_o subject_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n reveal_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o second_o part_n be_v tell_v that_o the_o question_n between_o we_o be_v not_o as_o he_o maek_v bristol_n it_o of_o the_o scripture_n authority_n but_o of_o the_o meaning_n how_o there_o likewise_o against_o all_o the_o expositor_n he_o make_v the_o same_o exception_n of_o only_a scripture_n require_v also_o scripture_n to_o be_v expound_v by_o scripture_n when_o in_o all_o this_o chapter_n you_o deny_v only_a scripture_n fulke_n to_o be_v of_o sovereign_a authority_n sufficiency_n and_o credit_n to_o teach_v we_o all_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v you_o not_o impudent_a to_o say_v the_o question_n be_v not_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o i_o suppose_v the_o controversy_n to_o be_v of_o the_o meaning_n and_o not_o of_o the_o authority_n pur._n 363._o do_v answer_v nothing_o whether_o the_o likelihood_n bâ_n on_o our_o side_n or_o on_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n side_n for_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n what_o then_o i_o answer_v the_o question_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v needless_a in_o that_o controversy_n where_o some_o of_o the_o doctors_z confess_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a not_o to_o be_v ground_v on_o the_o scripture_n other_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n so_o manifest_o that_o the_o papist_n themselves_o be_v ashamed_a to_o use_v those_o text_n for_o such_o purpose_n this_o answer_n i_o trust_v will_v satisfy_v reasonable_a man_n for_o that_o controversy_n after_o this_o he_o say_v i_o count_v myself_o and_o my_o companion_n happy_a for_o such_o blind_a presumption_n to_o search_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n only_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n without_o the_o commentary_n of_o doctor_n but_o as_o he_o trow_v not_o without_o the_o commentary_n of_o caluine_n but_o herein_o as_o in_o all_o thing_n almost_o he_o bely_v i_o for_o i_o never_o speak_v word_n against_o the_o read_n of_o the_o commentary_n of_o doctor_n in_o search_n of_o the_o scripture_n meaning_n but_o only_o against_o absolute_a credit_n to_o be_v give_v to_o their_o exposition_n without_o weigh_v how_o it_o agree_v with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o other_o place_n likewise_o where_o i_o compare_v the_o whole_a heap_n of_o superstition_n &_o error_n out_o of_o which_o allen_n raise_v a_o mist_n of_o man_n devise_n to_o a_o dunghill_n bristol_n note_v that_o i_o make_v the_o doctor_n writing_n a_o dunghill_n surely_n what_o superstition_n or_o error_n so_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o doctor_n as_o the_o sweep_a of_o a_o fair_a house_n be_v meet_v to_o be_v cast_v on_o a_o dunghill_n let_v bristol_n or_o allen_n if_o he_o listen_v say_v there_o be_v no_o superstition_n or_o error_n in_o any_o of_o the_o doctor_n and_o yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o doctor_n writing_n be_v a_o dunghill_n more_o than_o that_o a_o king_n palace_n be_v a_o dunghill_n because_o the_o sweep_n thereof_o be_v meet_v for_o the_o dunghill_n to_o pass_v over_o his_o rail_a term_n of_o drunkenness_n &_o blindness_n etc._n etc._n let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n where_o i_o say_v we_o be_v never_o the_o more_o certain_a of_o the_o truth_n whether_o we_o challenge_v or_o leave_v the_o likelihod_n of_o understanding_n the_o scripture_n to_o the_o doctor_n bristol_n answer_v whosoever_o expound_v the_o scripture_n unto_o that_o wherein_o the_o doctor_n do_v agree_v shall_v be_v ever_o most_o certain_a of_o truth_n which_o be_v enough_o though_o not_o always_o certain_a of_o that_o same_o very_a place_n meaning_n we_o be_v then_o much_o the_o near_a when_o the_o question_n be_v of_o the_o scripture_n meaning_n if_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o doctor_n we_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o the_o scripture_n meaning_n and_o if_o that_o truth_n as_o we_o believe_v that_o all_o truth_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n how_o can_v we_o be_v certain_a of_o the_o truth_n by_o the_o agreement_n of_o the_o doctor_n where_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n where_o i_o answer_v that_o we_o have_v our_o measure_n of_o god_n spirit_n as_o the_o doctor_n have_v although_o we_o agree_v not_o with_o they_o in_o all_o interpretation_n even_o as_o cyprian_a and_o cornelius_n be_v both_o endue_v with_o god_n spirit_n although_o they_o agree_v not_o in_o exposition_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o scripture_n bristol_n repli_v that_o cyprian_n be_v of_o cornelius_n his_o judgement_n implicitè_fw-fr though_o explicitè_fw-fr he_o be_v of_o a_o erroneous_a judgement_n and_o so_o be_v every_o catholic_a err_v of_o ignorance_n in_o effect_n of_o the_o truth_n with_o other_o catholic_n not_o err_a because_o he_o quealy_v continue_v in_o unity_n with_o they_o and_o do_v not_o obstinate_o hold_v his_o error_n against_o they_o but_o so_o be_v not_o the_o case_n between_o the_o old_a doctor_n and_o we_o for_o neither_o will_v we_o be_v reform_v by_o they_o neither_o will_v they_o be_v reform_v by_o aârius_n jovinianus_n etc._n etc._n who_o he_o call_v our_o forefather_n if_o you_o have_v no_o great_a diversity_n than_o this_o the_o case_n will_v be_v all_o one_o for_o neither_o will_v cyprian_n be_v reform_v by_o cornelius_n neither_o will_v cornelius_n be_v reform_n by_o cyprian_a but_o if_o the_o old_a doctor_n have_v hear_v as_o good_a reason_n against_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a of_o catholic_n in_o their_o time_n as_o we_o can_v make_v in_o this_o time_n although_o they_o will_v not_o be_v reform_v by_o aerius_n a_o heretic_n yet_o charity_n move_v we_o to_o think_v they_o will_v have_v yield_v to_o the_o truth_n reveal_v by_o a_o catholic_a where_o i_o conclude_v that_o the_o hard_a place_n of_o scripture_n be_v best_a understand_v by_o conference_n of_o the_o easy_a add_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o wit_n learning_n etc._n etc._n add_v that_o whosoever_o be_v negligent_a in_o this_o search_n may_v eadie_o be_v deceive_v bristol_n note_v a_o comfortable_a do_v ãâ¦ã_o rind_n for_o the_o ignorant_a forsooth_o as_o though_o any_o christi_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o man_n or_o woman_n aught_o to_o be_v ignorant_a in_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o ripture_n
scripture_n ãâ¦ã_o ust_o be_v bring_v and_o hear_v which_o i_o never_o affirm_v but_o ãâ¦ã_o at_o only_a scripture_n be_v sufficient_a and_o of_o sovereign_a au_fw-fr ãâ¦ã_o oritie_n to_o teach_v we_o all_o doctrine_n perteyn_a to_o religion_n ãâ¦ã_o d_o manner_n to_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n whatsoever_o ãâ¦ã_o erefore_o be_v bring_v and_o hear_v must_v be_v examine_v by_o ãâ¦ã_o at_o touchstone_n if_o it_o be_v receive_v of_o christian_n second_o ãâ¦ã_o e_o slaunder_v i_o to_o confess_v that_o all_o other_o evidence_n ãâ¦ã_o e_o evident_a for_o they_o which_o be_v a_o impudent_a lie_n for_o i_o ne_fw-mi ãâ¦ã_o r_o make_v any_o such_o confession_n thus_o have_v alter_v the_o ãâ¦ã_o eat_v of_o the_o controversy_n from_o that_o i_o affirm_v to_o that_o which_o ãâã_d false_o say_v man_n to_o affirm_v he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o a_o ãâ¦ã_o ere_o all_o such_o scripture_n as_o i_o have_v allege_v to_o prove_v that_o ãâã_d all_o matter_n only_a scripture_n must_v be_v bring_v &_o hear_v ãâ¦ã_o and_o first_o he_o quarel_v that_o in_o all_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o arti_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o es_fw-ge i_o have_v cite_v but_o one_o text_n of_o scripture_n for_o that_o pur_fw-mi ãâ¦ã_o se._n where_o he_o may_v more_o true_o say_v i_o have_v cite_v none_o ãâ¦ã_o r_o this_o question_n of_o only_a scripture_n authority_n &_o sufficiency_n be_v none_o of_o the_o demand_n whereunto_o i_o make_v answer_v only_o in_o the_o 4._o article_n &_o 1._o demand_n which_o demand_v what_o church_n have_v vanquish_v all_o heresy_n in_o time_n past_a etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n have_v always_o resist_v all_o ãâ¦ã_o lse_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o fight_v against_o they_o with_o ãâ¦ã_o e_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o aid_n ãâã_d god_n obtain_v the_o victory_n and_o triumph_v ever_o they_o so_o do_v paul_n ãâ¦ã_o ercome_v the_o jew_n act._n 18._o so_o do_v the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a ãâ¦ã_o urch_fw-mi from_o time_n to_o time_n confute_v heresy_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o ãâ¦ã_o eir_fw-mi write_n declare_v that_o by_o they_o they_o be_v to_o be_v confute_v etc._n etc._n to_o ãâ¦ã_o be_v bristol_n answer_v that_o he_o find_v not_o that_o his_o argument_n ãâ¦ã_o against_o the_o jew_n be_v none_o but_o scripture_n wherein_o he_o be_v ãâã_d be_v patdon_v because_o the_o quotation_n be_v a_o miss_n and_o have_v act._n 18._o for_o 28._o in_o which_o chapter_n &_o 23._o ver_fw-la s._n luke_n declare_v how_o he_o prove_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n out_o of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n &_o the_o prophet_n wherefore_o if_o bristol_n have_v remember_v this_o he_o may_v have_v find_v that_o s._n paul_n argument_n be_v the_o same_o against_o the_o jew_n of_o corinth_n which_o he_o use_v against_o the_o jew_n of_o rome_n for_o what_o other_o authority_n shall_v be_v use_v against_o they_o that_o deny_v christ_n &_o believe_v not_o his_o epistle_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o they_o receive_v wherefore_o he_o use_v none_o other_o argument_n but_o take_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n also_o he_o may_v find_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n &_o last_o verse_n that_o apolloâ_n who_o use_v the_o same_o argument_n that_o s._n paul_n do_v prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n that_o jesus_n be_v christ._n if_o he_o will_v cavil_n that_o it_o be_v not_o say_v only_o by_o scripture_n let_v he_o accuse_v s._n luke_n which_o have_v omit_v other_o argument_n necessary_a to_o prove_v jesus_n to_o be_v christ._n but_o read_v you_o act._n 13._o say_v brist_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o he_o use_v against_o the_o jew_n the_o testimony_n of_o certain_a man_n namely_o of_o john_n the_o baptist_n &_o of_o his_o own_o disciple_n this_o be_v as_o good_a a_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o confute_v they_o not_o by_o the_o only_a authority_n of_o god_n word_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o if_o a_o man_n will_v deny_v that_o a_o traitor_n be_v apprehend_v by_o the_o only_a authority_n of_o the_o prince_n because_o the_o constable_n arrest_v he_o &_o the_o justice_n make_v his_o warrant_n to_o the_o jailer_n to_o receive_v he_o john_n the_o baptist_n testify_v nothing_o of_o christ_n but_o that_o which_o be_v write_v of_o he_o before_o in_o the_o scripture_n no_o more_o do_v the_o disciple_n or_o apostle_n of_o christ._n beside_o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o allege_v for_o proof_n of_o any_o doctrine_n concern_v christ_n but_o only_o for_o witness_v of_o a_o fact_n namely_o that_o jesus_n be_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a according_a to_o the_o scripture_n furthermore_o bristol_n will_v âe_a to_o read_v act._n 4._o for_o the_o argument_n of_o miracle_n where_o it_o be_v say_v see_v the_o man_n also_o stand_v with_o peter_n &_o john_n which_o be_v heal_v the_o governor_n have_v nothing_o to_o gainsay_v a_o man_n have_v such_o daily_a exercise_n of_o confer_v of_o scripture_n as_o bristol_n boast_v himself_o to_o have_v may_v have_v allege_v twenty_o place_n more_o proper_a for_o the_o argument_n of_o miracle_n but_o even_o in_o the_o same_o place_n by_o he_o cite_v the_o argument_n of_o miracle_n serve_v not_o to_o prove_v any_o article_n of_o doctrine_n not_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o to_o ãâ¦ã_o onfirme_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v allege_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o prove_v jesus_n to_o be_v christ._n the_o second_o text_n of_o scripture_n be_v in_o the_o book_n of_o pur._n 6._o where_o i_o say_v that_o other_o persuasion_n than_o such_o as_o be_v ground_v upon_o hear_v of_o god_n word_n will_v never_o of_o christian_n be_v count_v for_o true_a belief_n so_o long_o as_o the_o 10._o cap._n to_o the_o râm_n remain_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o bible_n to_o this_o bristol_n answer_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o only_o in_o writing_n but_o in_o preach_v of_o such_o as_o be_v send_v and_o therefore_o we_o account_v it_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o we_o hear_v of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n either_o in_o her_o counsel_n or_o in_o her_o doctor_n or_o any_o other_o for_o so_o say_v god_n to_o the_o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o i_o answer_v that_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o in_o writing_n but_o in_o preach_v in_o counsel_n or_o doctor_n or_o howsocuer_v it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o i_o say_v the_o only_a scripture_n be_v a_o sufficient_a warrant_n for_o i_o &_o every_o christian_n to_o try_v what_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o what_o be_v the_o word_n of_o man_n for_o he_o that_o command_v we_o to_o hear_v the_o apostles_n &_o minister_n will_v we_o not_o to_o believe_v any_o doctrine_n which_o they_o teach_v if_o they_o have_v not_o the_o warrant_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o prove_v unto_o we_o that_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n for_o since_o god_n give_v his_o word_n in_o writing_n all_o spirit_n &_o prophet_n sign_n &_o miracle_n be_v to_o be_v try_v thereby_o deut._n 13._o the_o three_o text_n gal._n 1._o which_o s._n paul_n spéake_v of_o preach_v bristol_n say_v i_o allege_v it_o of_o writing_n &_o of_o only_a writing_n in_o these_o word_n pur._n 449._o it_o vex_v you_o at_o the_o very_a hart_n that_o we_o require_v the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o confirm_v your_o doctrine_n have_v a_o plain_a commandment_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o if_o any_o man_n teach_v otherwise_o they_o the_o word_n of_o god_n allow_v he_o be_v accurse_v first_o he_o charge_v i_o with_o falsification_n by_o change_v but_o what_o change_n i_o have_v make_v let_v the_o lord_n god_n judge_v indeed_o i_o have_v draw_v my_o argument_n from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n because_o they_o be_v the_o only_o certain_a assurance_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o how_o can_v i_o know_v certain_o what_o s._n paul_n preach_v to_o the_o roman_n and_o other_o church_n but_o by_o the_o scripture_n both_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o new_a which_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o man_n wise_a unto_o salvation_n 2._o tim._n 3_o yea_o wherefore_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n write_v but_o to_o assure_v we_o what_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n therefore_o accurse_a be_v he_o that_o say_v the_o new_a testiment_n be_v unperfect_a and_o do_v not_o contain_v in_o write_v all_o point_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o christian_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v to_o their_o salvation_n but_o the_o scripture_n say_v not_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v write_v all_o that_o they_o teach_v say_v bristol_n yes_o very_o and_o that_o i_o prove_v
by_o this_o argument_n the_o scripture_n testify_v that_o all_o which_o the_o apostle_n teach_v be_v first_o teach_v of_o christ_n himself_o before_o they_o heb._n 2._o but_o whatsoever_o christ_n teach_v be_v write_v in_o the_o gospel_n luk._n 1._o act._n 5._o john_n 20._o etc._n etc._n therefore_o whatsoever_o the_o apostle_n teach_v be_v write_v and_o therefore_o the_o church_n pretend_v the_o apostle_n tradition_n receive_v by_o preach_v iâ_n bind_v to_o bring_v forth_o the_o apostles_n writing_n or_o other_o holy_a scripture_n give_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n the_o four_o text_n iâ_n 2._o tim._n 3._o which_o i_o allege_v in_o these_o word_n say_v bristol_n purg._n 410._o all_o goodworke_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a and_o prepare_v to_o all_o good_a work_n first_o he_o take_v exception_n that_o these_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n indeed_o my_o word_n be_v a_o argument_n against_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a ground_v upon_o the_o scripture_n which_o bristol_n suppress_v but_o suppose_v that_o saint_n paul_n have_v say_v so_o what_o a_o fond_a reason_n be_v this_o say_v bristoâ_n because_o one_o evidence_n prove_v all_o therefore_o i_o can_v not_o have_v any_o other_o evidence_n but_o that_o only_a sir_n if_o one_o evidence_n prove_v all_o that_o which_o be_v not_o prove_v by_o that_o evidence_n be_v not_o prove_v at_o all_o but_o if_o to_o prove_v that_o which_o be_v prove_v already_o by_o that_o one_o evidence_n you_o have_v other_o good_a evidence_n no_o man_n let_v you_o to_o use_v they_o wherefore_o this_o be_v no_o fond_a kind_n of_o reason_v master_n brâstow_n but_o such_o as_o the_o best_a logician_n do_v teach_v all_o good_a work_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o that_o which_o be_v not_o teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o good_a work_n but_o now_o s._n paul_n say_v not_o that_o all_o good_a work_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n say_v bristol_n he_o say_v the_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a he_o say_v not_o be_v able_a or_o sufficient_a to_o teach_v all_o good_a work_n again_o he_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o work_n of_o a_o evangelist_n and_o not_o of_o all_o good_a work_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o immediate_o before_o paul_n say_v the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v timothy_n wise_a unto_o salvation_n through_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesu_n but_o no_o man_n can_v be_v wise_a unto_o salvation_n but_o he_o that_o know_v all_o good_a work_n meet_v for_o a_o christian_a man_n to_o do_v therefore_o all_o good_a work_n meet_v for_o a_o christian_a man_n to_o do_v may_v be_v learn_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o even_o in_o this_o very_a text_n where_o he_o say_v all_o the_o scripture_n inspire_v of_o god_n be_v profitable_a to_o teach_v of_o truth_n to_o disprove_v of_o falsehood_n to_o correct_v of_o vice_n to_o instruct_v in_o righteousness_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o evangelist_n be_v perfect_a furnish_v to_o every_o good_a work_n although_o you_o restrain_v every_o work_n to_o the_o only_a work_n of_o a_o evangelist_n yet_o that_o i_o say_v be_v necessary_o conclude_v thereof_o for_o it_o be_v some_o part_n of_o a_o evangelist_n work_v to_o give_v example_n in_o all_o good_a work_n that_o be_v meet_v to_o be_v do_v by_o other_o man_n but_o by_o the_o scripture_n he_o may_v be_v perfect_o furnish_v etc._n etc._n therefore_o all_o good_a work_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n again_o when_o all_o the_o office_n of_o a_o evangelist_n which_o consist_v in_o teach_v dispute_v correct_a instruct_v in_o righteousness_n may_v be_v perfect_o furnish_v at_o the_o scripture_n what_o can_v be_v more_o plain_a to_o prove_v that_o nothing_o ought_v to_o be_v teach_v for_o truth_n disproove_v for_o error_n correct_v for_o vice_n instruct_v for_o righteousness_n but_o that_o which_o be_v teach_v disprove_v correct_v instruct_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n see_v therefore_o that_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n be_v to_o be_v make_v for_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v no_o truth_n to_o deny_v prayer_n to_o be_v profitable_a for_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o disprove_v by_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o error_n to_o omit_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o correct_v in_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o vice_n man_n be_v not_o instruct_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a therefore_o it_o be_v no_o work_n of_o righteousness_n the_o 5._o &_o 6._o text_n i_o allege_v together_o pur._n 434._o search_v the_o scripture_n and_o try_v the_o spirit_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o certainty_n of_o truth_n in_o understand_v the_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v but_o by_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o try_v but_o by_o the_o scripture_n against_o this_o conference_n bristol_n say_v who_o ever_o allege_v scripture_n more_o blind_o and_o why_o so_o i_o pray_v you_o because_o christ_n say_v in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o john_n do_v bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n my_o work_n do_v bear_v witness_n of_o i_o also_o my_o father_n who_o have_v send_v i_o he_o have_v give_v witness_n of_o i_o in_o dèed_n ãâã_d bristol_n can_v prove_v that_o john_n baptist_n christ_n miracle_n or_o god_n his_o father_n do_v testify_v any_o thing_n of_o he_o which_o be_v not_o before_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n neither_o have_v christ_n give_v a_o perfect_a rule_n to_o find_v he_o in_o the_o scripture_n neither_o be_v that_o sentence_n able_a to_o prove_v that_o christ_n may_v be_v sufficient_o learn_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o if_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n the_o father_n do_v all_o confirm_v the_o scripture_n who_o ever_o allege_v scripture_n more_o blind_o than_o bristol_n to_o prove_v that_o christ_n may_v not_o be_v learn_v sufficient_o out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n &_o the_o old_a when_o christ_n send_v the_o jew_n to_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o a_o sufficient_a witness_n of_o he_o concern_v the_o trial_n of_o spirit_n bristol_n bid_v i_o look_v in_o the_o text_n by_o this_o we_o know_v a_o spirit_n of_o truth_n &_o a_o spirit_n of_o error_n namely_o by_o hear_v or_o not_o hear_v of_o the_o apostle_n i_o like_v it_o very_o well_o for_o where_o shall_v we_o hear_v the_o apostle_n speak_v but_o in_o their_o writing_n &_o in_o the_o other_o holy_a writing_n according_a to_o which_o they_o speak_v all_o that_o they_o teach_v wherefore_o here_o be_v no_o trial_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o where_o he_o say_v the_o roman_n do_v most_o manifest_o continue_v in_o that_o they_o hear_v of_o the_o apostle_n because_o no_o man_n can_v name_v that_o time_n the_o novelty_n the_o seducer_n that_o they_o go_v after_o although_o it_o be_v true_a that_o no_o man_n can_v in_o any_o point_n show_v as_o he_o say_v yet_o the_o argument_n be_v naught_o see_v it_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o apostle_n writing_n that_o they_o hold_v many_o thing_n not_o only_o beside_o but_o also_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o 7._o text_n iâ_n pur._n 285._o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o light_n unto_o our_o step_n and_o a_o lantern_n unto_o our_o fear_n therefore_o we_o will_v not_o walk_v in_o the_o darkness_n of_o manâ_n tradition_n the_o faithful_a testimony_n of_o god_n word_n only_o give_v true_a light_n unto_o the_o eye_n but_o the_o prophet_n say_v bristol_n neither_o have_v the_o word_n only_o nor_o say_v that_o god_n word_n be_v not_o but_o in_o writing_n for_o s._n paul_n refer_v that_o text_n to_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o fiâst_a quarrel_n i_o answer_v that_o i_o allege_v not_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n but_o his_o meaning_n which_o bristol_n can_v deny_v to_o be_v the_o only_a word_n of_o god_n that_o give_v ãâ¦ã_o we_o light_n to_o the_o eye_n that_o god_n word_n be_v not_o but_o in_o ãâ¦ã_o rit_n i_o never_o say_v or_o think_v but_o that_o there_o be_v no_o ãâ¦ã_o erteintie_n of_o god_n word_n but_o in_o the_o scripture_n i_o affirm_v ãâ¦ã_o and_o that_o the_o apostle_n preach_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o ãâ¦ã_o as_o before_o contain_v though_o not_o so_o clear_o in_o the_o law_n ãâ¦ã_o and_o the_o prophet_n last_o of_o all_o you_o allege_v and_o say_v against_o judas_n ma_fw-fr ãâ¦ã_o abaeus_fw-la say_v bristol_n pur._n 210._o in_o the_o law_n not_o so_o much_o âs_v one_o pin_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n be_v omit_v lest_o any_o âhing_n may_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o will_n of_o man_n to_o devise_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n you_o shall_v not_o do_v say_v the_o lord_n what_o seem_v good_a in_o your_o
not_o say_v that_o s._n paul_n may_v be_v deceive_v in_o his_o writing_n &_o epistle_n &_o no_o more_o may_v the_o church_n be_v i_o answer_v if_o s._n paul_n have_v proceed_v further_o in_o prophesy_v then_o according_a to_o such_o knowledge_n as_o he_o have_v by_o revelation_n &_o argumentation_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n he_o may_v have_v err_v that_o he_o do_v not_o err_v in_o his_o writing_n it_o be_v not_o because_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o he_o to_o err_v but_o because_o he_o do_v write_v nothing_o but_o that_o he_o have_v either_o by_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n spirit_n or_o by_o argumentation_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o except_o the_o church_n have_v such_o warrant_n as_o the_o apostle_n &_o elder_n have_v by_o revelation_n &_o the_o scripture_n act._n 15._o she_o can_v true_o say_v it_o have_v be_v think_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o us._n the_o 3._o text_n be_v ar._n 88_o where_o i_o say_v it_o be_v true_a that_o s._n ãâ¦ã_o gustine_n say_v even_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v teach_v to_o say_v ãâ¦ã_o ry_o day_n forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n but_o why_o so_o say_v ãâ¦ã_o stow_z because_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v err_v in_o she_o de_fw-fr ãâ¦ã_o mination_n every_o day_n it_o be_v ridiculous_a so_o to_o say_v ãâ¦ã_o t_o augustine_n speak_v for_o we_o both_o propter_fw-la quasdam_fw-la igno_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o tias_fw-la &_o infirmitates_fw-la membrorum_fw-la suorum_fw-la for_o certain_a ig_fw-mi ãâ¦ã_o rance_z and_o infirmity_n of_o her_o member_n the_o whole_a ãâ¦ã_o urch_fw-mi for_o the_o ignorance_n of_o her_o member_n must_v say_v for_o ãâ¦ã_o we_o we_o our_o debt_n but_o the_o whole_a church_n need_v not_o say_v ãâã_d except_o she_o may_v be_v deceive_v through_o the_o ignorance_n of_o ãâ¦ã_o r_o member_n therefore_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v be_v decei_fw-mi ãâ¦ã_o d_o apostle_n and_o all_o which_o do_v not_o err_v in_o their_o write_n ãâ¦ã_o d_o determination_n because_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o ãâã_d to_o do_v whatsoever_o they_o have_v write_v or_o determine_v ãâ¦ã_o t_o because_o in_o their_o writing_n and_o determination_n they_o ãâ¦ã_o ere_o direct_v by_o such_o revelation_n as_o they_o have_v according_a ãâã_d the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o 4_o text_n be_v that_o the_o whole_a synagogue_n do_v err_v but_o ãâ¦ã_o ot_fw-mi the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o but_o in_o a_o fact_n not_o in_o ãâ¦ã_o octrine_n nor_o the_o whole_a synagogue_n but_o a_o piece_n only_o ãâ¦ã_o hich_v be_v the_o example_n of_o david_n carry_v the_o ark_n of_o ãâ¦ã_o odd_a upon_o a_o new_a chariot_n which_o shall_v have_v be_v carry_v ãâ¦ã_o d_o upon_o man_n shoulder_n 1._o chron._n 13._o so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o ãâ¦ã_o sse_o than_o three_o wall_n say_v bristol_n between_o the_o church_n ãâ¦ã_o and_o your_o shot_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n i_o will_v show_v ãâ¦ã_o hat_n they_o be_v all_o but_o paper_n wall_n that_o be_v erect_v against_o the_o truth_n of_o âod_n to_o bind_v it_o to_o the_o person_n or_o place_n of_o man_n first_o say_v bristol_n it_o be_v the_o synagogue_n and_o not_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n why_o bristol_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n before_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o flesh_n at_o least_o remember_v that_o s._n paul_n write_v 1._o cor._n 10._o al_n our_o father_n be_v baptize_v and_o communicate_v with_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n or_o else_o find_v we_o some_o other_o way_n of_o salvation_n then_o in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n who_o member_n whosoever_o be_v not_o be_v sure_a of_o damnation_n or_o say_v that_o the_o jew_n be_v the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n the_o second_o wall_n that_o this_o be_v a_o fact_n and_o no_o doctrine_n be_v soon_o blow_v down_o if_o we_o do_v consider_v that_o the_o fact_n have_v never_o be_v attempt_v but_o that_o it_o be_v though_o ãâ¦ã_o lawful_a and_o godly_a which_o be_v a_o error_n in_o doctrine_n the_o third_o wall_n be_v that_o the_o whole_a synagogue_n err_v noâ_n for_o he_o do_v not_o consult_v with_o the_o priest_n say_v bristol_n w_o ãâ¦ã_o with_o his_o tribune_n centurion_n &_o noble_n but_o only_o which_o ãâ¦ã_o the_o lord_n temporal_a &_o hereupon_o he_o note_v my_o be_v ãâ¦ã_o lie_v blindness_n but_o much_o rather_o may_v i_o note_v his_o m_o ãâ¦ã_o strous_a and_o more_o than_o beastly_a impudence_n where_o the_o ãâã_d according_a to_o his_o own_o vulgar_a translation_n add_v to_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o who_o he_o name_v et_fw-la ait_fw-la ad_fw-la omnem_fw-la coeâum_fw-la israel_n and_o ãâã_d the_o whole_a congregation_n of_o israel_n if_o it_o please_v you_o quoâ_n he_o and_o if_o the_o motion_n be_v of_o god_n let_v we_o send_v unto_o ãâã_d rest_n of_o our_o brethren_n in_o all_o the_o coast_n of_o israel_n and_o ãâã_d the_o priest_n and_o levit_n which_o dwell_v in_o the_o suburb_n of_o the_o â_z that_o they_o may_v be_v gather_v unto_o we_o etc._n etc._n these_o say_v bristol_n be_v as_o you_o will_v say_v the_o hedge_n priest_n very_o well_o ergo_fw-la all_o the_o head_n priest_n be_v present_a for_o otherwise_o how_o can_v it_o be_v a_o perfect_a congregation_n of_o israel_n where_o there_o want_v the_o principal_a member_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n for_o their_o tribe_n and_o degree_n and_o when_o he_o say_v let_v we_o send_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o brethren_n and_o those_o which_o he_o send_v to_o of_o that_o degree_n be_v none_o but_o ãâã_d it_o be_v hedge_v priest_n as_o bristol_n affirm_v who_o will_v doubt_v but_o the_o chief_a priest_n be_v present_a except_o he_o think_v they_o be_v not_o brethren_n unto_o the_o rest_n but_o three_o month_n after_o say_v bristol_n have_v find_v out_o his_o error_n he_o gather_v not_o only_o all_o israel_n use_v jerusalem_n but_o also_o the_o son_n of_o aaron_n sadoc_n and_o abiathar_n etc._n etc._n ãâã_d though_o they_o be_v no_o part_n of_o israel_n but_o these_o say_v bristol_n he_o gather_v as_o two_o bishop_n and_o six_o other_o as_o it_o be_v archdeacon_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o you_o that_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o leviticall_a family_n prepare_v yourselves_o with_o your_o brethren_n and_o bring_v the_o ark_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n to_o the_o place_n which_o be_v dress_v for_o it_o lest_o that_o as_o before_o because_o you_o be_v not_o present_a our_o lord_n do_v smâte_v we_o so_o now_o also_o it_o happen_v for_o our_o unlawful_a do_v the_o word_n that_o bristol_n take_v hold_v off_o in_o his_o vulgar_a translation_n be_v that_o these_o principal_a priest_n and_o levite_n be_v not_o present_a which_o as_o before_o it_o be_v prove_v ãâ¦ã_o e_o so_o be_v they_o not_o in_o the_o hebrew_n text_n lo_o attâm_n noâ_n ãâ¦ã_o the_o verb_n be_v understand_v which_o be_v in_o the_o sentence_n before_o ãâ¦ã_o t_o omit_v which_o now_o they_o be_v command_v to_o do_v ãâ¦ã_o t_o be_v to_o carry_v the_o ark_n so_o the_o sense_n be_v because_o you_o do_v ãâã_d carry_v it_o and_o not_o because_o you_o be_v absent_a for_o beside_o ãâ¦ã_o t_o have_v be_v say_v before_o of_o all_o the_o chief_a priest_n in_o ãâ¦ã_o nerall_a how_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o aminadab_n one_o of_o ãâã_d six_o be_v absent_a when_o the_o ark_n be_v first_o bring_v ãâ¦ã_o t_o of_o his_o house_n who_o if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v deceive_v shall_v ãâ¦ã_o we_o tell_v the_o king_n of_o his_o error_n before_o the_o 5._o text_n be_v ar._n 86._o where_o i_o say_v the_o true_a and_o only_o ãâ¦ã_o rch_v of_o christ_n can_v never_o be_v void_a of_o god_n spirit_n and_o yeâ_n sheâ_n ãâ¦ã_o y_fw-es err_v from_o the_o truth_n and_o be_v deceive_v in_o some_o thinger_n âuen_o ãâ¦ã_o there_o be_v no_o true_a christian_a man_n that_o be_v void_a of_o god_n spirit_n yeâ_n ãâ¦ã_o y_fw-es every_o true_a christian_a err_v etc._n etc._n this_o my_o sophism_n say_v ãâ¦ã_o istowe_v consist_v in_o speak_v confuse_o of_o god_n spi_v ãâ¦ã_o e_o as_o though_o the_o gift_n of_o it_o be_v one_o in_o the_o whole_a church_n ãâ¦ã_o d_o in_o every_o particular_a true_a christian_n man_n but_o i_o say_v ãâ¦ã_o t_o clean_o contrary_a to_o that_o he_o charge_v i_o i_o distin_a ãâ¦ã_o be_v of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n concern_v adop_n ãâ¦ã_o n_z that_o be_v in_o every_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a by_o which_o he_o ãâã_d privilege_v from_o err_v unto_o damnation_n and_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o rite_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v not_o give_v in_o such_o measure_n ei_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o r_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o to_o every_o member_n but_o that_o ãâ¦ã_o ey_fw-ge may_v err_v in_o some_o thing_n though_o not_o final_o in_o ãâ¦ã_o atter_n necessary_a unto_o salvation_n as_o for_o the_o promise_n ãâ¦ã_o
bristol_n say_v that_o may_v be_v and_o yet_o the_o church_n not_o be_v in_o their_o sight_n a_o contemptible_a company_n no_o more_o than_o the_o old_a roman_n and_o turk_n be_v to_o we_o though_o we_o contemn_v their_o religion_n i_o answer_v i_o speak_v of_o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o church_n &_o not_o of_o the_o person_n of_o man_n which_o often_o time_n be_v great_a emperor_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o place_n matth._n 10._o you_o shall_v be_v hate_v of_o all_o man_n ãâ¦ã_o r_o my_o name_n sake_n bristol_n infer_v the_o company_n that_o ãâã_d hate_a be_v not_o always_o contemptible_a i_o confess_v neither_o âid_v i_o bring_v that_o text_n but_o to_o show_v the_o perpetual_a hatred_n âf_o the_o world_n against_o the_o church_n but_o cyprian_n write_v âhat_n decius_n be_v more_o patient_a to_o hear_v that_o a_o emperor_n ãâ¦ã_o as_o set_v up_o against_o he_o then_o that_o a_o other_o priest_n shall_v âe_v ordain_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o place_n of_o fabianus_n this_o say_v bristol_v be_v not_o contempt_n but_o of_o fear_n although_o i_o âeny_v not_o but_o tyrant_n fear_v the_o church_n of_o god_n more_o than_o âhey_n have_v cause_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o earthly_a kingdom_n ãâ¦ã_o t_o it_o follow_v not_o but_o they_o do_v also_o contemn_v it_o and_z ãâ¦ã_o ink_n their_o power_n great_a and_o their_o glory_n superior_a untâ_n it_o and_o in_o the_o example_n of_o decius_n his_o indignation_n be_v âhe_n great_a because_o the_o base_a and_o contemptible_a company_n of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o esteem_v they_o dare_v choose_v a_o âther_n bishop_n after_o he_o have_v slay_v fabianus_n purpose_v to_o destroy_v the_o church_n utter_o that_o i_o allege_v 1._o cor._n 1._o not_o many_o wise_a man_n etc._n etc._n he_o ââyeth_v it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n but_o not_o always_o and_o so_o i_o do_v blind_o allege_v the_o text_n against_o ây_a self_n because_o afterward_o the_o text_n say_v the_o wise_a themselves_o and_o the_o strong_a be_v confound_v that_o be_v to_o say_v convert_v ãâã_d deed_n if_o confusion_n and_o conversion_n be_v all_o one_o it_o be_v ââmewhat_o that_o you_o say_v but_o how_o will_v the_o text_n bear_v ââat_v beside_z the_o improprietie_n of_o the_o speech_n that_o god_n have_v ãâ¦ã_o osen_n the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n that_o he_o may_v convert_v the_o wiseman_n and_o the_o weak_a that_o he_o may_v conâert_v the_o strong_a last_o of_o all_o god_n have_v choose_v the_o inno_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o e_o and_o contemptible_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n and_o those_o âhings_n which_o be_v not_o that_o he_o may_v destroy_v those_o thing_n âat_a be_v as_o you_o say_v to_o confound_v be_v to_o convert_v so_o you_o here_o best_a say_v to_o destroy_v be_v to_o save_v or_o else_o you_o can_v ââroove_v the_o multitude_n of_o wise_a noble_a and_o honourable_a person_n that_o god_n have_v choose_v to_o be_v great_a than_o those_o âhat_n be_v reject_v as_o for_o the_o text_n of_o esay_n 60._o &_o 10._o âited_v by_o you_o and_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o spiritual_a glory_n of_o the_o church_n not_o deliver_v she_o from_o the_o contemptof_o the_o world_n where_o and_o among_o who_o she_o be_v a_o stranger_n that_o the_o church_n be_v and_o also_o shall_v become_v invisiblâ_n concern_v the_o invisiblenes_n of_o the_o church_n bristol_n bristol_n say_v i_o allege_v so_o as_o no_o sober_a man_n will_v so_o that_o âelike_o fulke_n he_o will_v drive_v i_o to_o purge_v myself_o of_o drunkenness_n as_o the_o apostle_n be_v fainâ_n to_o doâ_n act_n 2._o but_o what_o say_v ãâã_d not_o sound_v of_o sobriety_n one_o while_n that_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o see_v at_o all_o of_o man_n because_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n gal._n 4._o and_o here_o he_o ask_v if_o every_o member_n be_v not_o in_o heaven_n as_o the_o apostle_n faith_n our_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n phil._n 3._o and_o peter_n the_o apostle_n wââ_n see_v of_o all_o man_n i_o answer_v although_o man_n be_v see_v iâ_n earth_n yet_o their_o conversation_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v not_o see_v nor_o they_o themselves_o as_o they_o be_v in_o heaven_n with_o christ_n which_o be_v our_o life_n col._n 3._o ver_fw-la 3._o etc._n etc._n so_o much_o moââ_n the_o universal_a church_n be_v a_o spiritual_a conjunction_n oâ_n all_o the_o member_n unto_o christ_n their_o head_n in_o heaven_n be_v noâ_n to_o be_v see_v with_o bodily_a eye_n upon_o earth_n but_o another_o while_o i_o say_v ar._n 80._o it_o suffice_v that_o the_o church_n be_v know_v to_o christ_n the_o head_n as_o he_o say_v my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o i_o know_v they_o and_o to_o they_o yâ_z be_v the_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n here_o bristol_n quarel_v with_o i_o if_o your_o text_n import_n that_o it_o suffice_v to_o be_v know_v to_o the_o head_n why_o do_v you_o jumble_v in_o the_o member_n afterward_o whether_o he_o be_v sober_a that_o understandeââ_n not_o a_o copulative_a proposition_n let_v wise_a man_n judge_v and_o yet_o the_o text_n prove_v as_o well_o the_o sheep_n to_o know_v one_o another_o by_o hear_v christ_n voice_n as_o christ_n know_v they_o by_o his_o divine_a election_n and_o providence_n but_o bââstowe_n so_o great_a a_o craft_n man_n of_o good_a conclusion_n d_o ãâ¦ã_o death_n this_o consequence_n christ_n know_v his_o sheep_n ãâã_d the_o church_n forsooth_o may_v be_v invisible_a and_o so_o he_o may_v for_o it_o be_v of_o his_o own_o make_n and_o not_o of_o i_o i_o have_v no_o more_o to_o prove_v but_o that_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v head_n of_o a_o unknowen_a body_n because_o he_o know_v his_o own_o body_n and_o the_o member_n know_v one_o another_o although_o neither_o he_o nor_o they_o be_v know_v unto_o the_o world_n yet_o another_o while_n i_o allege_v that_o though_o not_o always_o ãâ¦ã_o et_fw-fr at_o one_o certain_a time_n it_o shall_v become_v invisible_a at_o ãâ¦ã_o he_o come_n of_o antichrist_n or_o rather_o when_o antichrist_n ãâ¦ã_o at_o h_o prevail_v i_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o world_n &_o of_o the_o invisiblenes_n unto_o the_o wicked_a world_n what_o scripture_n have_v you_o for_o that_o say_v bristol_n ar._n 27._o &_o 77._o it_o âas_v prophesy_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v fly_v into_o the_o wilderness_n the_o defection_n which_o saint_n paul_n speak_v of_o concern_v the_o church_n invisiblenesse_n i_o have_v proâed_v how_o substantial_a the_o argument_n be_v before_o cap._n 7._o par._n 4._o but_o now_o bristol_n oppose_v scripture_n to_o prove_v âhat_n the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v both_o âisible_a and_o universal_a for_o there_o shall_v be_v preach_a all_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n by_o the_o true_a witness_n apoc._n 11._o even_o 1260._o day_n or_o 42._o month_n which_o come_v to_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a but_o after_o they_o be_v slay_v and_o âlye_v unbury_v 3._o day_n and_o a_o half_a which_o be_v also_o the_o time_n of_o antichristes_n tyranny_n and_o the_o great_a ruff_n of_o âis_n cruelty_n who_o shall_v preach_v then_o open_o against_o antichrist_n for_o of_o such_o preach_n we_o speak_v but_o lest_o you_o shall_v imagine_v these_o day_n to_o be_v common_a day_n of_o 24._o hour_n long_o as_o you_o seem_v to_o do_v of_o the_o 1260._o day_n etc._n etc._n you_o may_v see_v that_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n can_v not_o have_v time_n to_o publish_v their_o death_n and_o send_v gift_n etc._n etc._n in_o so_o short_a a_o season_n as_o three_o day_n and_o a_o half_a of_o natural_a day_n account_n but_o you_o say_v the_o preach_n shall_v be_v as_o general_a as_o the_o persecution_n that_o can_v be_v of_o so_o small_a 2_o number_n of_o witness_n for_o that_o you_o quote_v apoc._n 14._o pertain_v to_o the_o time_n of_o antichristes_n consumption_n toward_o the_o end_n and_o his_o final_a destruction_n for_o immediate_o follow_v the_o angel_n show_v the_o fall_n of_o babylon_n last_o of_o all_o you_o object_n apoc._n 20._o that_o the_o persecutor_n be_v in_o number_n as_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n shall_v over_o the_o wide_a world_n compass_v the_o camp_n of_o the_o faithful_a &_o the_o city_n of_o god_n therefore_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n universal_a &_o super_fw-la latitudinem_fw-la terrae_fw-la i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v universal_a in_o her_o great_a strait_n &_o disperse_v over_o all_o the_o earth_n when_o she_o be_v flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n which_o signify_v her_o desolate_a condition_n &_o not_o her_o place_n wout_z the_o world_n but_o neither_o of_o both_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o text_n before_o allege_v for_o it_o follow_v not_o although_o thâ_n enemy_n with_o their_o multitude_n shall_v come_v
all_o true_a doctrine_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n purgatory_n be_v not_o teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o purgatory_n be_v no_o true_a doctrine_n bristol_n deny_v both_o the_o mayor_n and_o minor_fw-la the_o mayor_n i_o have_v prove_v in_o this_o chapter_n part_v 1._o after_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o 8._o text_n of_o scripture_n the_o minor_a he_o will_v prove_v to_o be_v false_a by_o these_o reason_n first_o purgatory_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o maccabee_n which_o he_o say_v be_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o i_o also_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n in_o the_o third_o counce_v ãâ¦ã_o of_o carthage_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v canonical_a if_o any_o other_o scripture_n be_v canonical_a suppose_v that_o which_o be_v false_a that_o the_o macabee_n be_v canonical_a yet_o be_v not_o purgatory_n prove_v by_o they_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a do_v not_o necessary_o draw_v purgatory_n after_o it_o the_o grecian_n of_o long_a time_n have_v use_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a yet_o they_o do_v not_o receive_v the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n but_o to_o prove_v the_o maccabee_n to_o be_v canonical_a he_o cit_v the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n wherein_o the_o two_o book_n of_o maccabee_n be_v account_v amongst_o the_o rest_n but_o there_o be_v also_o five_o book_n of_o solomon_n whereas_o we_o know_v there_o be_v only_o three_o namely_o the_o proverbe_n the_o canticle_n and_o the_o preacher_n therefore_o that_o canon_n proove_v a_o manifest_a error_n of_o the_o council_n to_o allow_v five_o book_n of_o solomon_n in_o steed_n of_o three_o let_v bristol_n now_o bring_v out_o the_o four_o and_o five_o book_n of_o solomon_n and_o say_v they_o be_v canonical_a if_o any_o other_o scripture_n be_v canon_n nicall_a the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n more_o ancient_a name_v not_o the_o maccabee_n hierome_n a_o priest_n of_o rome_n express_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v canonical_a praefatione_fw-la ân_fw-la proverbia_fw-la ruffinus_n also_o in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n affirm_v the_o church_n not_o to_o receive_v they_o as_o canonical_a beside_o so_o many_o argument_n as_o the_o book_n themselves_o do_v minister_v which_o agree_v that_o they_o be_v write_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n and_o not_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o proceed_v bristol_n say_v that_o purgatory_n be_v teach_v so_o plain_o 1._o john_n 5._o that_o i_o can_v not_o avoid_v the_o place_n but_o by_o fall_v into_o this_o horrible_a absurdity_n that_o we_o may_v not_o pray_v for_o all_o man_n live_v i_o say_v in_o deed_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o that_o sin_n unto_o death_n of_o which_o john_n say_v i_o say_v not_o that_o you_o shall_v pray_v for_o it_o or_o that_o any_o man_n shall_v pray_v for_o it_o as_o your_o vulgar_a translation_n have_v it_o but_o how_o it_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o that_o place_n he_o say_v never_o a_o word_n last_o of_o all_o purgatory_n be_v teach_v say_v bristol_n special_o against_o you_o sir._n john_n 11._o for_o you_o say_v after_o your_o manner_n pass_v confident_o that_o martha_n and_o marie_n as_o the_o scripture_n be_v manifest_a do_v not_o hope_v for_o any_o restitution_n of_o their_o brother_n lazarus_n to_o his_o body_n before_o the_o general_a resurrection_n if_o that_o be_v so_o manifest_a what_o else_o be_v it_o then_o but_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o soul_n that_o martha_n will_v have_v christ_n to_o pray_v for_o when_o she_o say_v thus_o unto_o he_o but_o also_o now_o i_o know_v that_o what_o soever_o thing_n thou_o shall_v ask_v of_o god_n god_n will_v grant_v thou_o to_o which_o purpose_n also_o some_o ancient_a writer_n expound_v the_o place_n thus_o far_o bristol_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o sir_n why_o do_v you_o not_o tell_v we_o the_o name_n at_o least_o of_o those_o ancient_a writer_n that_o so_o expound_v the_o place_n peradventure_o they_o be_v not_o worth_a the_o name_n but_o be_v you_o such_o a_o cunning_a disputer_fw-la ex_fw-la concessis_fw-la to_o wrest_v that_o i_o say_v of_o martha_n and_o marie_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n to_o all_o time_n after_o as_o though_o i_o say_v that_o they_o never_o hope_v for_o their_o brother_n restitution_n because_o they_o hope_v not_o before_o christ_n come_v to_o bethanie_n as_o allen_n impudent_o coniecture_v that_o lazatus_fw-la be_v restore_v to_o his_o body_n at_o their_o prayer_n make_v at_o his_o tomb_n where_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o prayer_n but_o of_o lamentation_n only_o i_o can_v not_o tell_v whether_o i_o shall_v here_o require_v in_o you_o more_o wit_n or_o honesty_n or_o else_o less_o impudence_n &_o malice_n but_o this_o be_v your_o purpose_n of_o cavil_v and_o quaril_v when_o you_o dare_v not_o attempt_v the_o confutation_n of_o my_o bookein_n such_o plain_a order_n as_o i_o answer_v allen_n but_o in_o this_o confuse_v manner_n to_o bring_v all_o my_o argument_n first_o out_n of_o joint_n and_o then_o to_o play_v with_o they_o at_o your_o pleasure_n 2_o ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la scripturae_fw-la affirmatiuè_fw-fr first_n about_o certain_a bristol_n foundation_n of_o purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a i_o say_v the_o word_n of_o god_n overthrow_v the_o popish_a distinction_n of_o sin_n mortal_a &_o venial_a show_v that_o fulke_n all_o sin_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n deserve_v eternal_a death_n and_o yet_o all_o by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v pardonable_a or_o venial_a except_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bristol_n say_v that_o i_o here_o grant_v the_o doctrine_n and_o yet_o deny_v the_o distinction_n which_o be_v utter_o false_a for_o that_o all_o sin_n deserve_v eternal_a death_n and_o yet_o be_v pardonable_a it_o overthrow_v the_o doctrine_n and_o distinction_n both_o for_o the_o papist_n hold_v that_o there_o be_v some_o sin_n so_o small_a as_o they_o deserve_v not_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n eternal_a damnation_n as_o bristol_n immediate_o hereafter_o confess_v where_o he_o deni_v that_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n pronounce_v deut._n 27._o and_o gal._n 3._o against_o all_o they_o that_o abide_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n write_v in_o the_o law_n extend_v not_o unto_o eternal_a death_n say_v that_o hang_n on_o tree_n or_o crucify_a be_v not_o eternal_a death_n and_o yet_o be_v accurse_v of_o god_n deut._n 21._o again_o every_o one_o in_o the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o mean_v of_o christian_n but_o of_o they_o which_o trust_v in_o the_o law_n itself_o &c._n &c._n do_v you_o not_o hear_v plain_o the_o old_a serpent_n voice_n nequaquam_fw-la moriemini_fw-la tush_o you_o shall_v not_o die_v the_o curse_n of_o god_n do_v not_o bring_v eternal_a death_n you_o need_v not_o be_v so_o great_o afraid_a of_o it_o &_o c_o but_o where_o learn_v you_o bristol_n that_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n which_o be_v upon_o he_o that_o hang_v on_o tree_n be_v not_o a_o visible_a token_n that_o he_o deserve_v eternal_a death_n be_v âot_n the_o text_n plain_a against_o you_o deut._n 21._o when_o a_o man_n âath_v sin_v worthy_a of_o death_n and_o be_v judge_v to_o death_n &_o âanged_v on_o the_o tree_n his_o carcase_n shall_v not_o remain_v upon_o ãâ¦ã_o e_o tree_n but_o shall_v be_v bury_v the_o same_o day_n for_o he_o be_v accur_v ãâ¦ã_o d_o of_o god_n that_o be_v hang_v on_o the_o tree_n therefore_o thou_o ãâ¦ã_o alt_z not_o defile_v the_o land_n which_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n have_v âiven_v thou_o to_o possess_v he_o be_v not_o therefore_o accurse_v because_o he_o be_v hang_v on_o the_o tree_n if_o he_o be_v innocent_a but_o because_o he_o have_v sin_v worthy_a of_o death_n &_o so_o be_v hang_v ãâã_d which_o respect_n our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v hang_v on_o ãâ¦ã_o e_o tree_n though_o most_o innocent_a in_o his_o own_o person_n ãâ¦ã_o et_fw-fr bear_v the_o guiltiness_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n become_v accurse_v for_o we_o not_o to_o discharge_v we_o of_o such_o a_o curse_n ãâã_d do_v not_o bring_v eternal_a death_n but_o by_o your_o imagi_n ãâ¦ã_o tion_n may_v fall_v upon_o a_o innocent_a person_n but_o ãâã_d redeem_v we_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n which_o we_o âave_n incur_v more_o than_o ten_o thousand_o time_n through_o ãâ¦ã_o r_o manifold_a sin_n and_o transgression_n and_o that_o ãâ¦ã_o e_o curse_v pronounce_v deuteronom_n 27._o bring_v with_o it_o ãâ¦ã_o e_o pain_n of_o eternal_a death_n i_o wish_v every_o man_n ãâ¦ã_o at_o will_v not_o be_v deceive_v with_o the_o flatter_a voice_n ãâ¦ã_o f_o the_o serpent_n to_o give_v ear_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n âhere_o he_o shall_v see_v that_o this_o be_v a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o rse_n solemn_o to_o be_v pronounce_v by_o the_o levite_n ãâã_d which_o amen_o be_v to_o be_v answer_v of_o all_o the_o people_n âgainst_a idolater_n curser_n
and_o which_o of_o the_o old_a writer_n except_o chrysostome_n once_o go_v about_o to_o allege_v scripture_n for_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a wherefore_o i_o make_v no_o vain_a brag_n in_o say_v most_o of_o the_o old_a writer_n that_o defend_v such_o prayer_n confess_v they_o have_v they_o not_o of_o the_o scripture_n of_o certain_a particular_a text_n bristol_n i_o say_v that_o saint_n augustine_n be_v clear_a that_o the_o text_n 1._o fulke_n cor._n 3._o of_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v through_o fire_n prove_v not_o purgatory_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o fire_n of_o tribulation_n in_o this_o life_n bristol_n cavil_v that_o he_o affirm_v not_o but_o speak_v doubtful_o etc._n etc._n say_v that_o he_o only_o show_v it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v expound_v after_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o origeniste_n of_o hell_n fire_n but_o augustine_n word_n be_v plain_a ignis_fw-la enim_fw-la de_fw-la quolocutus_fw-la est_fw-la eo_fw-la loco_fw-la apoâtolus_n talis_fw-la debet_fw-la intelligi_fw-la ut_fw-la ambo_fw-la per_fw-la eum_fw-la transeant_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o the_o fire_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o place_n speak_v aught_o to_o be_v understand_v such_o that_o both_o may_v pass_v through_o it_o that_o be_v both_o he_o that_o build_v upon_o this_o foundation_n gold_n silver_n precious_a stone_n and_o he_o also_o which_o build_v wood_n straw_n stubble_n for_o when_o he_o have_v say_v this_o he_o add_v the_o fire_n shall_v try_v every_o man_n work_n such_o as_o it_o be_v if_o any_o man_n work_n remain_v that_o which_o he_o have_v build_v upon_o he_o shall_v receive_v reward_n but_o if_o any_o man_n work_n be_v burn_v he_o shall_v suffer_v loss_n but_o he_o himself_o shall_v be_v save_v yet_o so_o as_o it_o be_v through_o fire_n the_o fire_n true_o be_v the_o tentation_n of_o tribulation_n of_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_o write_v in_o a_o other_o place_n the_o furnace_n prove_v the_o potter_n vessel_n and_o tentation_n of_o tribulation_n just_a man_n this_o fire_n in_o this_o present_a life_n work_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n say_v etc._n etc._n by_o this_o you_o see_v that_o fire_n interpret_v of_o tribulation_n in_o this_o life_n &_o deny_v to_o be_v speak_v of_o purgatory_n fire_n through_o which_o by_o their_o own_o consent_n all_o man_n do_v not_o pass_v again_o he_o speak_v not_o at_o all_o against_o the_o origeniste_n opinion_n of_o hell_n fire_n that_o it_o shall_v have_v a_o end_n but_o against_o such_o as_o in_o his_o time_n do_v hold_v that_o they_o which_o forsake_v not_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v baptize_v with_o his_o laver_n in_o the_o church_n and_o be_v not_o cut_v off_o from_o it_o by_o any_o schism_n or_o heresy_n although_o they_o live_v in_o never_o so_o great_a wickedness_n which_o they_o neither_o wash_v away_o by_o repent_v nor_o redeem_v with_o alm_n but_o continue_v most_o stubborn_o in_o they_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o this_o life_n shall_v be_v save_v through_o fire_n although_o they_o be_v punish_v according_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n with_o long_a but_o yet_o not_o eternal_a fire_n but_o they_o which_o believe_v this_o &_o yet_o be_v catholic_n seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v deceive_v by_o a_o certain_a humane_a benevolence_n for_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v consult_v answer_v another_o thing_n etc._n etc._n enc._n ad_fw-la laurentium_fw-la c._n 67._o thus_o his_o reason_n be_v against_o a_o temporal_a purge_a fire_n through_o which_o some_o shall_v pass_v &_o not_o all_o therefore_o against_o the_o popish_a purgatory_n although_o he_o deny_v not_o but_o such_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v yet_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o this_o place_n nor_o by_o any_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n as_o hereafter_o we_o shall_v see_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o 3._o division_n of_o this_o chapter_n where_o bristol_n promise_v i_o wot_v not_o what_o to_o show_v of_o augustine_n judgement_n for_o purgatory_n i_o answer_v allen_n appose_v we_o where_o we_o have_v that_o new_a meaning_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n that_o he_o which_o be_v cast_v into_o prison_n for_o neglect_v of_o reconciliation_n while_o he_o be_v in_o the_o way_n be_v cast_v into_o hell_n from_o whence_o he_o shall_v never_o come_v i_o allege_v for_o that_o sense_n chrysostome_n augustine_n hierom_n &_o chromatius_n this_o be_v pass_o childish_a say_v bristol_n for_o d._n allen_n demand_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o this_o in_o deed_n be_v pass_v impudence_n for_o allens_n word_n in_o the_o same_o division_n after_o he_o have_v pose_v caluin_n flaccus_n luther_n jewel_n about_o their_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v these_o but_o i_o will_v not_o make_v a_o reckon_n of_o their_o unseemly_a gloss_n i_o will_v their_o follower_n will_v only_o but_o ask_v they_o in_o all_o matter_n from_o whence_o they_o have_v such_o new_a meaning_n which_o they_o false_o father_n on_o god_n word_n now_o the_o whole_a discourse_n of_o that_o chapter_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o title_n be_v of_o that_o place_n math._n 5._o pur._n 132._o yet_o say_v bristol_n it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o all_o those_o doctor_n have_v that_o sense_n which_o i_o affirm_v they_o to_o have_v but_o he_o only_o say_v it_o let_v their_o word_n be_v read_v pur._n 145._o where_o allen_n allow_v all_o interpretation_n of_o the_o place_n 1._o cor._n 3._o so_o long_o as_o they_o affirm_v no_o error_n i_o say_v he_o may_v by_o the_o same_o reason_n allow_v contradictory_n to_o be_v true_a as_o in_o that_o say_n matth._n 5._o of_o he_o that_o shall_v not_o come_v out_o until_o he_o have_v pay_v the_o uttermost_a farthing_n some_o have_v expound_v that_o he_o shall_v always_o be_v punish_v some_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v always_o punish_v how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o both_o these_o interpretation_n can_v be_v true_a marry_o say_v bristol_n with_o as_o fine_a rhetoric_n as_o strong_a logic_n thus_o it_o be_v true_a those_o he_o and_o he_o be_v not_o one_o he_o but_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v always_o punish_v be_v he_o that_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o way_n that_o be_v this_o life_n agree_v not_o with_o his_o adversary_n who_o he_o have_v deadly_o iniury_v as_o say_v to_o he_o fatue_n and_o thereby_o incur_v the_o guilt_n of_o gehennae_fw-la ignis_fw-la which_o iâ_n the_o prison_n of_o the_o damn_a he_o that_o shall_v not_o be_v always_o punish_v be_v he_o who_o injury_n be_v but_o venial_a as_o racha_n and_o so_o both_o interpretation_n agree_v well_o not_o only_o together_o but_o also_o with_o the_o text_n itself_o in_o deed_n this_o be_v a_o fine_a distinction_n of_o he_o and_o he_o but_o that_o he_o which_o agree_v not_o with_o his_o adversary_n in_o the_o way_n shall_v be_v cast_v into_o prison_n from_o whence_o he_o shall_v never_o come_v whatsoever_o the_o matter_n be_v betwixt_o they_o there_o be_v but_o one_o prison_n from_o whence_o there_o be_v no_o deliverance_n until_o the_o last_o farthing_n be_v pay_v which_o by_o those_o doctor_n exposition_n be_v never_o pay_v whether_o the_o injury_n be_v great_a or_o lesser_a the_o punishment_n be_v eternal_a without_o reconciliation_n or_o as_o saint_n luke_n say_v diligence_n to_o be_v reconcile_v if_o thou_o be_v ready_a to_o offer_v thy_o gift_n at_o the_o altar_n do_v remember_v that_o thy_o brother_n have_v any_o thing_n against_o thou_o go_v and_o reconcile_v thyself_o say_v christ_n and_o agree_v quick_o with_o he_o while_o thou_o be_v in_o the_o way_n mark_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o all_o injury_n even_o offer_v by_o anger_n or_o say_v racha_n and_o not_o only_o of_o say_v fatue_n but_o as_o for_o that_o he_o which_o agree_v with_o his_o adversary_n while_o he_o be_v in_o the_o way_n what_o trespass_n soever_o he_o have_v do_v he_o he_o be_v not_o at_o all_o commit_v to_o prison_n be_v his_o injury_n great_a or_o small_a so_o that_o which_o he_o soever_o come_v into_o prison_n there_o be_v no_o way_n of_o escape_n until_o he_o have_v pay_v the_o uttermost_a farthing_n which_o debt_n be_v always_o in_o pay_v and_o never_o discharge_v second_o whether_o the_o doctor_n give_v any_o other_o kind_n of_o testimony_n bristol_n against_o us._n first_o about_o the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n where_o i_o say_v that_o allen_n pretend_v to_o prove_v the_o fulke_n book_n of_o maccabee_n by_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n when_o he_o can_v by_o consent_v that_o it_o have_v with_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n bristol_n repli_v as_o though_o all_o book_n be_v canonical_a which_o have_v consent_n with_o the_o scripture_n fulk_n rejoin_v that_o he_o understand_v not_o his_o argument_n so_o but_o that_o which_o have_v not_o consent_n with_o other_o canonical_a book_n be_v not_o canonical_a where_o i_o take_v exception_n to_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o number_v this_o book_n among_o
counsel_n which_o to_o this_o time_n have_v be_v hold_v be_v six_o in_o number_n so_o express_o say_v bristol_n they_o avouch_v the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n and_o you_o allege_v they_o for_o only_a scripture_n i_o cry_v you_o mercy_n sir_n do_v they_o allege_v the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n as_o though_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o writing_n be_v not_o sufficient_a when_o they_o say_v before_o if_o man_n will_v have_v be_v content_a with_o they_o there_o need_v no_o counsel_n but_o you_o add_v that_o in_o their_o word_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o scripture_n but_o only_o of_o preach_v and_o teach_v what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v the_o gospel_n which_o they_o shall_v preach_v no_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n contain_v in_o their_o write_n i_o know_v you_o will_v answer_v they_o be_v not_o all_o contain_v in_o their_o write_n at_o leastwise_o what_o sword_n do_v these_o warrior_n use_v against_o satan_n stir_v up_o his_o squire_n do_v not_o the_o council_n say_v express_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o what_o other_o word_n do_v saint_n paul_n commend_v to_o the_o eph._n 6._o but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v profitable_a to_o reprove_v all_o heresy_n into_o perfection_n 2._o tim._n 3._o against_o basil_n maintain_v unwritten_a tradition_n i_o oppose_v his_o own_o authority_n de_fw-fr ver._n fid._n in_o proem_n moral_n we_o know_v that_o we_o must_v now_o and_o always_o avoid_v every_o word_n and_o opinion_n that_o be_v differ_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o all_o be_v not_o differ_v say_v bristol_n that_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o scripture_n neither_o do_v i_o say_v so_o but_o all_o be_v differ_v that_o can_v not_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o so_o say_v basil_n in_o his_o short_a definition_n to_o the_o first_o interrogation_n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a or_o profitable_a for_o a_o man_n to_o do_v or_o say_v any_o thing_n which_o he_o think_v to_o be_v good_a without_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o answer_v for_o as_o much_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v not_o speak_v of_o himself_o what_o madness_n be_v it_o that_o any_o man_n shall_v believe_v any_o thing_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n here_o you_o see_v he_o extend_v the_o word_n of_o god_n no_o far_o than_o the_o holy_a scripture_n yet_o bristol_n say_v if_o i_o see_v the_o place_n my_o malice_n pass_v for_o the_o word_n be_v these_o who_o can_v be_v so_o mad_a that_o he_o dare_v so_o much_o as_o to_o think_v any_o thing_n of_o himself_o and_o it_o follow_v but_o because_o of_o those_o thing_n &_o word_n that_o be_v in_o use_n amongst_o we_o some_o be_v plain_o teach_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n some_o be_v omit_v concern_v they_o that_o be_v omit_v say_v bristol_n we_o have_v this_o rule_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o other_o man_n for_o god_n commandment_n renounce_v quite_o our_o own_o will_n in_o very_a deed_n i_o abridge_v the_o place_n and_o give_v the_o true_a sense_n because_o it_o be_v large_a but_o if_o bristol_n understand_v basills_n language_n his_o word_n be_v these_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d &c_n &c_n see_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n say_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o he_o shall_v not_o speak_v of_o himself_o but_o what_o thing_n so_o ever_o he_o shall_v hear_v the_o same_o shall_v he_o speak_v and_o of_o he_o self_n the_o son_n can_v do_v nothing_o of_o himself_o and_o again_o i_o have_v not_o speak_v of_o myself_o but_o the_o father_n which_o have_v send_v i_o he_o himself_o have_v give_v i_o a_o commandment_n what_o i_o shall_v say_v and_o speak_v and_o i_o know_v that_o his_o commandment_n be_v life_n eternal_a therefore_o the_o thing_n which_o i_o speak_v even_o as_o the_o father_n have_v say_v unto_o i_o so_o i_o speak_v who_o be_v come_v into_o so_o great_a madness_n that_o he_o dare_v of_o himself_o take_v upon_o he_o any_o thing_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d even_o unto_o knowledge_n which_o have_v need_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o good_a spirit_n as_o a_o guide_n that_o he_o may_v de_fw-mi direct_v into_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n both_o in_o mind_n and_o speech_n and_o deed_n but_o walk_v blind_a and_o in_o darkness_n without_o the_o son_n of_o righteousness_n yea_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n he_o which_o give_v light_a with_o his_o commandment_n as_o it_o be_v with_o beam_n for_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o be_v bright_a lighten_v the_o eye_n see_v then_o that_o of_o such_o thing_n as_o we_o have_v in_o use_n some_o be_v under_o the_o come_v mandement_n of_o god_n prescribe_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o some_o be_v not_o speak_v of_o concern_v those_o that_o be_v write_v no_o liberty_n at_o all_o be_v give_v to_o any_o man_n neither_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n of_o those_o that_o be_v forbid_v nor_o to_o omit_v aught_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v prescribe_v see_v the_o lord_n have_v once_o charge_v and_o say_v thou_o shall_v keep_v the_o word_n which_o i_o command_v thou_o this_o day_n thou_o shall_v not_o add_v unto_o it_o neither_o shall_v thou_o take_v from_o it_o for_o there_o be_v a_o terrible_a expectation_n of_o judgement_n and_o zeal_n of_o fire_n which_o shall_v devour_v all_o those_o which_o shall_v be_v bold_a to_o do_v any_o such_o thing_n and_o concern_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n have_v set_v we_o a_o rule_n say_v all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a for_o i_o but_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o expedient_a all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a for_o i_o but_o all_o thing_n do_v not_o edify_v let_v no_o man_n seek_v his_o own_o profit_n but_o every_o one_o a_o other_o man_n so_o that_o in_o every_o matter_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v subject_a to_o god_n according_a to_o his_o commandment_n for_o it_o be_v write_v be_v you_o subject_a one_o to_o a_o other_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o christ._n and_o our_o lord_n say_v he_o that_o will_v among_o you_o be_v great_a let_v he_o be_v least_o of_o all_o and_o servant_n of_o all_o that_o be_v to_o say_v estrange_v from_o his_o own_o will_n according_a to_o the_o imitation_n of_o our_o lord_n himself_o which_o say_v i_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n not_o that_o i_o shall_v do_v my_o own_o will_n but_o the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n which_o have_v send_v i_o where_o have_v bristol_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o other_o man_n in_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v omit_v by_o scripture_n therefore_o not_o my_o malice_n but_o his_o ignorance_n pass_v and_o that_o wilful_a also_o although_o he_o follow_v the_o old_a barbarous_a translation_n of_o basil_n when_o he_o may_v have_v a_o better_a an_o other_o place_n of_o basil_n i_o cite_v in_o his_o moral_n defin_n 26._o every_o word_n or_o deed_n must_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o persuasion_n of_o good_a man_n &_o the_o confusion_n of_o wicked_a man_n bristol_n say_v he_o admonish_v his_o monk_n be_v student_n in_o divinity_n to_o be_v so_o perfect_a in_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o text_n ready_a at_o every_o need_n as_o when_o we_o bid_v they_o cast_v all_o away_o that_o be_v not_o write_v they_o have_v this_o text_n ready_a where_o saint_n paul_n bid_v we_o the_o contrary_a to_o hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o we_o have_v learn_v whether_o it_o be_v by_o his_o scripture_n or_o by_o his_o word_n of_o mouth_n 2._o thess._n 2._o and_o do_v paul_n bid_v they_o hold_v such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v not_o to_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n do_v he_o preach_v any_o such_o doctrine_n among_o the_o thessalonian_o when_o those_o to_o who_o he_o preach_v daily_o search_v the_o scripture_n tosee_v if_o those_o thing_n be_v even_o so_o act._n 17._o and_o where_o i_o pray_v you_o do_v you_o hear_v any_o tradition_n by_o word_n of_o saint_n paul_n mouth_n that_o you_o may_v object_v it_o to_o we_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o whatsoever_o he_o preach_v be_v as_o true_a as_o that_o he_o do_v put_v in_o writing_n if_o you_o can_v assure_v we_o of_o it_o but_o see_v that_o be_v impossible_a and_o it_o be_v certain_a he_o preach_v no_o doctrine_n but_o such_o as_o he_o commit_v to_o writing_n basills_n rule_n must_v still_o stand_v in_o force_n that_o every_o word_n and_o deed_n must_v have_v confirmation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n or_o else_o it_o be_v not_o good_a for_o all_o good_a work_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o true_a doctrine_n may_v be_v
find_v in_o they_o 1._o tim._n 3._o now_o come_v bristol_n to_o answer_v such_o thing_n as_o i_o object_n out_o of_o augustine_n against_o unwritten_a tradition_n which_o he_o dige_v into_o three_o sort_n the_o first_o be_v quotation_n of_o 11._o or_o 12._o place_n in_o which_o he_o prefer_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n before_o all_o write_n of_o catholic_a doctor_n of_o bishop_n of_o counsel_n before_o all_o custom_n and_o tradition_n but_o this_o bristol_n deni_v to_o be_v the_o question_n but_o whether_o nothing_o but_o scripture_n be_v of_o authority_n i_o answer_v those_o place_n prove_v that_o nothing_o be_v of_o infallible_a verity_n but_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o they_o prove_v that_o they_o only_o be_v of_o irrefragable_a authority_n the_o second_o sort_n of_o place_n be_v about_o this_o question_n who_o have_v the_o true_a church_n of_o which_o question_n i_o affirm_v that_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v the_o church_n seek_v only_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o heâe_o he_o bid_v i_o read_v his_o first_o demand_n likewise_o i_o will_v send_v he_o to_o my_o answer_n unto_o the_o same_o at_o length_n he_o confess_v that_o augustine_n be_v content_a in_o that_o question_n to_o set_v aside_o all_o other_o authority_n to_o try_v it_o by_o the_o scripture_n but_o that_o nothing_o else_o be_v good_a authority_n in_o that_o question_n that_o he_o never_o say_v neither_o do_v we_o say_v it_o or_o refuse_v any_o authority_n that_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o that_o one_o question_n which_o be_v between_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o donatist_n be_v determinable_a by_o the_o only_a authorititie_n of_o scripture_n so_o be_v all_o question_n that_o be_v between_o the_o church_n of_o all_o time_n and_o all_o heretic_n the_o donatist_n hold_v that_o the_o church_n be_v perish_v out_o of_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n except_o africa_n as_o the_o papist_n hold_v that_o it_o be_v perish_v out_o of_o all_o part_n except_o a_o piece_n of_o europa_n saint_n augustine_n by_o the_o scripture_n prove_v the_o continuance_n in_o the_o church_n disperse_v over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o that_o we_o hold_v against_o the_o romishe_a synagogue_n of_o popish_a donatist_n who_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o catholic_a church_n into_o the_o function_n of_o a_o italian_a priest_n as_o the_o other_o do_v of_o a_o african_a but_o bristol_n say_v i_o be_o as_o blind_a as_o a_o beetle_n in_o say_v that_o the_o papist_n do_v separate_v themselves_o from_o our_o church_n see_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o luther_n do_v separate_v himself_o from_o the_o popish_a church_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v to_o all_o they_o that_o forsake_v the_o fellowship_n of_o any_o heretic_n to_o come_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o bristol_n be_v as_o mad_a as_o a_o march_v hare_n that_o brag_v so_o much_o of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n he_o be_v drive_v to_o try_v it_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n as_o augustine_n call_v upon_o the_o donatist_n the_o other_o place_n which_o i_o allege_v out_o of_o aug_n say_v bristol_n be_v about_o all_o question_n with_o heretic_n whatsoever_o as_o that_o he_o will_v oppress_v the_o arrian_n maximinus_n with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 14._o bristol_n ask_v whether_o he_o may_v not_o press_v they_o with_o the_o authority_n thereof_o as_o he_o do_v the_o donatist_n but_o ask_v augustine_n himself_o who_o say_v he_o ought_v not_o in_o that_o case_n that_o he_o charge_v the_o donatist_n which_o it_o be_v by_o their_o own_o concession_n because_o they_o allow_v it_o but_o he_o say_v in_o the_o same_o place_n the_o father_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n ratify_v homoousion_n that_o be_v equality_n of_o the_o son_n with_o the_o father_n veritatis_fw-la autoritate_fw-la &_o autoritatis_fw-la veritate_fw-la by_o authority_n of_o truth_n and_o by_o truth_n of_o authority_n this_o truth_n of_o authority_n bristol_n will_v have_v to_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n as_o though_o the_o council_n can_v not_o err_v but_o than_o what_o need_v the_o authority_n of_o truth_n in_o deed_n where_o the_o council_n decree_v with_o the_o truth_n it_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o authority_n for_o other_o authority_n a_o council_n have_v not_o but_o of_o truth_n to_o declare_v truth_n and_o not_o to_o make_v truth_n for_o if_o it_o declare_v error_n as_o the_o council_n of_o arimine_n do_v it_o have_v no_o truth_n of_o authority_n because_o it_o have_v no_o authority_n of_o truth_n moreover_o bristol_n say_v i_o translate_v false_o these_o word_n nec_fw-la ego_fw-la huius_fw-la autoritate_fw-la nec_fw-la tuillius_fw-la detineris_fw-la neither_o be_o i_o bind_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o one_o nor_o thou_o of_o the_o other_o whereas_o it_o shall_v be_v neither_o do_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o one_o hold_v i_o nor_o of_o the_o other_o hold_v thou_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o be_v hold_v and_o be_v bind_v to_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a maximinus_n be_v no_o more_o bind_v than_o augustine_n to_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o ariminum_n it_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o nice_a that_o the_o arrian_n be_v bind_v unto_o and_o the_o falsehood_n of_o ariminum_n that_o augustine_n be_v not_o hold_v with_o us._n but_o after_o the_o example_n of_o augustine_n say_v bristol_n we_o will_v not_o allege_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n as_o our_o proper_a witness_n to_o our_o side_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n common_a to_o both_o witness_v hereof_o bristowe_v motive_n where_o he_o will_v overthrow_v we_o by_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o catholic_a and_o heretic_n etc._n etc._n again_o he_o say_v that_o we_o make_v challenge_v of_o 600._o year_n also_o and_o what_o then_o witness_n of_o truth_n we_o take_v wheresoever_o they_o be_v but_o authority_n of_o truth_n only_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n where_o i_o say_v that_o augustine_n set_v all_o other_o persuasion_n aside_o provoke_v only_o to_o the_o scripture_n to_o try_v the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n bristol_n answer_v how_o true_a that_o be_v appear_v in_o the_o same_o book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la eccle._n which_o you_o cite_v for_o when_o he_o have_v prove_v against_o the_o donatist_n the_o church_n to_o be_v his_o he_o say_v express_o that_o to_o be_v enough_o also_o for_o all_o other_o question_n sufficit_fw-la nobis_fw-la it_o be_v enough_o for_o we_o that_o we_o have_v that_o church_n which_o be_v point_v too_o by_o most_o manifest_a testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o canonical_a scripture_n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccle._n cap._n 19_o do_v he_o say_v express_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o all_o other_o question_n i_o must_v needs_o say_v express_o you_o lie_v for_o the_o only_a question_n be_v how_o the_o donatist_n shall_v be_v receive_v if_o they_o will_v come_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o though_o they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n because_o baptism_n give_v among_o they_o be_v not_o repeat_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n augustine_n after_o much_o concertation_n say_v quapropter_fw-la cum_fw-la dicatur_fw-la haereticis_fw-la etc._n etc._n wherefore_o see_n it_o be_v say_v to_o the_o heretic_n rightousnes_n be_v want_v to_o you_o which_o without_o charity_n and_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n no_o man_n can_v have_v &_o see_v they_o themselves_o confess_v that_o many_o have_v baptism_n which_o have_v not_o righteousness_n and_o if_o they_o will_v not_o confess_v it_o the_o holy_a scripture_n convince_v they_o i_o marvel_v how_o they_o think_v when_o we_o will_v not_o baptise_v they_o again_o have_v not_o their_o own_o but_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o do_v so_o as_o though_o we_o judge_v nothing_o to_o be_v now_o want_v to_o they_o &_o that_o because_o baptism_n be_v not_o give_v to_o they_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o they_o be_v find_v to_o have_v already_o they_o think_v they_o receive_v nothing_o there_o where_o they_o receive_v that_o without_o which_o that_o which_o they_o have_v avail_v they_o to_o their_o destruction_n and_o not_o to_o their_o salvation_n which_o if_o they_o will_v not_o understand_v it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o that_o we_o hold_v that_o church_n which_o be_v show_v forth_o by_o most_o manifest_a testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o canonical_a scripture_n where_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o determine_v question_n but_o show_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n although_o the_o heretic_n will_v not_o understand_v how_o baptism_n be_v minister_v out_o of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o effect_n but_o in_o the_o true_a church_n for_o if_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o scripture_n that_o augustine_n hold_v the_o true_a church_n that_o last_o question_n
of_o they_o how_o they_o shall_v be_v receive_v though_o it_o be_v not_o resolve_v yet_o can_v not_o disproove_v they_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n nor_o prove_v the_o donatist_n to_o be_v the_o church_n see_v there_o can_v be_v but_o one_o where_o out_o of_o this_o book_n cap._n 16._o i_o show_v that_o augustine_n declare_v first_o that_o heretic_n must_v be_v confute_v only_o by_o scripture_n second_o that_o neither_o counsel_n succession_n of_o bishop_n universality_n miracle_n vision_n dream_n nor_o revelation_n be_v the_o note_n to_o try_v the_o catholic_a church_n but_o only_o the_o scripture_n bristol_n say_v they_o be_v note_n with_o the_o scripture_n as_o he_o have_v show_v in_o his_o demand_n i_o answer_v whatsoever_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n may_v well_o be_v receive_v but_o the_o scripture_n without_o all_o these_o be_v sufficient_a to_o try_v the_o church_n as_o augustine_n show_v &_o therefore_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o bristowe_v motive_n may_v be_v spare_v if_o he_o dare_v join_v issue_n upon_o the_o scripture_n only_o as_o augustine_n do_v but_o that_o he_o dare_v not_o do_v he_o have_v a_o great_a quarrel_n of_o augustine_n for_o translate_n manifestatur_fw-la be_v prove_v as_o though_o augustine_n say_v that_o true_a miracle_n and_o vision_n lack_v weight_n and_o fashion_n of_o just_a probation_n if_o you_o call_v true_a miracle_n that_o be_v do_v indeed_o and_o not_o counterfeit_v i_o say_v that_o all_o such_o make_v no_o just_a probation_n for_o god_n tempt_v his_o church_n by_o such_o to_o see_v if_o they_o will_v forsake_v his_o commandment_n deut._n 13._o but_o those_o that_o be_v true_a miracle_n indeed_o be_v join_v with_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v try_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v such_o confirm_v it_o or_o prepare_v man_n mind_n unto_o it_o of_o themselves_o never_o sufficient_a to_o avouch_v true_a doctrine_n without_o god_n word_n and_o therefore_o i_o will_v still_o translate_v manifestatur_fw-la be_v manifest_o prove_v or_o show_v which_o be_v alone_o moreover_o out_o of_o augustine_n cont._n epist._n sundam_fw-la cap._n 4._o i_o show_v that_o though_o consent_n and_o universality_n antiquity_n succession_n be_v good_a confirmation_n when_o they_o be_v join_v with_o truth_n yet_o when_o truth_n be_v sever_v from_o they_o it_o be_v more_o to_o be_v regard_v than_o they_o all_o bristol_n say_v that_o augustine_n grant_v not_o that_o the_o truth_n can_v be_v separate_v from_o they_o yes_o very_o or_o else_o he_o shall_v have_v stand_v upon_o that_o point_n only_o that_o truth_n can_v not_o be_v sever_v from_o those_o mark_n which_o undoubted_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v and_o the_o manichee_n want_v and_o although_o he_o say_v the_o church_n have_v most_o sincere_a wisdom_n yet_o he_o say_v not_o that_o wheresoever_o be_v antiquity_n succession_n etc._n etc._n there_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o most_o sincere_a wisdom_n last_o out_o of_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr pastoribus_fw-la cap._n 14._o i_o affirm_v that_o man_n authority_n be_v too_o weak_a to_o carry_v away_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n as_o be_v in_o question_n use_v the_o word_n of_o augustine_n auferantur_fw-la chartae_fw-la humanae_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v man_n paper_n be_v remove_v let_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n be_v hear_v show_v i_o one_o place_n of_o scripture_n for_o donatus_n side_n etc._n etc._n bristol_n rehearse_v the_o say_n more_o at_o large_a as_o i_o do_v ar._n 14._o ask_v what_o make_v all_o this_o for_o fulke_n unless_o he_o think_v he_o have_v any_o vantage_n in_o his_o own_o false_a translation_n of_o acta_fw-la turn_v it_o decree_v sure_o whether_o the_o word_n be_v well_o or_o ill_o translate_v i_o seek_v no_o vantage_n thereof_o and_o yet_o if_o i_o shall_v change_v my_o translation_n i_o will_v rather_o call_v acta_fw-la act_n of_o the_o court_n or_o record_n then_o courtrolle_v as_o you_o do_v but_o every_o man_n may_v see_v what_o vantage_n you_o clasp_v at_o among_o ignorant_a person_n by_o your_o false_a translation_n of_o chartae_fw-la humanae_fw-la mens_fw-la court_n paper_n as_o though_o the_o word_n of_o augustine_n be_v not_o general_a to_o remove_v all_o man_n writing_n and_o to_o urge_v only_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o church_n beginning_n at_o jerusalem_n &_o spread_v over_o all_o nation_n to_o the_o very_a last_o time_n which_o augustine_n in_o all_o place_n prove_v against_o the_o donatist_n make_v much_o against_o we_o in_o bristowe_v opinion_n nay_o rather_o against_o the_o papist_n which_o restrain_v the_o church_n into_o the_o romishe_a rabble_n which_o we_o affirm_v both_o be_v and_o be_v always_o scatter_v over_o all_o the_o world_n although_o great_a in_o number_n at_o some_o time_n then_o at_o other_o some_o see_v that_o mahomet_n have_v infect_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o among_o the_o mahometist_n we_o doubt_v not_o but_o christ_n have_v his_o member_n that_o never_o bow_v their_o knee_n either_o to_o mahomet_n of_o mecha_n or_o to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n 3_o about_o certain_a tradition_n bristol_n the_o oblation_n pro_fw-la natalitiis_fw-la speak_v of_o before_o cap._n 6._o par._n 1._o 5._o i_o say_v those_o oblation_n with_o other_o superstition_n fulke_n father_v upon_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o nicen_n &_o other_o counsel_n as_o rhenanus_fw-la witness_v be_v abrogate_a bristol_n answer_v that_o he_o speak_v never_o a_o word_n of_o any_o other_o tradition_n yet_o bristol_n confess_v himself_o that_o many_o of_o they_o be_v abrogate_a cap._n 6._o par._n 1._o 4._o &_o 5._o 4_o about_o the_o marriage_n of_o votary_n bristol_n the_o two_o place_n one_o of_o epiphanius_n the_o other_o of_o hieronyme_n which_o i_o cite_v for_o the_o marriage_n of_o votary_n fulke_n bristo_n we_o say_v be_v about_o a_o matter_n which_o they_o hold_v even_o as_o those_o father_n do_v but_o in_o deed_n they_o hold_v the_o contrary_a for_o they_o hold_v the_o marriage_n of_o such_o lawful_a the_o papist_n dissolve_v they_o and_o say_v they_o be_v no_o marriage_n it_o be_v better_a say_v epiphanius_n to_o have_v one_o sin_n and_o not_o many_o it_o be_v better_a for_o he_o that_o be_v fall_v from_o his_o course_n openn_o to_o take_v a_o wife_n according_a to_o the_o law_n and_o of_o long_a time_n to_o repent_v from_o his_o virginity_n and_o so_o to_o be_v bring_v again_o to_o the_o church_n as_o one_o that_o have_v do_v amiss_o as_o one_o that_o be_v fall_v and_o break_v &_o have_v need_n to_o be_v bind_v rather_o than_o to_o be_v wound_v daily_o with_o privy_a dart_n of_o that_o wickedness_n which_o the_o devil_n put_v into_o he_o so_o know_v the_o church_n to_o preach_v these_o be_v the_o medicine_n of_o heal_a bristol_n say_v i_o gather_v that_o marriage_n be_v a_o wholesome_a medicine_n for_o such_o man_n contrary_a to_o that_o i_o confess_v myself_o that_o he_o call_v it_o a_o sin_n but_o he_o slaunder_v i_o as_o he_o do_v often_o i_o say_v epiphanius_n do_v count_v it_o a_o offence_n to_o marry_v because_o it_o be_v a_o breach_n of_o vow_n but_o neither_o he_o nor_o i_o say_v that_o marriage_n be_v a_o sin_n bristol_n say_v likewise_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n call_v it_o a_o sin_n but_o he_o slander_v the_o tradition_n or_o epiphanius_n the_o reporter_n thereof_o even_o as_o he_o do_v i_o the_o word_n be_v hae._n 61._o tradiderunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o holy_a apostle_n of_o god_n have_v deliver_v that_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n after_o virginity_n decree_v to_o be_v turn_v to_o marriage_n they_o say_v not_o marriage_n be_v a_o sin_n but_o by_o breach_n of_o vow_n to_o marry_v be_v a_o sin_n for_o their_o sin_n can_v pollute_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n but_o the_o wholesome_a medicine_n be_v penance_n &_o reconciliation_n say_v bristol_n and_o why_o not_o marriage_n i_o pray_v you_o whatsoever_o be_v good_a for_o the_o disease_a be_v a_o wholesome_a medicine_n to_o take_v a_o wife_n open_o be_v good_a for_o the_o disease_a therefore_o marriage_n also_o be_v a_o wholesome_a medicine_n as_o for_o your_o distinction_n of_o solemn_a vow_n and_o sole_a vow_n be_v a_o very_a babble_n epiphanius_n speak_v general_o of_o all_o that_o have_v vow_v virginity_n to_o the_o place_n of_o hierome_n admetus_n demetriadem_n he_o answer_v that_o they_o which_o of_o two_o sin_n will_v needs_o commit_v one_o they_o counsel_v they_o to_o commit_v the_o less_o rather_o than_o the_o great_a but_o hierom_n make_v no_o comparison_n of_o sin_n but_o say_v to_o such_o virgin_n as_o live_v incontinent_o it_o must_v be_v plain_o say_v to_o they_o that_o either_o they_o shall_v marry_v if_o they_o can_v contain_v or_o else_o they_o shall_v contain_v if_o they_o will_v not_o marry_v 5._o about_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n bristol_n about_o these_o point_n i_o will_v not_o stand_v consider_v
say_v not_o if_o bristol_n will_v say_v that_o none_o from_o paganism_n be_v convert_v to_o christianity_n by_o the_o novatians_n donatist_n or_o other_o heretic_n i_o will_v see_v what_o i_o have_v in_o store_n to_o prove_v it_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o moscovite_n by_o the_o grecian_n bristol_n ask_v whether_o it_o be_v before_o their_o schism_n or_o after_o and_o conclude_v it_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o emulation_n and_o not_o in_o time_n of_o their_o schism_n i_o read_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o moscovite_n to_o have_v be_v into_o the_o greekish_a form_n of_o christianity_n an._n do._n 987._o joachimus_fw-la cureas_fw-la in_o mieslao_n primo_fw-la about_o which_o time_n the_o controversy_n of_o the_o proceed_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n begin_v to_o arise_v but_o long_o before_o the_o greek_a church_n refuse_v subjection_n to_o the_o church_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n which_o if_o you_o call_v but_o a_o emulation_n you_o overthrow_n the_o rock_n of_o your_o own_o religion_n &_o break_v off_o the_o band_n of_o your_o unity_n which_o you_o affirm_v to_o consist_v only_o in_o subjection_n to_o the_o romish_n bishop_n in_o the_o 11._o demand_n of_o brittany_n where_o i_o say_v the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o best_a monument_n to_o show_v into_o what_o faith_n as_o well_o this_o island_n as_o all_o other_o nation_n be_v convert_v by_o the_o apostle_n bristol_n ask_v whether_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v write_v to_o show_v into_o what_o faith_n all_o nation_n be_v convert_v that_o be_v turn_v by_o the_o apostle_n yea_o very_o they_o be_v write_v to_o show_v that_o the_o apostle_n preach_v the_o same_o faith_n unto_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n which_o they_o receive_v of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o thereof_o the_o bâoke_n be_v call_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n according_a to_o such_o instruction_n as_o they_o receive_v of_o christ._n second_o he_o ask_v be_v there_o so_o much_o as_o any_o mention_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n preach_v to_o any_o nation_n of_o the_o gentile_n there_o be_v mention_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n preach_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o of_o their_o agreement_n in_o doctrine_n to_o be_v preach_v to_o the_o samaritan_o and_o gentile_n although_o it_o be_v neither_o possible_a nor_o needful_a nor_o convenient_a that_o they_o shall_v all_o twelve_o in_o person_n go_v to_o every_o nation_n but_o what_o faith_n so_o ever_o any_o one_o preach_v to_o any_o nation_n the_o same_o do_v they_o all_o preach_v without_o difference_n in_o every_o nation_n that_o they_o convert_v there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o do_v preach_v it_o but_o bristol_n will_v tell_v we_o a_o other_o cause_n why_o that_o book_n be_v write_v no_o sir_n say_v he_o that_o book_n be_v write_v to_o show_v only_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o prophet_n to_o wit_n at_o jerusalem_fw-la &_o among_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o take_n of_o it_o from_o they_o for_o their_o desert_n and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o gentile_n even_o from_o jerusalem_n the_o head_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o rome_n the_o head_n of_o the_o gentile_n if_o this_o be_v the_o only_a purpose_n of_o the_o evangelist_n as_o bristol_n most_o impudent_o affirm_v he_o shall_v have_v spare_v much_o labour_n in_o set_v forth_o the_o sermon_n and_o sum_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o apostle_n preach_v both_o to_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v bristol_n go_v forward_o and_o there_o saint_n luke_n end_v it_o not_o care_v to_o tell_v so_o much_o as_o the_o fulfil_n of_o that_o which_o our_o lord_n have_v foretell_v act._n 27._o to_o saint_n paul_n in_o who_o person_n this_o translation_n be_v wrought_v and_o not_o in_o s._n peter_n for_o cause_n too_o long_o to_o be_v here_o render_v thou_o must_v stand_v before_o the_o emperor_n because_o his_o purpose_n be_v no_o more_o but_o to_o show_v the_o new_a jerusalem_n of_o the_o christian_n and_o so_o to_o lead_v they_o to_o it_o to_o know_v what_o be_v the_o particular_n that_o the_o apostle_n teach_v if_o this_o be_v true_a all_o the_o testimony_n and_o report_n that_o he_o make_v of_o their_o doctrine_n be_v beside_o his_o purpose_n yea_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o he_o write_v of_o all_o thing_n that_o jesus_n begin_v to_o do_v and_o teach_v be_v out_o of_o this_o purpose_n and_o he_o take_v the_o wrong_a way_n in_o write_v his_o gospel_n to_o theophilus_n to_o teach_v he_o the_o certainty_n of_o those_o thing_n whereof_o he_o have_v be_v instruct_v as_o saint_n luke_n himself_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o whereas_o according_a to_o bristowe_v imaginative_a purpose_n see_v there_o have_v be_v many_o writing_n of_o the_o gospel_n already_o he_o shall_v have_v send_v he_o home_o to_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n of_o the_o christian_n and_o so_o have_v leave_v he_o to_o it_o to_o know_v what_o be_v the_o particular_n the_o apostle_n teach_v but_o where_o on_o god_n name_v learn_v we_o that_o whore_n of_o babylon_n that_o sit_v upon_o the_o seven_o hill_n apoc._n 17._o to_o be_v this_o new_a jerusalem_n on_o earth_n when_o s._n paul_n gal._n 4._o bring_v all_o christian_n from_o the_o earthly_a jerusalem_n unto_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_fw-la which_o be_v above_o and_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o we_o all_o not_o to_o a_o other_o jerusalem_n on_o earth_n and_o that_o the_o mother_n of_o all_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n apoc._n 17._o and_o how_o fall_v it_o out_o that_o s._n luke_n have_v a_o purpose_n so_o long_o and_o certain_o continue_v and_o so_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n not_o in_o one_o word_n commend_v to_o we_o this_o new_a jerusalem_n on_o the_o seven_o hill_n nor_o in_o one_o word_n make_v mention_v of_o that_o which_o only_o change_v if_o any_o thing_n can_v change_v hell_n into_o heaven_n rome_n into_o jerusalem_n namely_o the_o translation_n of_o peter_n chair_n or_o his_o person_n or_o the_o least_o hair_n of_o his_o head_n or_o thread_n of_o his_o garment_n to_o rome_n but_o this_o belike_o be_v reserve_v among_o the_o apocryphal_a cause_n as_o these_o be_v why_o the_o translation_n be_v in_o the_o person_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o not_o of_o s._n peter_n where_o i_o require_v one_o of_o those_o nation_n to_o who_o the_o apostle_n preach_v purgatory_n or_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a to_o be_v name_v out_o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n bristol_n answer_v continue_v his_o former_a speech_n and_o so_o withal_o you_o have_v one_o of_o those_o nation_n name_v and_o that_o no_o common_a one_o to_o wit_n the_o roman_n which_o receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n not_o only_o that_o article_n you_o require_v but_o all_o the_o rest_n which_o at_o this_o time_n it_o have_v etc._n etc._n when_o this_o be_v show_v out_o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o any_o other_o canonical_a scripture_n i_o be_o answer_v where_o i_o require_v it_o to_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o same_o apostle_n which_o first_o convert_v brittany_n teach_v prayer_n or_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a bristol_n answer_v if_o you_o require_v we_o to_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n consider_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o tell_v of_o our_o land_n conversion_n you_o declare_v yourself_o to_o be_v but_o a_o prattler_n at_o the_o least_o wise_a you_o declare_v that_o you_o can_v prove_v it_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o we_o can_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n every_o article_n that_o we_o believe_v to_o have_v be_v teach_v by_o that_o apostle_n or_o apostolic_a man_n whosoever_o first_o preach_v the_o say_v of_o christ_n in_o this_o land_n although_o our_o land_n conversion_n be_v not_o by_o name_n mention_v in_o scripture_n yet_o see_v the_o doctrine_n of_o every_o one_o of_o the_o apostles_n be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v express_v in_o the_o scripture_n we_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o he_o preach_v the_o same_o which_o we_o believe_v consider_v that_o we_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o eleutherius_fw-la which_o bristol_n say_v be_v a_o accomplish_n of_o that_o which_o be_v begin_v by_o the_o apostles_n &_o roman_n if_o he_o mean_v of_o a_o supply_n of_o doctrine_n it_o be_v false_a for_o christianity_n have_v be_v in_o brittany_n plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o time_n of_o tiberius_n and_o continue_v more_o than_o a_o 100_o year_n before_o eleutheâius_n be_v perfect_a christianity_n to_o pass_v over_o that_o peak_v of_o trouble_n in_o which_o bristol_n place_v i_o because_o i_o do_v
determine_v against_o it_o in_o the_o 36._o demand_v of_o owner_n or_o keeper_n of_o the_o scripture_n where_o i_o say_v the_o primitive_a church_n which_o commend_v the_o scripture_n unto_o we_o do_v not_o condemn_v luther_n or_o his_o doctrine_n for_o heresy_n bristol_n say_v it_o do_v in_o aerius_n jovinian_a vigilantius_n etc._n etc._n as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o primitive_a church_n before_o these_o man_n which_o commend_v the_o scripture_n unto_o we_o and_o yet_o know_v neither_o prayer_n for_o for_o the_o dead_a nor_o superstition_n of_o relic_n or_o any_o thing_n that_o luther_n hold_v with_o those_o man_n where_o i_o tax_v the_o blindness_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n not_o discern_v the_o scripture_n canonical_a from_o apocryphal_a bristol_n bring_v in_o a_o say_n of_o augustine_n show_v that_o it_o be_v of_o necessity_n for_o he_o to_o believe_v the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n if_o he_o believe_v the_o gospel_n because_o the_o catholic_a authority_n commend_v both_o the_o scripture_n alike_o unto_o he_o but_o i_o have_v show_v that_o the_o maccabee_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la judeth_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o commend_v to_o we_o by_o the_o catholic_a or_o universal_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n after_o other_o contentious_a point_n stout_o affirm_v or_o deny_v without_o proof_n he_o come_v to_o charge_v i_o with_o a_o substantial_a lie_n because_o i_o say_v our_o church_n which_o be_v the_o only_a true_a catholic_a church_n have_v always_o have_v right_a and_o possion_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o our_o church_n beleve_v nothing_o but_o that_o she_o learn_v in_o they_o if_o this_o be_v not_o a_o notable_a plea_n bristol_n report_v he_o to_o our_o lawyer_n but_o i_o report_v i_o to_o all_o logician_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o a_o good_a argument_n by_o prove_v we_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n to_o claim_v continual_a right_n and_o possession_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o for_o the_o novelty_n of_o luther_n &_o our_o congregation_n be_v a_o weak_a plea_n to_o dispossess_v we_o of_o the_o church_n when_o yâ_z antiquity_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o religion_n prove_v we_o to_o be_v of_o the_o old_a church_n and_o therefore_o the_o only_a true_a church_n where_o allen_n make_v his_o offer_n that_o if_o i_o can_v show_v any_o church_n that_o have_v safe_o keep_v the_o scripture_n save_v the_o popish_a church_n he_o will_v recant_v i_o show_v he_o the_o greek_a and_o eastern_a church_n which_o be_v not_o popish_a whereupon_o he_o be_v bind_v by_o his_o offer_n to_o recant_v yet_o bristol_n without_o all_o shame_n say_v every_o article_n of_o d._n allens_n be_v not_o to_o prove_v absolute_o that_o we_o be_v the_o church_n but_o some_o only_a that_o you_o be_v not_o the_o church_n true_a it_o be_v that_o neither_o every_o one_o nor_o any_o of_o they_o all_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o you_o be_v the_o church_n and_o not_o we_o but_o that_o allen_n mean_v they_o be_v sufficient_a it_o be_v manifest_a by_o that_o he_o promise_v to_o recant_v if_o any_o of_o they_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o agree_v to_o any_o other_o than_o to_o the_o popish_a church_n in_o the_o eight_o and_o thirty_o demand_v of_o old_a heresy_n where_o i_o show_v that_o many_o of_o the_o popish_a ceremony_n be_v first_o institute_v by_o heretic_n answer_v direct_o to_o allens_n challenge_v that_o offer_v to_o recant_v if_o any_o man_n can_v prove_v that_o any_o church_n but_o they_o have_v institute_v all_o their_o ceremony_n bristol_n say_v they_o be_v such_o matter_n as_o agree_v none_o otherwise_o to_o they_o then_o to_o those_o who_o i_o dare_v not_o condemn_v etc._n etc._n which_o if_o it_o be_v so_o yet_o do_v it_o not_o show_v but_o that_o i_o have_v answer_v allens_n challenge_v and_o therefore_o do_v according_a to_o his_o promise_n claim_v his_o recantation_n of_o the_o messalian_o or_o martyrian_o i_o say_v they_o learn_v first_o to_o shave_v their_o beard_n and_o let_v their_o lock_n grow_v long_o bristol_n out_o of_o epiphanius_n say_v they_o do_v let_v their_o hair_n grow_v long_o like_o woman_n the_o popish_a priest_n do_v not_o so_o but_o round_o they_o yet_o can_v he_o not_o prove_v out_o of_o epiphanius_n that_o the_o messalian_o do_v not_o keep_v their_o hair_n in_o order_n by_o round_v or_o otherwise_o further_o he_o say_v some_o protestant_n do_v so_o i_o answer_v none_o of_o ceremony_n do_v so_o three_o priest_n in_o italy_n and_o spain_n do_v poll_n their_o head_n and_o keep_v their_o beard_n i_o answer_v they_o keep_v the_o text_n of_o the_o decree_n and_o you_o the_o gloss_n which_o say_v statuimus_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la abrogamus_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o decree_v that_o be_v we_o abrogate_v that_o clerk_n neither_o wear_v long_a hair_n nor_o shave_v their_o beard_n last_o of_o all_o he_o say_v i_o have_v no_o great_a matter_n to_o charge_v they_o with_o when_o i_o lay_v their_o hair_n to_o their_o charge_n my_o reply_n be_v that_o my_o charge_n go_v no_o further_a than_o allens_n challenge_v which_o urge_v i_o to_o show_v any_o other_o to_o have_v first_o institute_v any_o one_o ceremony_n in_o popery_n but_o the_o pope_n only_a catholic_a church_n and_o so_o i_o say_v to_o the_o superstitious_a mask_a garment_n institute_v by_o the_o pharisee_n although_o the_o ancient_a church_n about_o four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n receive_v such_o robe_n in_o use_n also_o the_o daily_a use_n of_o popish_a holy_a water_n to_o put_v man_n in_o mind_n of_o baptism_n have_v a_o elder_a institution_n of_o the_o hemerobaptistae_fw-la that_o be_v baptize_v or_o wash_v every_o day_n here_o bristol_n with_o a_o very_a stale_a jest_n acknowledge_v their_o fault_n and_o lay_v it_o upon_o saint_n paul_n who_o have_v deceive_v they_o rom._n 6._o where_o baptism_n be_v in_o deed_n remember_v but_o holy_a water_n i_o trow_v be_v not_o there_o o_o than_o it_o be_v 1._o tim_n 4._o where_o saint_n paul_n be_v to_o blame_v say_v bristol_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o creature_n of_o god_n be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o prayer_n wonderful_a divinity_n that_o can_v bring_v popish_a holy_a water_n to_o so_o holy_a a_o beginning_n no_o marvel_n if_o we_o be_v blind_a which_o think_v the_o apostle_n speak_v there_o of_o the_o lawful_a use_n of_o meat_n forbid_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o all_o other_o of_o god_n creature_n be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o give_v we_o the_o use_n so_o by_o prayer_n that_o we_o may_v use_v they_o well_o but_o special_o say_v bristol_n he_o be_v to_o blame_v for_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v help_v our_o weakness_n pray_v for_o we_o with_o groan_n unspeakable_a how_o so_o ever_o blind_a heretic_n think_v he_o will_v do_v nothing_o by_o water_n for_o prayer_n in_o deed_n when_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o plain_a for_o holy_a water_n it_o be_v wonder_n that_o any_o be_v so_o blind_a they_o can_v see_v it_o of_o the_o ossenes_n i_o say_v they_o take_v their_o hallow_n of_o water_n salt_n oil_n bread_n etc._n etc._n and_o use_v to_o swear_v by_o they_o bristol_n ask_v if_o i_o be_v a_o anabaptist_n that_o will_v condemn_v all_o swear_n or_o swear_v by_o creature_n i_o answer_v i_o will_v not_o condemn_v all_o swear_n but_o this_o customable_a swear_n of_o papist_n by_o this_o bread_n by_o this_o salt_n etc._n etc._n and_o as_o for_o swear_v by_o creature_n i_o be_o of_o the_o same_o judgement_n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v matth._n 5._o 34._o but_o papist_n swear_v not_o by_o they_o as_o the_o ossenes_n do_v what_o then_o the_o controversy_n be_v not_o therein_o but_o of_o their_o resemblance_n with_o the_o ossenes_n in_o some_o part_n elxai_fw-fr the_o father_n of_o the_o ossenes_n teach_v his_o scholar_n a_o prayer_n in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n who_o interpretation_n they_o may_v not_o seek_v who_o the_o papist_n follow_v in_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o pray_v in_o a_o tongue_n unknown_a and_o will_v not_o if_o they_o may_v choose_v let_v they_o know_v the_o interpretation_n bristol_n answer_v that_o epiphanius_n say_v his_o prayer_n be_v nothing_o at_o all_o when_o it_o be_v interpret_v be_v it_o like_o epiphanius_n will_v say_v so_o how_o can_v it_o be_v interpret_v if_o it_o have_v no_o signification_n epiphanius_n in_o deed_n show_v it_o be_v a_o vain_a thing_n whereof_o he_o make_v so_o great_a a_o mystery_n and_o your_o ignorant_a people_n of_o the_o great_a mystery_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n the_o salutation_n and_o the_o creed_n make_v vain_a and_o ridiculous_a matter_n while_o they_o can_v scarce_o pronounce_v their_o word_n together_o true_o the_o marcosian_o in_o baptism_n use_v for_o great_a admiration_n certain_a hebrew_n word_n so_o do_v the_o papist_n bristol_n ask_v why_o s._n
in_o the_o table_n and_o at_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n before_o canonisation_n be_v think_v to_o pertain_v only_o to_o the_o pope_n as_o for_o our_o abrogate_a of_o saint_n day_n do_v not_o disprove_v our_o communion_n with_o the_o saint_n which_o be_v in_o consent_n of_o their_o faith_n not_o in_o celebrate_v of_o their_o feast_n concern_v the_o canonisation_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o sixth_o bristol_n require_v my_o author_n for_o a_o dilatory_a plea_n because_o he_o can_v not_o otherwise_o defend_v the_o popish_a corruption_n my_o author_n be_v edward_n hall_n in_o his_o chronicle_n of_o henry_n the_o seven_o where_o i_o say_v we_o acknowledge_v those_o to_o be_v saint_n who_o name_n be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n bristol_n like_o a_o black_a dog_n scoff_v at_o it_o and_o say_v we_o may_v do_v well_o to_o set_v out_o that_o book_n in_o print_n that_o they_o may_v correct_v their_o calendar_n by_o it_o or_o else_o the_o church_n declaration_n be_v the_o most_o certain_a way_n to_o know_v who_o be_v write_v in_o it_o if_o none_o shall_v be_v write_v but_o such_o as_o the_o pope_n do_v canonize_v for_o that_o be_v your_o church_n declaration_n innumerable_a papist_n shall_v have_v no_o place_n therein_o and_o not_o only_a papist_n but_o the_o true_a saint_n of_o god_n of_o who_o not_o one_o among_o ten_o thousand_o have_v be_v canonize_v where_o i_o say_v the_o popish_a church_n do_v injury_n to_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n that_o she_o do_v not_o so_o account_v they_o while_o they_o live_v bristol_n say_v i_o will_v be_v call_v saint_n fulke_n by_o my_o own_o industry_n and_o that_o out_o of_o hand_n thus_o have_v he_o nothing_o but_o heathenish_a scorn_n to_o delude_v the_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o i_o cite_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n count_v all_o true_a christian_n saint_n even_o in_o this_o life_n not_o by_o their_o own_o industry_n and_o merit_n but_o by_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n he_o be_v angry_a that_o i_o compare_v the_o pope_n canonisation_n with_o the_o heathen_a senate_n canonise_a of_o their_o god_n say_v we_o do_v the_o like_a in_o canonise_a ourselves_o because_o we_o account_v ourselves_o saint_n and_o true_a christian_n which_o be_v all_o one_o and_o because_o i_o show_v the_o emulation_n of_o the_o bohemian_o in_o solemnize_n the_o memory_n of_o john_n hus_n and_o hierome_n of_o prage_n which_o differ_v as_o much_o from_o popish_a canonisation_n as_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n differ_v from_o popery_n in_o the_o 47._o demand_v of_o communion_n of_o saint_n he_o boast_v of_o increase_n of_o papist_n in_o england_n affirm_v that_o beside_o they_o which_o be_v catholic_a in_o heart_n and_o of_o their_o communion_n there_o be_v innumerable_a of_o they_o reconcile_v which_o he_o say_v to_o prepare_v the_o mind_n of_o his_o friend_n unto_o their_o intend_a massacre_n and_o rebellion_n i_o suppose_v in_o deed_n there_o be_v too_o many_o of_o those_o dissemble_n and_o profess_a traitor_n but_o yet_o not_o so_o many_o but_o they_o may_v be_v number_v but_o how_o many_o so_o ever_o they_o be_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o there_o be_v christian_n of_o such_o number_n and_o power_n in_o england_n as_o be_v able_a to_o give_v all_o the_o papist_n both_o on_o this_o side_n the_o sea_n and_o beyond_o it_o as_o black_a a_o day_n as_o the_o pope_n army_n find_v in_o ireland_n if_o ever_o they_o attempt_v to_o put_v in_o practice_v their_o long_a intend_a and_o certain_o purpose_v treasonable_a devise_n in_o the_o 48._o demand_n where_o i_o show_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v urge_v thereto_o by_o allen_n pur._n 241._o to_o appear_v notable_o in_o the_o liberal_a provision_n for_o the_o poor_a of_o all_o sort_n in_o england_n and_o namely_o in_o the_o city_n of_o london_n bristol_n call_v it_o beastly_a impudency_n yet_o be_v he_o not_o able_a to_o name_v any_o popish_a city_n that_o make_v such_o provision_n but_o fall_v into_o open_a rail_n upon_o the_o corrupt_a manner_n of_o all_o the_o city_n as_o though_o for_o the_o fault_n of_o many_o which_o yet_o god_n name_n be_v praise_v be_v not_o the_o most_o the_o whole_a city_n be_v not_o inferior_a to_o sodom_n and_o gomorrhe_n in_o wickedness_n in_o which_o place_n as_o be_v very_o populous_a there_o be_v many_o offender_n so_o be_v they_o punish_v if_o their_o offence_n may_v be_v know_v but_o who_o so_o know_v london_n in_o the_o time_n of_o popery_n and_o now_o also_o consider_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o multitude_n must_v be_v a_o very_a unequal_a judge_n if_o he_o acknowledge_v not_o great_a reformation_n in_o a_o great_a number_n though_o he_o can_v not_o see_v it_o all_o as_o for_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o bristol_n compare_v with_o solomon_n who_o priest_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o the_o report_n that_o go_v of_o he_o as_o by_o the_o story_n and_o relation_n of_o they_o which_o know_v it_o before_o this_o time_n so_o by_o report_n of_o some_o which_o even_o in_o this_o time_n have_v visit_v the_o same_o we_o have_v sufficient_a understanding_n that_o without_o great_a reformation_n it_o still_o continue_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o reach_v forth_o the_o cup_n of_o poison_a wine_n unto_o such_o as_o seek_v her_o whorish_a familiarity_n make_v they_o therewith_o so_o drink_v that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o bristol_n shall_v marvel_v why_o nothing_o confirm_v more_o our_o countryman_n in_o popery_n nor_o alienate_v they_o from_o the_o protestant_n than_o to_o go_v and_o see_v rome_n the_o eleven_o chapter_n what_o gross_a contradiction_n fulke_n be_v drive_v to_o utter_v against_o bristol_n himself_o while_o he_o struggle_v against_o god_n church_n and_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o as_o in_o his_o whole_a reply_n he_o have_v draw_v almost_o all_o the_o argument_n fulke_n and_o authority_n which_o i_o use_v in_o those_o two_o treatise_n unto_o other_o end_n and_o purpose_n than_o for_o which_o i_o bring_v they_o so_o to_o make_v a_o show_n of_o contradiction_n he_o rend_v a_o number_n of_o my_o say_n from_o their_o proper_a place_n &_o compare_v they_o together_o to_o make_v such_o as_o know_v not_o what_o a_o contradiction_n mean_v to_o think_v that_o i_o affirm_v and_o deny_v mere_a repugnancy_n without_o any_o possibility_n to_o reconcile_v they_o but_o when_o they_o be_v consider_v according_a to_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o place_n in_o which_o they_o be_v write_v i_o hope_v there_o be_v not_o many_o of_o so_o mean_a judgement_n but_o they_o will_v acknowledge_v they_o be_v rather_o the_o cavil_n of_o bristol_n than_o the_o contradiction_n of_o fulke_n the_o first_o contradiction_n he_o note_v that_o i_o say_v be_v 96._o you_o be_v never_o able_a to_o answer_v the_o argument_n that_o peter_n be_v never_o at_o rome_n and_o they_o where_o be_v the_o apostolic_a see_n etc._n etc._n and_o they_o on_o the_o conirarie_a side_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v a_o apostolic_a church_n for_o this_o he_o quote_v purg._n 361._o 363._o 374._o to_o this_o i_o answer_v in_o the_o first_o part_n he_o falsifi_v my_o word_n which_o be_v these_o you_o be_v never_o able_a to_o answer_v the_o argument_n that_o be_v bring_v to_o prove_v that_o peter_n be_v never_o bishop_n at_o rome_n and_o then_o where_o be_v all_o your_o brag_n of_o apostolic_a see_n and_o succession_n etc._n etc._n the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v be_v a_o apostolic_a see_v though_o peter_n be_v never_o there_o but_o all_o your_o brag_n of_o apostolic_a see_v and_o succession_n be_v vain_a if_o peter_n be_v never_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o second_o those_o ancient_a father_n do_v appeal_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n against_o all_o heresy_n and_o among_o the_o catholic_a church_n especial_o name_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n because_o it_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n pur._n 373._o 374._o contrat_fw-la and_o by_o the_o way_n note_v here_o the_o brag_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n pur._n 405._o the_o former_a proposition_n be_v not_o i_o but_o patch_v by_o he_o yet_o if_o i_o grant_v the_o sense_n and_o word_n to_o be_v as_o he_o have_v forge_v they_o they_o be_v not_o contradictory_n to_o the_o latter_a proposition_n for_o heretic_n may_v brag_v of_o that_o which_o catholic_n use_v to_o do_v and_o yet_o not_o be_v catholic_n the_o third_o it_o have_v by_o succession_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o r_n ãâ¦ã_o retain_v even_o until_o their_o day_n that_o faith_n which_o it_o do_v first_o receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n pur._n 374._o contra_fw-la she_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v have_v no_o orderly_a succession_n of_o bishop_n except_o so_o many_o schism_n
the_o mediator_n with_o which_o she_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v as_o a_o mother_n but_o be_v esteem_v of_o he_o as_o a_o woman_n who_o know_v when_o it_o be_v convenient_a for_o he_o to_o do_v whatsoever_o be_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n kingdom_n to_o be_v do_v without_o she_o or_o any_o other_o body_n admonition_n neither_o do_v i_o charge_v she_o as_o chrysostom_n in_o joann_n hom._n 20._o optabat_fw-la enim_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o she_o wish_v that_o he_o may_v now_o win_v the_o favour_n of_o man_n and_o that_o she_o may_v be_v make_v more_o noble_a by_o the_o favour_n of_o her_o son_n and_o perchance_o she_o be_v move_v with_o some_o humane_a affection_n even_o as_o his_o brethren_n when_o they_o say_v show_v thyself_o to_o the_o world_n be_v desirous_a by_o his_o miracle_n to_o win_v themselves_o a_o fame_n therefore_o he_o answer_v more_o sharp_o what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v with_o thou_o woman_n my_o hour_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v for_o that_o he_o do_v reverence_v his_o mother_n luke_n do_v testify_v that_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o his_o parent_n and_o this_o evangelist_n do_v show_v how_o great_a care_n he_o have_v of_o his_o mother_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o passion_n for_o where_o his_o parent_n do_v nothing_o hinder_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n do_v offend_v nothing_o it_o be_v meet_v and_o necessary_a for_o the_o son_n to_o be_v obedient_a neither_o can_v he_o deny_v obedience_n without_o great_a peril_n contrariwise_o when_o they_o desire_v a_o unseasonable_a thing_n and_o that_o which_o will_v have_v be_v a_o hindrance_n to_o spiritual_a thing_n who_o be_v my_o mother_n and_o my_o brethren_n quoth_v he_o for_o as_o yet_o they_o have_v not_o such_o opinion_n of_o he_o as_o they_o ought_v but_o marry_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o mother_n think_v she_o shall_v have_v command_v her_o son_n in_o all_o thing_n by_o her_o authority_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n say_v bristol_n show_v that_o she_o have_v more_o need_n of_o christ_n grace_n then_o all_o other_o saint_n to_o preserve_v she_o from_o sin_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n she_o have_v no_o need_n of_o his_o redemption_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n who_o be_v appoint_v to_o save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n who_o come_v to_o seek_v and_o to_o save_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v both_o of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n and_o of_o the_o gentile_n so_o many_o as_o attain_v salvation_n so_o therefore_o howsoever_o bristol_n scorn_v at_o my_o divinity_n i_o will_v still_o conclude_v that_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v so_o principal_a a_o person_n of_o christ_n people_n be_v save_v from_o her_o sin_n by_o the_o redemption_n of_o his_o blood_n be_v lose_v but_o seek_v up_o and_o save_v by_o he_o which_o divinity_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n i_o trust_v be_v more_o commendable_a than_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n derive_v from_o the_o pelagian_n and_o defend_v by_o the_o papist_n the_o 10._o point_n of_o my_o ignorance_n be_v about_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o heretic_n who_o i_o say_v to_o be_v a_o man_n in_o the_o church_n i_o have_v show_v before_o that_o i_o distinguish_v between_o he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o he_o that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n a_o papiste_n a_o anabaptist_n may_v be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o they_o can_v be_v of_o the_o church_n except_o they_o repent_v where_o i_o add_v unto_o my_o definition_n that_o if_o any_o of_o we_o can_v be_v prove_v obstinate_o to_o maintain_v our_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o refuse_v not_o to_o be_v count_v heretic_n bristol_n say_v they_o may_v say_v the_o like_a but_o the_o trial_n be_v all_o bristol_n say_v they_o bring_v plain_a scripture_n to_o prove_v that_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o we_o say_v the_o same_o that_o whatsoever_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v in_o speech_n they_o deliver_v also_o in_o writing_n and_o neither_o contrary_n to_o other_o but_o that_o all_o true_a doctrine_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o you_o prove_v not_o neither_o that_o such_o thing_n be_v of_o the_o apostle_n delivery_n as_o you_o call_v tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o for_o the_o particular_a point_n you_o prate_v of_o concern_v the_o time_n of_o the_o church_n persecution_n and_o antichristes_n reign_n have_v be_v answer_v in_o their_o proper_a place_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n we_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v true_a in_o such_o sense_n as_o he_o speak_v they_o neither_o can_v you_o prove_v that_o they_o import_v your_o carnal_a carpernaiticall_a presence_n what_o you_o hold_v of_o justification_n by_o work_n worship_v of_o image_n insufficiency_n of_o christ_n redemption_n impeccabilitie_n of_o marie_n etc._n etc._n contrary_a to_o the_o express_a and_o plain_a text_n of_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v out_o of_o place_n here_o o_o make_v rehearsal_n the_o 11._o be_v my_o ignorance_n in_o wonder_v at_o allen_n for_o say_v that_o a_o christian_n scholar_n shall_v first_o believe_v and_o after_o seek_v for_o understanding_n he_o have_v note_v cap_n 10._o dem._n 34._o and_o there_o have_v i_o answer_v the_o 12._o point_n proceed_v of_o like_a ignorance_n where_o i_o be_o say_v to_o wonder_v when_o i_o hear_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o likeness_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n death_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o then_o i_o be_o ask_v whether_o i_o know_v not_o that_o sacrament_n be_v not_o likeness_n of_o other_o thing_n and_o augustine_n be_v call_v to_o witness_v with_o much_o ado_n as_o though_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o have_v sacrament_n which_o be_v similitude_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o to_o have_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o similitude_n or_o likeness_n which_o i_o say_v true_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o whole_a scope_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o shadow_n or_o resemblance_n when_o the_o body_n and_o substance_n itself_o be_v come_v which_o i_o speak_v suppose_v that_o allen_n by_o likeness_n of_o the_o exemplar_n mean_v the_o mass_n with_o all_o the_o apish_a pageant_n thereof_o to_o be_v like_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v that_o monstruous_a say_n of_o allen_n which_o i_o wonder_v at_o by_o likeness_n of_o the_o exemplar_n as_o indeed_o be_v in_o a_o other_o manner_n the_o very_a selfsame_o but_o bristol_n set_v a_o good_a countenance_n upon_o so_o great_a a_o absurdity_n ask_v what_o boy_n have_v not_o hear_v it_o say_v of_o one_o &_o the_o same_o man_n be_v change_v by_o age_n sickness_n apparel_n shave_v etc._n etc._n he_o be_v like_a or_o unlike_o himself_o but_o tontrariewise_o what_o boy_n in_o oxford_n or_o cambridge_n will_v not_o reply_v that_o this_o similitude_n or_o likeness_n or_o unlikeness_n be_v of_o two_o several_a shape_n and_o not_o of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substance_n unto_o itself_o as_o allen_n say_v the_o sacrament_n be_v like_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v the_o very_a same_o in_o another_o manner_n that_o be_v under_o coverture_n of_o accident_n that_o belong_v to_o another_o kind_n of_o substance_n but_o bristol_n be_v not_o so_o quick_a to_o understand_v i_o where_o i_o understand_v not_o myself_o as_o he_o ween_v where_o i_o say_v neither_o will_v it_o help_v that_o allen_n say_v it_o be_v the_o selfsame_o in_o another_o manner_n so_o long_o as_o the_o same_o respect_n remain_v i_o be_o sorry_a that_o bristol_n be_v so_o dull_a head_v that_o he_o can_v understand_v what_o the_o same_o respect_n mean_v in_o opposition_n which_o if_o it_o not_o observe_v in_o the_o thing_n oppose_v they_o be_v not_o always_o opposite_a and_o special_o relative_n who_o hang_v altogether_o upon_o respect_n but_o bristol_n ask_v who_o can_v imagine_v that_o the_o very_a same_o respect_n remain_v when_o the_o same_o manner_n do_v not_o remain_v why_o sir_n what_o be_v the_o respect_n of_o the_o likeness_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n with_o the_o exemplar_n see_v you_o confess_v the_o manner_n tobe_fw-mi unlike_a but_o the_o very_a identity_n of_o the_o thing_n sacrifice_v which_o be_v the_o monster_n that_o i_o marvel_v at_o as_o also_o that_o you_o can_v imagine_v the_o same_o respect_n where_o there_o be_v not_o the_o same_o manner_n be_v not_o god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n christ_n in_o the_o same_o respect_n that_o abraham_n be_v the_o father_n of_o isaak_n but_o yet_o after_o a_o far_a other_o manner_n yea_o to_o follow_v your_o own_o wise_a example_n be_v not_o abraham_n father_n of_o isaak_n in_o the_o same_o respect_n when_o isaak_n be_v young_a and_o when_o he_o be_v old_a when_o he_o
and_o the_o same_o bread_n and_o wine_n must_v again_o signify_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n although_o we_o say_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o seal_n and_o confirmation_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n teach_v in_o this_o chapter_n concern_v the_o eat_n and_o drink_v of_o his_o very_a true_a and_o natural_a flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o have_v power_n to_o seed_n unto_o eternal_a life_n they_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v it_o spiritual_o as_o there_o be_v none_o other_o way_n of_o eat_v and_o drink_v thereof_o but_o by_o faith_n through_o the_o almighty_a work_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n the_o four_o book_n the_o preface_n of_o the_o four_o book_n declare_v that_o he_o purpose_v in_o the_o same_o to_o show_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o supper_n be_v proper_a and_o not_o figurative_a and_o so_o have_v be_v take_v above_o 1500._o and_o that_o they_o be_v proper_a he_o wili_fw-la prove_v by_o circumstance_n of_o the_o supper_n by_o conference_n of_o scripture_n out_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n &_o by_o the_o commandment_n give_v to_o the_o apostle_n to_o continue_v the_o sacrament_n until_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ._n last_o of_o all_o he_o crave_v pardon_n if_o he_o chance_v to_o say_v somewhat_o that_o be_v touch_v before_o affirm_v that_o his_o purporse_n be_v not_o so_o to_o do_v although_o by_o affinity_n of_o the_o argument_n desire_v to_o have_v the_o thing_n remember_v or_o by_o his_o own_o forgetfulness_n he_o may_v be_v cause_v to_o fall_v into_o that_o default_n cap._n i._n that_o no_o reason_n ought_v to_o be_v hear_v why_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n supper_n shall_v now_o be_v expound_v unproper_o or_o figurative_o and_o saunder_n that_o the_o sacramentarics_n can_v never_o be_v sure_a thereof_o christ_n say_v he_o in_o his_o last_o supper_n be_v both_o a_o testator_n and_o a_o law_n maker_n a_o testator_n in_o give_v his_o body_n and_o fulk_n ãâ¦ã_o oude_fw-mi and_o a_o lawemaker_n in_o command_v his_o apostel_n ãâ¦ã_o d_o their_o successor_n to_o continue_v the_o make_n of_o this_o ãâ¦ã_o acrament_n this_o testament_n and_o law_n be_v soon_o after_o writ_n ãâ¦ã_o n_z and_o publish_v at_o which_o time_n and_o ever_o since_o the_o church_n have_v take_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n not_o ãâ¦ã_o gurative_o but_o proper_o this_o last_o say_n be_v utter_o ãâ¦ã_o alse_a neither_o can_v it_o be_v prove_v by_o ambrose_n chryso_n ãâ¦ã_o tome_fw-mi augustine_n theodoret_n who_o he_o name_v or_o any_o before_o or_o after_o their_o time_n for_o 600_o year_n that_o ever_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n be_v adore_v as_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ._n if_o he_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o show_v we_o shall_v have_v it_o hereafter_o but_o it_o be_v a_o folly_n he_o say_v upon_o allegation_n of_o a_o thing_n so_o far_o beyond_o the_o memory_n of_o man_n as_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v to_o leave_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o present_a church_n which_o christ_n no_o less_o redeem_v govern_v and_o love_v than_o he_o do_v the_o faithful_a of_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n i_o answer_v short_o that_o be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o of_o antichrist_n which_o of_o late_a year_n have_v teach_v the_o worship_v of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o god_n and_o man_n and_o whereas_o saunder_n repli_v that_o then_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o quietness_n or_o end_n of_o controversy_n if_o heretic_n may_v appeal_v to_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o the_o trinitaries_n in_o poolande_n and_o the_o circumcider_n in_o lithuania_n for_o these_o appeal_n to_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o deny_v writing_n of_o father_n and_o scripture_n as_o the_o protestant_n i_o answer_v the_o protestant_n receive_v all_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n by_o which_o all_o heresy_n may_v be_v condemn_v the_o authority_n or_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o allege_v but_o as_o a_o witness_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v sufficient_a prove_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereas_o he_o say_v there_o be_v but_o one_o universal_a change_n to_o be_v look_v for_o in_o religion_n which_o be_v to_o be_v make_v by_o christ_n i_o affirm_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n religion_n to_o be_v unchangeable_a but_o there_o be_v a_o universal_a change_n to_o be_v look_v for_o from_o christ_n religion_n to_o antichrist_n which_o saint_n paul_n call_v a_o apostasy_n &_o saint_n john_n in_o the_o revelation_n the_o cup_n of_o fornication_n whereof_o all_o nation_n shall_v drink_v etc._n etc._n yet_o be_v not_o this_o change_n so_o universal_a but_o that_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n though_o in_o small_a number_n and_o credit_n with_o the_o world_n be_v preserve_v out_o of_o that_o general_a apostasy_n and_o call_v out_o of_o babylon_n as_o we_o see_v it_o now_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o eternal_a gospel_n than_o also_o foreshow_v apocal._n 14._o 17._o 18._o etc._n etc._n another_o reason_n why_o we_o shall_v give_v none_o ear_n to_o they_o that_o say_v the_o word_n be_v figurative_a be_v for_o that_o then_o we_o shall_v doubt_v of_o our_o former_a faith_n and_o in_o doubt_v become_v man_n that_o lack_v faith_n and_o why_o shall_v you_o not_o only_o doubt_v but_o refuse_v a_o false_a opinion_n believe_v contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o we_o must_v tell_v saunder_n whether_o he_o that_o give_v ear_n first_o to_o berengarius_fw-la and_o zwinglius_fw-la may_v give_v ear_n to_o a_o other_o that_o shall_v say_v the_o apostel_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o write_v holy_a scripture_n no_o forsooth_o for_o he_o that_o give_v ear_n to_o berengarius_fw-la and_o zwinglius_fw-la do_v hear_v they_o because_o they_o bring_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o only_a certain_a rule_n of_o truth_n against_o which_o no_o question_n or_o doubt_n may_v be_v move_v as_o for_o the_o opinion_n of_o carnal_a presence_n if_o it_o have_v be_v as_o general_o receive_v before_o berengarius_fw-la as_o saunder_n false_o affirm_v yet_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o bring_v it_o to_o the_o trial_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o we_o do_v all_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o be_v true_a not_o so_o much_o because_o they_o be_v general_o receive_v as_o for_o that_o they_o be_v manifest_o approve_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o saunder_n will_v yet_o enter_v far_o into_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o cause_n &_o before_o he_o hear_v what_o reason_n can_v be_v bring_v against_o the_o popish_a faith_n he_o say_v the_o sacramentary_n can_v possible_o have_v any_o ground_n of_o their_o doctrine_n that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o supper_n be_v figurative_a either_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o word_n write_v or_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o christian_n or_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n or_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n towards_o we_o or_o the_o profit_n of_o his_o church_n yes_o very_o all_o these_o five_o respect_n move_v we_o to_o take_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n at_o his_o supper_n to_o be_v figurative_a and_o first_o the_o word_n write_v by_o saint_n luke_n and_o saint_n paul_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o word_n be_v manifest_o figurative_a have_v the_o same_o sense_n that_o the_o other_o rehearse_v by_o saint_n matthew_n and_o saint_n mark_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n and_o that_o these_o word_n have_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v use_v by_o all_o four_o therefore_o by_o the_o write_a word_n they_o be_v all_o figurative_a and_o signify_v the_o delivery_n of_o a_o sacrament_n or_o seal_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n establish_v in_o the_o death_n and_o bloodshedding_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n second_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o christian_n for_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o after_o christ_n have_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v to_o have_v understand_v the_o word_n figurative_o for_o a_o figure_n sign_n token_n pledge_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o for_o the_o very_a substance_n contain_v in_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n insomuch_o that_o the_o very_a gloss_n upon_o the_o canon_n law_n de_fw-fr cons_n do_v 2._o cap._n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la have_v these_o word_n coeleste_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la quod_fw-la verè_fw-la representat_fw-la christi_fw-la carnem_fw-la dicitur_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la sed_fw-la impropriè_fw-la unde_fw-la dicitur_fw-la svo_fw-la modo_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la in_o veritate_fw-la sed_fw-la significante_fw-la mysterio_fw-la ut_fw-la sit_fw-la sensus_fw-la voco_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la significat_fw-la the_o heavenly_a sacrament_n which_o true_o represent_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o improper_o whereof_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v after_o a_o peculyar_n manner_n but_o not_o in_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o in_o
and_o the_o love_n of_o god_n concern_v these_o interpretation_n bristol_n say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o council_n who_o interpretation_n they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o defend_v but_o only_o their_o definition_n but_o they_o be_v the_o interpretation_n of_o particular_a person_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v they_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o synodal_a book_n send_v into_o the_o western_a church_n to_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o idolatry_n which_o book_n be_v answer_v by_o carolus_n magnus_n or_o by_o alcuinus_fw-la at_o his_o commandment_n and_o in_o his_o name_n therefore_o they_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o council_n yea_o some_o of_o they_o be_v contain_v also_o in_o that_o report_n of_o the_o council_n which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o book_n of_o counsel_n the_o text_n of_o light_v a_o candle_n and_o put_v it_o under_o a_o bushel_n be_v affirm_v of_o bristol_n to_o be_v well_o apply_v in_o the_o epistle_n of_o constantinus_n &_o his_o mother_n to_o the_o synod_n but_o he_o be_v deceive_v for_o there_o be_v no_o argument_n of_o set_v of_o image_n upon_o the_o altar_n draw_v out_o of_o that_o text_n which_o be_v so_o abuse_v in_o the_o synodal_n above_o rehearse_v confirm_v by_o carolus_n or_o alcuinus_fw-la the_o second_o text_n god_n make_v man_n according_a to_o his_o image_n therefore_o we_o must_v have_v image_n in_o the_o church_n bristol_n confess_v to_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n adrian_n to_o the_o emperor_n but_o the_o same_o be_v approve_v in_o the_o council_n and_o be_v the_o pope_n epistle_n who_o credit_n be_v great_a with_o you_o than_o the_o counsel_n but_o he_o do_v not_o conclude_v you_o say_v that_o therefore_o we_o must_v have_v image_n in_o the_o church_n what_o then_o forsooth_o that_o aâ_n adam_n be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v honour_v so_o every_o image_n be_v holy_a that_o iâ_n make_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v it_o a_o image_n of_o angel_n prophet_n apostle_n martyr_n or_o just_a person_n this_o conclusion_n contain_v more_v they_o i_o urge_v namely_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n &_o not_o the_o make_n of_o they_o only_o and_o because_o you_o be_v so_o impudent_a to_o say_v it_o be_v not_o the_o council_n but_o pope_n adrianus_n that_o so_o say_v &c_n &c_n i_o will_v let_v the_o reader_n understand_v that_o in_o the_o second_o action_n there_o be_v two_o epistle_n of_o pope_n adrian_n read_v in_o the_o synod_n one_o to_o the_o emperor_n the_o other_o to_o tharasius_n the_o patriarche_n of_o constantinople_n afterward_o peter_n and_o peter_n lieutenant_n of_o the_o pope_n require_v tharasius_n to_o declare_v whether_o he_o consent_v to_o the_o pope_n letter_n or_o no._n tharasius_n answer_v that_o concern_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n he_o do_v allow_v the_o pope_n letter_n then_o say_v the_o synod_n vniversa_fw-la sancta_fw-la synodus_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o whole_a holy_a synod_n do_v so_o believe_v and_o teach_v peter_n and_o peter_n legate_n of_o the_o sea_n aposto_n like_v say_v let_v the_o holy_a synod_n tell_v we_o whether_o it_o receive_v the_o letters_z of_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n of_o the_o elder_a rome_n or_o no._n the_o holy_a synod_n answer_v we_o follow_v they_o we_o receive_v they_o and_o allow_v they_o the_o 3._o text_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v so_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o city_n of_o our_o god_n ps_n 48._o to_o prove_v that_o god_n must_v not_o be_v know_v by_o only_a hear_n of_o his_o word_n but_o also_o by_o sight_n of_o image_n bristol_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o council_n that_o cit_v it_o but_o a_o deacon_n call_v epiphanius_n which_o read_v it_o to_o the_o council_n out_o of_o a_o book_n of_o his_o own_o i_o answer_v he_o read_v it_o with_o approbation_n and_o good_a like_n of_o the_o council_n which_o in_o effect_n be_v all_o one_o but_o he_o cit_v it_o not_o say_v bristol_n to_o show_v how_o god_n must_v be_v know_v but_o about_o the_o story_n of_o christ_n manhood_n nor_o to_o prove_v immediate_o that_o the_o say_a story_n must_v be_v paint_v etc._n etc._n as_o though_o god_n can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o christ_n for_o knowledge_n of_o who_o by_o imagery_n he_o cit_v this_o text_n of_o the_o canticle_n also_o can._n 2._o show_v i_o thy_o face_n &_o let_v i_o hear_v thy_o voice_n and_o whether_o it_o be_v immediate_o or_o mediate_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o he_o cit_v this_o text_n pal._n 48._o to_o prove_v that_o the_o picture_n of_o saint_n be_v right_o deliver_v in_o the_o church_n none_o otherwise_o than_o the_o read_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n the_o 4._o text_n false_o interpret_v in_o sense_n &_o falsify_v in_o word_n be_v joan._n 10._o ver_fw-la 29._o my_o father_n which_o give_v they_o unto_o i_o speak_v of_o his_o sheep_n be_v great_a than_o al._n which_o text_n in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n hold_v under_o pope_n innocent_a the_o third_o be_v falsify_v in_o word_n after_o this_o manner_n pater_fw-la quod_fw-la dedit_fw-la mihi_fw-la maius_fw-la est_fw-la omnibus_fw-la that_o which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v i_o be_v great_a than_o all_o and_o interpret_v to_o prove_v the_o eternal_a beget_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o father_n to_o this_o bristol_n answer_v herâ_n be_v no_o false_a interpretation_n in_o d._n allens_n sense_n what_o sense_n allen_n have_v of_o false_a interpretation_n i_o know_v not_o sure_o i_o be_o that_o a_o text_n can_v be_v true_o interpret_v in_o sense_n when_o it_o be_v corrupt_v in_o word_n which_o make_v the_o sense_n second_o he_o say_v that_o of_o my_o two_o crime_n i_o must_v strike_v out_o one_o for_o suppose_v the_o text_n to_o be_v as_o the_o council_n allege_v it_o the_o interpretation_n be_v not_o unapt_a but_o i_o reply_v suppose_v the_o text_n to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n such_o falsify_v or_o corrupt_v of_o the_o word_n must_v needs_o draw_v with_o it_o not_o only_o a_o unapt_a but_o also_o a_o wrong_a interpretation_n but_o what_o colour_n of_o reason_n have_v you_o say_v he_o that_o the_o council_n have_v falsify_v the_o word_n of_o that_o text_n be_v it_o not_o in_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n verbatim_o as_o the_o council_n allege_v it_o yes_o very_o and_o so_o be_v the_o council_n clear_v of_o that_o crime_n also_o not_o so_o soon_o as_o you_o ween_v for_o if_o any_o falsify_v or_o corrupt_v of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v creep_v into_o your_o translation_n it_o have_v be_v the_o counsel_n duty_n not_o to_o have_v wink_v at_o it_o if_o it_o can_v have_v see_v it_o much_o less_o to_o have_v confirm_v it_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o of_o so_o many_o text_n which_o clear_o prove_v christ_n to_o be_v consubstantial_a with_o his_o father_n it_o can_v find_v none_o but_o take_v this_o corrupt_a and_o falsify_v text_n but_o the_o most_o ancient_a latin_a writer_n saint_n augustine_n saint_n ambrose_n and_o saint_n hilary_n do_v read_v jump_o as_o we_o do_v say_v bristol_n that_o do_v not_o amend_v the_o matter_n one_o whit_n but_o show_v the_o error_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n to_o have_v the_o long_o continue_v which_o in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n if_o it_o can_v have_v espy_v it_o ought_v rather_o to_o have_v be_v reform_v then_o confirm_v but_o will_v you_o change_v your_o copy_n say_v bristol_n and_o frame_v your_o accusation_n anew_o against_o the_o translation_n as_o differ_v from_o the_o original_a that_o be_v from_o the_o greek_a sir_n i_o need_v not_o change_v my_o copy_n for_o my_o accusation_n be_v already_o frame_v that_o this_o text_n be_v falsify_v and_o corrupt_v contrary_a to_o the_o original_a truth_n yet_o bristol_n go_v on_o but_o afore_o you_o do_v so_o take_v my_o counsel_n with_o you_o and_o be_v sure_a first_o that_o the_o greek_a be_v so_o as_o you_o say_v for_o some_o greek_a copy_n of_o ancient_a also_o have_v even_o as_o we_o have_v as_o namely_o the_o copy_n which_o saint_n cyrill_n be_v a_o greek_a doctor_n expound_v cyr._n lib._n 7._o in_o joan._n cap._n 10._o in_o deed_n it_o be_v not_o amiss_o to_o take_v the_o council_n of_o such_o a_o learned_a grecian_a as_o bristol_n be_v that_o i_o may_v be_v sure_a how_o the_o greek_a text_n be_v for_o he_o can_v tell_v i_o of_o ancient_a greek_a copy_n yea_o namely_o of_o that_o which_o saint_n cyrill_n a_o greek_a doctor_n do_v follow_v and_o expound_v which_o agree_v with_o the_o vulgar_a translation_n in_o this_o text_n very_o the_o sight_n of_o such_o a_o copy_n will_v do_v i_o great_a pleasure_n but_o until_o i_o may_v see_v it_o i_o will_v suspend_v my_o judgement_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o will_v borrow_v a_o word_n or_o two_o with_o thomas_n stapleton_n the_o peruser_n and_o allower_n
be_v the_o author_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n for_o witness_n under_o this_o antiquity_n that_o which_o have_v a_o erroneus_fw-la beginning_n shall_v have_v a_o shameful_a end_n purg._n 399._o here_o bristol_n take_v advantage_n of_o the_o printer_n error_n although_o he_o be_v admonish_v ãâã_d of_o in_o the_o correction_n and_o not_o content_a with_o that_o ãâ¦ã_o fi_v my_o word_n make_v i_o to_o say_v as_o for_o witness_v ãâã_d this_o antiquity_n we_o pass_v not_o for_o they_o yes_o ãâã_d we_o esteem_v all_o good_a witness_n of_o that_o ancient_a ãâã_d whereof_o god_n be_v the_o author_n but_o you_o say_v the_o rule_v w_o ãâ¦ã_o receyve_v prove_v the_o apostle_n to_o be_v author_n of_o sole_a ãâ¦ã_o payer_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o mass_n &_o such_o like_a article_n ãâã_d teach_v and_o believe_v before_o luther_n begin_v such_o ãâ¦ã_o vation_n etc._n etc._n but_o i_o reply_v that_o vincentius_n rule_n be_v ãâã_d such_o fool_n fable_n but_o require_v antiquity_n to_o be_v ãâ¦ã_o tinued_a always_o even_o from_o christ_n which_o see_v you_o ãâã_d not_o show_v noâ_n other_o condition_n which_o he_o requi_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o for_o your_o article_n his_o rule_n help_v you_o nothing_o at_o aâ_n ãâã_d rule_n which_o he_o handle_v at_o large_a throughout_o his_o b_o ãâ¦ã_o be_v brief_o set_v down_o in_o this_o sentence_n in_o ipsa_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o ecclesia_fw-la make_fw-mi ãâ¦ã_o ãâã_d est_fw-la ãâã_d id_fw-la ãâã_d qââd_a ãâã_d qââd_v ãâ¦ã_o o_o ãâã_d ab_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o we_o ãâ¦ã_o est_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o propriâque_fw-la c_o ãâ¦ã_o n_z qââd_a issa_n ãâ¦ã_o q_o ãâ¦ã_o d_o ãâ¦ã_o a_o ãâ¦ã_o the_o catholic_a church_n itself_o we_o must_v great_o ãâã_d that_o we_o hold_v that_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v every_o ãâ¦ã_o which_o have_v be_v always_o which_o have_v be_v of_o all_o ãâã_d believe_v for_o that_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o ca_o ãâ¦ã_o which_o the_o very_a force_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o name_n d_o ãâ¦ã_o r_v that_o comprehend_v all_o thing_n true_o ãâ¦ã_o lie_v examine_v your_o article_n by_o this_o rule_n aâd_v you_o ãâã_d find_v not_o one_o of_o they_o catholic_a so_o that_o my_o excep_v ãâ¦ã_o of_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o only_a scripture_n ãâ¦ã_o death_n ãâã_d well_o with_o the_o rule_n both_o of_o tertulliââ_n and_o vince_n ãâ¦ã_o lyri_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o for_o to_o the_o truth_n as_o aristotle_n say_v all_o ãâ¦ã_o ges_fw-ge agree_v that_o be_v true_a but_o falsehood_n soon_o bewray_v itself_o 2_o aga_n ãâ¦ã_o the_o a_o ãâ¦ã_o ãâã_d ãâ¦ã_o aga_n ãâ¦ã_o ãâã_d ãâ¦ã_o ed_z tradition_n of_o the_o apo_n ãâ¦ã_o i_o make_v exception_n of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o bââ_n the_o only_a c_o ãâ¦ã_o yne_fw-gr ãâ¦ã_o esse_fw-la of_o theââ_n true_a tradition_n aâd_v i_o say_v allââ_n blasphemous_o fâthereth_v âppon_o the_o apo_n ãâ¦ã_o the_o institution_n of_o popish_a prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o ãâ¦ã_o we_o charge_v i_o nevertheless_o to_o affirm_v that_o ãâã_d cyprian_a augustine_n jerome_n and_o a_o great_a ma_fw-fr ãâ¦ã_o be_v witness_n hereof_o pur._n 362._o wherein_o he_o shame_v ãâ¦ã_o y_fw-es bely_v i_o for_o that_o i_o do_v only_o rehearse_v part_n of_o ãâ¦ã_o s_o word_n which_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v witness_n ãâ¦ã_o ch_n thing_n bristol_n may_v easy_o see_v by_o the_o diversi_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o of_o print_n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v dispose_v to_o âââunder_v i_o ãâ¦ã_o o_o this_o by_o the_o example_n of_o allen_n which_o be_v a_o great_a po_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o i_o pose_v the_o papist_n with_o this_o question_n why_o god_n ãâ¦ã_o uld_v have_v none_o of_o the_o apostle_n to_o put_v this_o matter_n or_o ãâ¦ã_o e_o word_n thereof_o in_o writing_n which_o afterward_o shall_v ãâã_d disclose_v by_o tertullian_n cyprian_n augustine_n etc._n etc._n ãâã_d ãâã_d bristol_n after_o much_o bible_n out_o of_o s._n augustin_n ãâ¦ã_o e_o apostle_n have_v not_o leave_v in_o write_v the_o whole_a order_n ãâ¦ã_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n answer_v that_o one_o piece_n of_o ãâã_d that_o it_o be_v omit_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v for_o breed_v ãâ¦ã_o s_o sake_n but_o i_o bristol_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o any_o order_n or_o ãâ¦ã_o i_o of_o ceremony_n which_o because_o they_o be_v variable_a ãâ¦ã_o according_v to_o time_n place_n &_o person_n the_o apostle_n have_v ãâã_d prescribe_v but_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o pray_v &_o sacrifice_v ãâ¦ã_o r_o the_o dead_a which_o in_o much_o less_o brevity_n than_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o stle_n use_v may_v have_v be_v without_o any_o tedi_n ãâ¦ã_o nes_z let_v down_o at_o the_o least_o in_o one_o word_n mention_v ãâ¦ã_o herfore_o brevity_n can_v be_v no_o piece_n of_o the_o cause_n but_o a_o ãâ¦ã_o over_o &_o miserable_a refuge_n of_o a_o papist_n drive_v to_o the_o wall_n ãâ¦ã_o r_o want_v of_o a_o better_a answer_n but_o if_o this_o be_v a_o piece_n what_o be_v then_o ãâã_d supplement_n of_o the_o whole_a cause_n bristol_n answer_v in_o these_o word_n ãâ¦ã_o to_o ãâ¦ã_o in_o ãâ¦ã_o g._n which_o ãâ¦ã_o so_o many_o âf_o ãâ¦ã_o one_o of_o âwspanâ_n wââld_v ãâ¦ã_o do_v i_o imagine_v bristol_n &_o be_o so_o great_o ãâ¦ã_o ceive_v i_o follow_v not_o my_o own_o imagination_n but_o their_o ãâ¦ã_o ne_o write_v s._n john_n testify_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o ãâã_d have_v write_v be_v sum_o ãâ¦ã_o to_o obtain_v everlasting_a life_n ãâ¦ã_o y_fw-es believe_v they_o io_o ãâ¦ã_o s._n luke_n trew_v his_o purpose_n ãâã_d ãâ¦ã_o the_o in_o a_o ãâã_d sum_n the_o truth_n of_o all_o thing_n ãâ¦ã_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o les_fw-fr deliver_v concern_v the_o doctrine_n &_o ãâ¦ã_o ng_n of_o christ_n l_o ãâ¦ã_o ac_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o s._n paul_n ãâ¦ã_o eth_z that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfe_n ãâ¦ã_o prepare_v to_o all_o good_a work_n 2_o tim._n 2._o but_o you_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o prove_v that_o they_o purpose_v not_o to_o put_v all_o in_o write_n because_o neither_o so_o many_o of_o they_o nor_o o_o ãâ¦ã_o of_o they_o so_o often_o will_v have_v mention_v one_o thing_n wh_o ãâ¦ã_o as_o contrariwise_o it_o be_v manifest_a thereby_o that_o they_o study_n not_o so_o much_o for_o brevity_n but_o that_o they_o may_v have_v express_v in_o a_o word_n or_o two_o prayer_n &_o sacrifice_n for_o that_o deaâ_n see_v so_o many_o of_o they_o &_o some_o one_o so_o often_o do_v mention_n one_o thing_n again_o it_o be_v against_o reason_n that_o they_o shall_v mention_v one_o thing_n so_o often_o whicâ_n though_o it_o be_v profitable_a yet_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v often_o mention_v &_o to_o omit_v altogether_o such_o matten_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o not_o in_o one_o word_n mention_v they_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o bristol_n do_v imagine_v be_v in_o write_v the_o scripture_n to_o a_o bare_a effect_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v write_v only_o to_o show_v christ_n to_o say_v consummatum_fw-la est_fw-la and_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v fulfil_v of_o he_o which_o be_v write_v of_o he_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o show_v but_o as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o birth_n of_o the_o church_n the_o apocalypse_n to_o show_v the_o whole_a course_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o other_o book_n be_v write_v say_v he_o special_o against_o the_o perfidious_a jew_n &_o other_o false_a master_n of_o that_o time_n as_o likewise_o in_o every_o age_n afterward_o we_o have_v the_o ecclesiastical_a i_o say_v not_o the_o canonical_a writer_n and_o counsel_n see_v you_o not_o how_o the_o blasphemous_a dog_n restrain_v the_o use_n of_o the_o apostles_n epistle_n special_o to_o the_o time_n in_o which_o they_o be_v write_v &_o compare_v ecclesiastical_a writer_n and_o counsel_n with_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n if_o this_o that_o he_o say_v be_v true_a the_o scripture_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o man_n wise_a to_o salvation_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v wtout_fw-fr tradition_n &_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n 2._o tim._n 3._o those_o thing_n which_o s._n paul_n promise_v to_o set_v in_o order_n when_o he_o come_v 1_o cor._n 11._o i_o say_v must_v be_v understand_v not_o of_o doctrine_n but_o of_o ceremony_n as_o the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d do_v signify_v bristol_n answer_v that_o the_o solemn_a prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v one_o of_o saint_n paul_n ordinance_n i_o reply_v if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a be_v contain_v saint_n paul_n writing_n yea_o or_o in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n ãâ¦ã_o all_o scripture_n we_o will_v not_o strive_v for_o the_o form_n ãâã_d prayer_n but_o if_o we_o may_v add_v new_a doctrine_n upon_o ãâ¦ã_o ler_a of_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n neither_o be_v the_o scrip_n ãâ¦ã_o e_o so_o perfect_a as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n affirm_v it_o to_o be_v ãâ¦ã_o the_fw-mi can_v the_o
so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o teach_v the_o way_n of_o shall_fw-mi ãâ¦ã_o ation_n otherwise_o it_o be_v no_o discomfort_n unto_o they_o alââough_o they_o understande_v not_o every_o hard_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n after_o this_o he_o gather_v that_o i_o place_v all_o in_o a_o man_n own_o ãâ¦ã_o iligence_n to_o trust_v no_o man_n nor_o man_n but_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n ãâ¦ã_o onferre_v the_o place_n and_o so_o gather_v the_o meaning_n by_o himself_o so_o that_o with_o he_o it_o be_v nothing_o that_o saint_n augustine_n say_v ãâã_d doct._n christ._n libr._n chapter_n 6._o where_o i_o receive_v my_o ãâ¦ã_o ule_fw-mi magnificè_fw-la igitur_fw-la &_o salubriter_fw-la etc._n etc._n magnificallye_o âherefore_o and_o wholesome_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v so_o ãâ¦ã_o empered_a the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o with_o open_a place_n he_o âight_a satisfy_v hunger_n with_o dark_a place_n he_o may_v wipe_v âff_a loathsomeness_n for_o nothing_o in_o a_o manner_n be_v bring_v âut_v of_o those_o obscurity_n which_o may_v not_o be_v find_v in_o âome_o other_o place_n most_o plain_o speak_v it_o be_v nothing_o âhat_n i_o require_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o author_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o earnest_a prayer_n to_o be_v obtain_v of_o the_o interpreter_n but_o if_o diligence_n may_v do_v so_o much_o he_o telââth_v we_o of_o the_o great_a diligence_n use_v in_o the_o pope_n semiâarie_n for_o england_n under_o the_o government_n of_o doctor_n allen_n which_o proove_v itself_o to_o be_v a_o semiâarie_a of_o treason_n in_o much_o read_n and_o confer_v of_o the_o scripture_n with_o all_o other_o help_v and_o mean_n whereby_o they_o must_v be_v more_o certain_a of_o truth_n than_o we_o by_o my_o own_o rule_n no_o bristol_n not_o they_o that_o read_v the_o scripture_n with_o such_o mind_n as_o you_o do_v without_o the_o extraordinary_a grace_n of_o god_n shall_v never_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o they_o seek_v not_o in_o they_o but_o the_o confirmation_n of_o their_o preiudicate_v erroneous_a and_o heretical_a opinion_n there_o be_v a_o fragment_n of_o clemens_n cite_v in_o the_o decree_n dist._n 37._o chapter_n relatum_fw-la which_o show_v the_o let_n of_o your_o understanding_n and_o in_o the_o end_n conclude_v non_fw-la enim_fw-la sensi_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o etc._n etc._n you_o ought_v not_o to_o seek_v a_o foreign_a and_o strange_a sense_n without_o the_o scripture_n that_o you_o may_v by_o any_o mean_n confirm_v the_o same_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o you_o ought_v to_o take_v the_o sense_n of_o truth_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o concern_v the_o brag_n of_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a text_n to_o be_v prove_v against_o we_o when_o we_o see_v the_o book_n we_o will_v show_v you_o our_o judgement_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n if_o the_o author_n show_v not_o more_o wit_n in_o suppress_v his_o labour_n than_o you_o in_o vaunt_v of_o it_o before_o it_o come_v forth_o i_o assure_v you_o he_o will_v show_v himself_o to_o the_o world_n to_o have_v neither_o learning_n wisdom_n nor_o honesty_n the_o 3._o part_n what_o he_o mean_v by_o his_o only_a scripture_n and_o that_o thereby_o he_o except_v also_o against_o scripture_n bristol_n i_o mean_v by_o only_a scripture_n what_o soever_o be_v teach_v in_o plain_a word_n or_o may_v be_v gather_v by_o necessary_a conclusion_n fulke_n which_o be_v as_o good_a as_o express_v word_n for_o all_o truth_n needful_a for_o we_o to_o know_v say_v i_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n either_o in_o plain_a word_n or_o by_o necessary_a conclusion_n which_o be_v all_o one_o where_o i_o urge_v allen_n to_o show_v some_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n to_o maintain_v prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a bristol_n say_v i_o confess_v that_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o he_o diverse_a sentence_n in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o his_o reply_n pag._n 19_o but_o read_v that_o page_n who_o will_v and_o thèy_n shall_v find_v never_o a_o word_n of_o such_o confession_n the_o scripture_n itself_o that_o i_o except_v against_o by_o call_v for_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n which_o he_o promise_v to_o prove_v to_o be_v canonical_a in_o the_o 11._o chapter_n where_o his_o argument_n shall_v receive_v answer_n the_o 4._o part_n what_o great_a promise_n he_o make_v to_o bring_v most_o evident_a scripture_n against_o we_o and_o also_o by_o scripture_n to_o prove_v his_o sense_n of_o the_o bristol_n scripture_n triumph_v also_o before_o the_o victory_n and_o say_v that_o ãâ¦ã_o darenot_v not_o be_v try_v by_o scripture_n but_o reject_v the_o scripture_n where_o ãâ¦ã_o n_z a_o fourfold_a offer_n be_v make_v unto_o he_o before_o he_o rehearse_v my_o word_n of_o promise_n he_o repete_v fulke_n ãâ¦ã_o w_o precise_a he_o have_v show_v i_o first_o to_o admit_v no_o evi_fw-fr ãâ¦ã_o nce_n that_o they_o allege_v but_o scripture_n only_o both_o in_o all_o ãâ¦ã_o ntroversy_n and_o also_o in_o the_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n ãâ¦ã_o at_o evidence_n i_o admit_v and_o how_o far_o have_v be_v show_v ãâ¦ã_o before_o &_o more_o at_o large_a in_o my_o answer_n to_o his_o motive_n ãâ¦ã_o d_o demand_n second_o he_o say_v i_o admit_v no_o scripture_n ãâ¦ã_o ich_fw-ge make_v so_o plain_o with_o they_o that_o i_o can_v avoid_v but_o by_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v canonical_a though_o i_o grant_v ãâ¦ã_o o_o have_v the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o same_o true_a church_n which_o ãâ¦ã_o ove_v i_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o receive_v the_o other_o scrip_n ãâ¦ã_o res_fw-la for_o canonical_a this_o he_o speak_v for_o the_o maccabee_n ãâ¦ã_o oak_n which_o although_o i_o deny_v to_o be_v canonical_a yet_o i_o ãâ¦ã_o ver_fw-la grant_v to_o have_v the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o true_a ãâ¦ã_o urch_fw-mi neither_o yet_o ever_o have_v it_o again_o where_o he_o say_v ãâ¦ã_o e_o true_a church_n move_v i_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o re_fw-mi ãâ¦ã_o we_o the_o other_o scripture_n for_o canonical_a he_o do_v i_o ãâ¦ã_o onge_n for_o the_o church_n move_v not_o i_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n ãâ¦ã_o t_o in_o a_o much_o inferior_a degree_n of_o move_v the_o holy_a ghost_n ãâã_d the_o author_n move_v i_o the_o true_a church_n as_o a_o wit_n ãâ¦ã_o sse_o three_o he_o say_v i_o admit_v no_o scripture_n which_o i_o con_v ãâ¦ã_o sse_o to_o be_v canonical_a unless_o it_o make_v so_o express_o so_o plain_o so_o manifest_o &_o so_o necessary_o with_o they_o that_o it_o can_v by_o any_o subtlety_n be_v avoid_v this_o proposition_n be_v in_o the_o copulative_a be_v false_a for_o i_o admit_v argument_n take_v either_o out_o of_o the_o express_v and_o plain_a word_n of_o scripture_n or_o of_o collection_n necessary_o conclude_v let_v he_o make_v a_o new_a logic_n if_o he_o will_v have_v i_o admit_v argument_n that_o do_v not_o conclude_v necessary_o how_o i_o observe_v that_o law_n that_o i_o so_o rigorous_o exact_a ãâ¦ã_o e_o will_v examine_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n then_o follow_v a_o large_a rehearsal_n of_o sentence_n wherein_o i_o affirm_v âhat_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n i_o be_o able_a to_o prove_v every_o arti_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o e_o of_o faith_n that_o we_o hold_v against_o the_o papist_n by_o ne_fw-fr ãâ¦ã_o essarie_a argu_n ãâ¦ã_o ent_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n bristol_n say_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n i_o shall_v have_v enough_o yet_o if_o ãâã_d will_n one_o article_n shall_v be_v this_o that_o antichrist_n be_v not_o one_o certain_a person_n that_o i_o shall_v easy_o prove_v thus_o one_o certain_a person_n be_v not_o many_o antichrist_n there_o haââ_n be_v many_o therefore_o antichriste_n be_v not_o one_o certain_a person_n the_o minor_a be_v saint_n john_n epist._n 1._o cap._n 2._o vers_fw-la 18._o again_o antichrist_n be_v he_o whosoever_o deny_v that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n one_o certain_a person_n only_o deny_v not_o that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n therefore_o antich_n rist_n be_v not_o one_o certain_a person_n only_o 1._o johan._n 2._o vers_fw-la 22._o again_o every_o spirit_n that_o confess_v not_o jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o one_o certain_a person_n ergo_fw-la antichrist_n be_v not_o one_o certain_a person_n the_o beast_n describe_v apocalips_n 13._o and_o expound_v apocalips_n 17._o be_v antichrist_n but_o many_o king_n be_v the_o part_n of_o that_o beast_n therefore_o antichrist_n be_v no_o one_o certain_a person_n the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n which_o be_v expound_v apoc._n 17._o to_o be_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v bear_v by_o the_o beast_n beforesaide_a which_o be_v antichrist_n but_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o bear_v by_o one_o certain_a person_n therefore_o antichrist_n be_v no_o one_o certain_a person_n an_o other_o article_n that_o he_o require_v i_o to_o prove_v be_v that_o the_o church_n fly_v
into_o the_o wilderness_n at_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n be_v to_o become_v invisible_a to_o the_o world_n although_o this_o article_n be_v not_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o controversy_n between_o we_o neither_o yet_o so_o affirm_v of_o i_o as_o though_o to_o be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o be_v invisible_a to_o the_o world_n yet_o i_o will_v prove_v so_o much_o as_o i_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n be_v invisible_a to_o the_o world_n the_o church_n be_v where_o the_o multitude_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v not_o be_v to_o they_o invisible_a but_o the_o multitude_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v not_o in_o the_o wilderness_n therefore_o the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n be_v to_o the_o multitude_n of_o wicked_a man_n which_o be_v the_o world_n invisible_a three_o he_o require_v i_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o come_n and_o fly_v shall_v be_v so_o soon_o after_o christ_n passion_n before_o i_o prove_v this_o it_o be_v reason_n you_o shall_v tell_v how_o soon_o you_o mean_v or_o i_o say_v such_o ãâ¦ã_o m_n and_o flee_v shall_v be_v and_o the_o like_a i_o say_v ãâ¦ã_o the_o continuance_n of_o so_o many_o age_n and_o the_o end_n so_o ãâ¦ã_o g_o before_o christ_n second_o come_v the_o holy_a ãâ¦ã_o oft_o declare_v apoc._n 12._o for_o 5._o that_o immediate_o after_o ãâ¦ã_o rist_n be_v take_v up_o to_o god_n and_o his_o throne_n the_o woman_n ãâ¦ã_o hich_v be_v the_o church_n be_v persecute_v by_o the_o dragon_n ãâ¦ã_o d_o into_o the_o wilderness_n the_o time_n of_o continuance_n be_v ãâ¦ã_o urative_o &_o obscure_o describe_v by_o day_n month_n ãâ¦ã_o d_o year_n and_o general_o by_o a_o time_n time_n and_o half_o a_o ãâ¦ã_o e_o which_o i_o never_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o define_v how_o ãâ¦ã_o ng_z they_o shall_v be_v in_o account_n of_o our_o year_n nor_o when_o ãâ¦ã_o come_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v after_o this_o he_o say_v i_o triumph_v in_o lie_v when_o i_o of_o ãâ¦ã_o i_o the_o papist_n dare_v not_o abide_v the_o trial_n of_o only_a ãâ¦ã_o ipture_n whereas_o he_o labour_v nothing_o so_o much_o in_o all_o ãâ¦ã_o be_v chapter_n as_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o trial_n of_o true_a do_v ãâ¦ã_o ine_z ought_v not_o to_o be_v only_o by_o scripture_n and_o ãâ¦ã_o terwarde_o he_o say_v plain_o they_o refuse_v the_o trial_n ãâ¦ã_o only_o scripture_n but_o not_o by_o scripture_n no_o more_o ãâ¦ã_o eu_fw-fr they_o refuse_v faith_n because_o they_o refuse_v only_a faith_n ãâ¦ã_o here_o he_o note_v i_o for_o foist_v in_o the_o word_n one_o ãâ¦ã_o in_o the_o minor_a of_o this_o argument_n the_o spouse_n of_o ãâ¦ã_o hrist_n hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v rule_v there_o ãâ¦ã_o y_fw-es but_o the_o romishe_a church_n will_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v ãâ¦ã_o lead_v only_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n therefore_o she_o be_v ãâ¦ã_o ot_fw-mi of_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ._n i_o think_v every_o reasonable_a ãâ¦ã_o le_fw-fr man_n will_v have_v understand_v only_o in_o the_o maior_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o so_o see_v she_o be_v no_o honest_a spouse_n that_o will_v be_v rule_v ãâ¦ã_o y_fw-es the_o voice_n of_o a_o other_o man_n then_o her_o husband_n or_o ãâ¦ã_o hat_n will_v be_v rule_v by_o herself_o or_o take_v upon_o ãâ¦ã_o o_o to_o over-rule_v her_o husband_n i_o add_v also_o in_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o inor_fw-la which_o bristol_n omit_v that_o the_o romish_a church_n ãâ¦ã_o go_v a_o whore_v after_o her_o own_o invention_n and_o come_v ãâ¦ã_o mit_v gross_a idolatry_n ar._n 99_o where_o i_o charge_v the_o popish_a church_n with_o blas_fw-es ãâ¦ã_o mie_fw-fr for_o submit_v god_n word_n to_o her_o own_o judgement_n ãâ¦ã_o he_o answer_v it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o i_o shall_v say_v the_o apostle_n do_v blasphemous_o submit_v the_o scripture_n to_o the_o own_o will_n bâ_n cause_n they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o true_a s_o ãâ¦ã_o and_o because_o s._n peter_n say_v the_o unlearned_a be_v hiâ_n self_n a_o fisherman_n and_o unstable_a do_v misconstrue_v s._n pauâ_n epistle_n &c._n &c._n to_o their_o own_o damnation_n which_o be_v all_o ãâã_d as_o if_o bristol_n can_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o apâ_n stle_v take_v upon_o they_o without_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n ãâã_d contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n in_o other_o place_n to_o judge_v ãâã_d sense_n of_o any_o scripture_n as_o the_o popish_a church_n do_v ãâã_d that_o saint_n peter_n be_v a_o apostle_n endue_v with_o so_o mâ_n ny_fw-fr grace_n be_v unlearned_a because_o he_o have_v be_v a_o ãâã_d sherman_n again_o where_o i_o say_v the_o popish_a church_n ma_fw-fr ãâ¦ã_o fest_o reject_v the_o whole_a authority_n of_o all_o the_o canon_n ãâ¦ã_o call_v scripture_n when_o she_o affirm_v that_o no_o book_n ãâã_d holy_a scripture_n be_v canonical_a but_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o she_o ãâ¦ã_o will_v allow_v it_o this_o say_v bristol_n be_v as_o though_o ãâã_d apostle_n and_o the_o church_n after_o they_o manifest_o reject_v the_o whole_a &c_n &c_n because_o they_o make_v a_o canon_n or_o canon_n whereof_o the_o say_a scripture_n be_v and_o be_v call_v ãâ¦ã_o canonical_a whereupon_o himself_o also_o count_v the_o ãâ¦ã_o as_o confirm_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o the_o scriptu_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o be_v call_v canonical_a of_o such_o a_o canon_n it_o be_v not_o yet_o prove_v for_o they_o may_v be_v call_v the_o canon_n and_o canonical_a because_o they_o be_v the_o certain_a rule_n to_o directe_v ãâã_d matter_n of_o religion_n but_o admit_v the_o apostle_n or_o ãâã_d church_n immediate_o after_o they_o in_o have_v the_o spir_n ãâ¦ã_o of_o discretion_n make_v such_o a_o canon_n to_o discern_v true_a aâd_n divine_a book_n from_o false_a and_o conterfeite_a book_n or_o write_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n what_o be_v this_o like_a to_o that_o bl_n ãâ¦ã_o phemous_a authority_n which_o the_o popish_a church_n challenge_v that_o she_o give_v authority_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o might_n as_o well_o have_v receive_v the_o gospel_n of_o bartholomewe_a as_o of_o matthew_n of_o thomas_n as_o of_o john_n &c_n &c_n whereby_o it_o follow_v that_o by_o the_o like_a power_n she_o may_v now_o reject_v the_o gospel_n of_o mathewe_n and_o john_n and_o receive_v the_o gospel_n of_o bartholomew_n and_o thomas_n where_o i_o say_v the_o popish_a bishop_n dare_v not_o abide_v the_o conference_n at_o westminster_n first_o he_o quarel_v ãâ¦ã_o my_o phrase_n because_o i_o say_v it_o be_v before_o the_o whole_a ãâ¦ã_o rlde_fw-mi as_o one_o that_o care_v not_o what_o i_o say_v in_o deed_n i_o ãâ¦ã_o de_fw-fr account_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o reasonable_a rea_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o s_o which_o will_v not_o take_v my_o word_n as_o though_o i_o ãâ¦ã_o nt_v that_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v gather_v into_o ãâ¦ã_o estminster_n church_n but_o that_o the_o conference_n and_o this_fw-mi ãâ¦ã_o tation_n be_v so_o open_a and_o so_o notorious_a that_o all_o the_o world_n ãâ¦ã_o ght_v have_v knowledge_n of_o it_o second_o he_o call_v it_o a_o mock_n conference_n in_o come_v ãâ¦ã_o rison_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n yet_o be_v there_o no_o or_o ãâ¦ã_o r_o take_v but_o such_o as_o be_v well_o like_v of_o by_o the_o papist_n ãâ¦ã_o m_o self_n until_o they_o see_v their_o cause_n can_v carry_v no_o ãâ¦ã_o dite_fw-fr he_o charge_v we_o for_o refuse_v to_o come_v to_o the_o council_n ãâã_d trent_n be_v so_o solemn_o &_o honourable_o invite_v with_o ãâ¦ã_o h_o safeconducte_n etc._n etc._n to_o your_o safeconducte_n i_o aun_n ãâ¦ã_o ere_o brief_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n have_v discredit_v ãâ¦ã_o m_o for_o ever_o on_o your_o behalf_n and_o to_o your_o disputati_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o there_o offer_v i_o say_v it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n in_o such_o a_o ãâ¦ã_o cke_z council_n where_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v the_o princi_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o will_v party_n that_o be_v accuse_v of_o heresy_n shall_v be_v the_o only_a ãâ¦ã_o dge_v and_o disposer_n of_o all_o thing_n pass_v therein_o against_o ãâã_d good_a example_n law_n equity_n and_o reason_n where_o you_o make_v allen_n such_o a_o great_a exhibitioner_n ãâã_d our_o whole_a country_n i_o will_v not_o quarrel_v at_o your_o phrase_n ãâ¦ã_o t_o i_o marvel_v what_o great_a revenue_n he_o have_v in_o flaun_n ãâ¦ã_o r_o that_o he_o receyve_v no_o exhibition_n as_o you_o say_v from_o any_o body_n but_o now_o to_o the_o fourefolde_v offer_n wherein_o first_o you_o say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n count_v we_o subject_n ãâã_d much_o as_o we_o compte_fw-fr you_v the_o subject_n of_o england_n âe_v count_n you_o as_o you_o show_v yourselves_o to_o be_v errant_a waiter_n to_o england_n and_o the_o most_o godly_a prince_n of_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o i_o our_o sovereign_a lady_n queen_n elizabeth_n as_o for_o ãâ¦ã_o e_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n we_o owe_v no_o more_o subjection_n ãâ¦ã_o
own_o eye_n but_o that_o which_o i_o command_v you_o that_o only_o shall_v you_o do_v without_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o it_o or_o take_v any_o thing_n away_o from_o it_o after_o a_o fond_a quarrel_n of_o the_o quotation_n omit_v by_o the_o printer_n and_o his_o conjecture_n thereupon_o moses_n say_v not_o say_v bristol_n that_o only_o which_o i_o do_v write_v but_o that_o only_a which_o i_o command_v and_o so_o our_o saviour_n christ_n command_v the_o jew_n according_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o they_o command_v you_o observe_v it_o i_o ask_v no_o better_o we_o must_v observe_v that_o only_a which_o god_n command_v whether_o moses_n or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n or_o evangelist_n have_v write_v it_o whether_o the_o scribes_z or_o pharisee_n pastor_n or_o teacher_n do_v preach_v it_o but_o where_o shall_v we_o find_v that_o which_o god_n have_v command_v but_o in_o the_o law_n &_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o evangelist_n which_o be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a to_o salvation_n which_o be_v profitable_a to_o make_v that_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a prepare_v to_o all_o good_a work_n as_o for_o the_o pin_n say_v bristol_n you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o doctor_n they_o be_v not_o for_o that_o cause_n you_o imagine_v of_o leave_v nothing_o to_o man_n devise_n in_o that_o worship_n of_o god_n for_o how_o say_v you_o then_o by_o david_n &_o solomon_n who_o change_v not_o only_o a_o pin_n but_o all_o the_o pin_n &_o the_o whole_a tabernacle_n into_o the_o temple_n &_o ordain_v musical_a instrument_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n that_o the_o law_n do_v not_o mention_v i_o answer_v whatsoever_o david_n and_o solomon_n change_v and_o ordain_v they_o do_v not_o by_o the_o devise_n of_o man_n but_o by_o revelation_n from_o god_n who_o have_v ordain_v they_o to_o do_v it_o but_o my_o error_n be_v say_v bristol_n because_o i_o do_v not_o distinguish_v between_o man_n that_o have_v only_o their_o own_o human_a spirit_n and_o man_n that_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o moses_n the_o propheââ_n and_o apostles_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o be_v in_o deedâ_n in_o a_o gross_a error_n if_o i_o can_v not_o distinguish_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n but_o bristol_n err_v because_o he_o confound_v man_n that_o be_v special_o choose_v to_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o revelation_n and_o the_o same_o to_o preach_v and_o write_v as_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n with_o the_o church_n which_o consist_v of_o man_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n but_o for_o the_o certainty_n of_o truth_n build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n &_o apostle_n or_o else_o err_a if_o they_o depart_v from_o that_o foundation_n the_o digression_n he_o make_v to_o the_o unlearned_a brother_n because_o i_o know_v not_o the_o treatise_n against_o which_o he_o write_v i_o omit_v but_o where_o he_o return_v to_o admonish_v i_o his_o fellow_n fulke_n as_o he_o call_v i_o to_o look_v better_o to_o my_o logic_n concern_v my_o argument_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negative_a i_o do_v he_o to_o wit_n that_o god_n i_o thank_v i_o be_o not_o to_o learn_v logic_n nor_o the_o force_n of_o a_o argument_n of_o authority_n negative_o of_o he_o the_o argument_n that_o anger_v he_o be_v this_o all_o true_a doctrine_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n purgatory_n be_v not_o teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o purgatory_n be_v no_o true_a doctrine_n here_o be_v two_o fault_n say_v bristol_n one_o because_o the_o mayor_n be_v false_a the_o other_o suppose_v the_o mayor_n be_v true_a yet_o can_v the_o argument_n be_v oppose_v to_o our_o argument_n of_o tradition_n counsel_n father_n i_o will_v first_o prove_v the_o mayor_n that_o whereby_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v make_v perfect_a furnish_v to_o all_o good_a work_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n 2._o tim._n 3._o all_o true_a doctrine_n be_v that_o whereby_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v make_v perfect_a prepare_v to_o all_o good_a work_n therefore_o all_o true_a doctrineâs_n teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n again_o that_o which_o be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o man_n wise_a to_o salvation_n teach_v all_o true_a doctrine_n needful_a to_o salvation_n for_o of_o other_o truth_n we_o speak_v not_o but_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o man_n wise_a unto_o salvation_n ergo_fw-la ãâã_d scripture_n teach_v all_o true_a doctrine_n and_o concer_fw-fr ãâ¦ã_o g_o the_o second_o fault_n which_o suppose_v the_o mayor_n &_o mi_fw-mi ãâ¦ã_o be_v true_a yet_o deny_v the_o argument_n i_o will_v ãâ¦ã_o sh_z you_o fellow_n bristol_n to_o look_v better_o to_o your_o ãâ¦ã_o gike_a how_o a_o argument_n that_o be_v true_a in_o matter_n and_o ãâ¦ã_o rme_v may_v not_o be_v oppose_v against_o you_o but_o you_o ãâ¦ã_o ing_z a_o witty_a example_n if_o you_o prove_v a_o doctrine_n unto_o ãâ¦ã_o câ_n out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o i_o oppose_v thereunto_o ãâ¦ã_o y_fw-es negative_a argument_n and_o say_v all_o true_a doctrine_n ãâ¦ã_o aught_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o doctrine_n be_v not_o ãâ¦ã_o ght_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n therefore_o that_o doctrine_n ãâ¦ã_o o_o true_a doctrine_n you_o ask_v i_o whether_o this_o be_v well_o ãâ¦ã_o pose_v of_o i_o i_o answer_v no_o neither_o will_v i_o ever_o ãâ¦ã_o pose_v such_o a_o argument_n against_o you_o which_o though_o it_o ãâã_d true_a in_o form_n yet_o it_o be_v manifest_o false_a in_o matter_n ãâ¦ã_o r_o if_o you_o suppose_v the_o mayor_n to_o be_v true_a as_o you_o say_v that_o ãâ¦ã_o old_a it_o and_o must_v hold_v it_o especial_o if_o you_o say_v so_o then_o ãâ¦ã_o he_o minor_fw-la utter_o false_a for_o than_o no_o doctrine_n be_v teach_v ãâã_d the_o old_a testament_n but_o the_o same_o be_v teach_v also_o in_o ãâã_d new_a testament_n wherefore_o this_o example_n proove_v ãâ¦ã_o t_o but_o that_o my_o argument_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negatiuè_fw-fr be_v ãâ¦ã_o ght_o oppose_v against_o tradition_n counsel_n father_n &_o ãâ¦ã_o ch_n like_v as_o avouch_v any_o doctrine_n for_o true_a which_o be_v not_o ãâ¦ã_o ght_v in_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o all_o truth_n be_v teach_v the_o second_o part_n of_o scripture_n allege_v concern_v the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n use_v first_o what_o he_o allege_v indefinite_o that_o the_o church_n may_v bristol_n ãâ¦ã_o re_fw-mi the_o first_o text_n cite_v ar._n 86._o every_o man_n be_v a_o liar_n âherfore_o the_o whole_a church_n militant_a consist_v of_o man_n fulke_n âhich_v be_v all_o liar_n may_v err_v altogether_o against_o this_o bristol_n ask_v why_o i_o do_v not_o say_v ãâ¦ã_o e_o church_n triumphant_a and_o demand_v whether_o ãâ¦ã_o at_o also_o do_v not_o consist_v of_o man_n i_o answer_v the_o scrip_n ãâ¦ã_o re_fw-mi psalm_n 116._o speak_v of_o man_n live_v in_o this_o world_n ãâ¦ã_o d_o such_o as_o be_v mere_a man_n lest_o he_o shall_v cavil_v at_o our_o ãâ¦ã_o viour_n christ_n which_o be_v a_o man_n and_o yet_o not_o contain_v in_o this_o general_a rule_n as_o for_o the_o member_n of_o the_o triumphant_a church_n whether_o they_o may_v proper_o be_v câlled_v man_n i_o will_v not_o dispute_v but_o we_o speak_v as_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o man_n on_o earth_n and_o the_o church_n o_o ãâ¦ã_o âarth_n and_o therefore_o although_o it_o be_v true_a that_o somâ_n man_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v verace_n true_a yet_o never_o which_o may_v not_o err_v and_o therefore_o the_o absurdi_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o which_o i_o gather_v purg._n 451._o god_n only_o be_v not_o true_a if_o ãâã_d pope_n can_v err_v be_v not_o avoid_v by_o say_v the_o apostle_n can_v err_v for_o undoubted_o the_o apostle_n do_v err_v that_o their_o preach_n and_o write_n be_v not_o erroneous_a it_o be_v because_o they_o be_v not_o they_o but_o the_o endite_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o they_o but_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v not_o so_o by_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v manifest_a by_o this_o that_o he_o have_v speak_v contrary_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n not_o only_o in_o matter_n of_o controversy_n between_o he_o and_o we_o but_o also_o in_o heresy_n condemn_v by_o both_o part_n the_o 2._o text_n be_v ar._n 88_o where_o i_o say_v the_o true_a &_o only_a church_n of_o god_n have_v no_o such_o privilege_n grant_v but_o that_o she_o may_v be_v deceive_v in_o some_o thing_n for_o her_o knowledge_n be_v unperfect_a &_o her_o prophesy_v be_v unperfect_a bristol_n repli_v that_o s._n paul_n in_o that_o speech_n include_v himself_o our_o knowledge_n &_o our_o prophesy_a etc._n etc._n be_v unperfect_a whether_o we_o speak_v or_o write_v and_o say_v that_o he_o trow_v i_o will_v
up_o and_o as_o it_o be_v cover_v the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o so_o compass_v the_o camp_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o belove_a city_n that_o therefore_o the_o camp_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o belove_a city_n be_v as_o large_a and_o as_o many_o in_o number_n as_o their_o enemy_n when_o experience_n prove_v the_o contrary_a at_o this_o day_n if_o all_o that_o be_v baptize_v be_v true_a christian_n and_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n yet_o be_v they_o nothing_o in_o multitude_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o turk_n and_o infidel_n wherefore_o for_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v here_o show_v the_o church_n shall_v be_v invisible_a to_o the_o world_n when_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v in_o his_o great_a tyranny_n namely_o of_o their_o church_n and_o of_o we_o by_o conference_n of_o place_n bristol_n that_o be_v about_o antichrist_n that_o neither_o antichrist_n nor_o the_o apostasy_n agree_v to_o bonâface_n the_o three_o be_v demand_v ar._n 35._o what_o year_n the_o religion_n of_o papist_n come_v in_o and_o prevail_v i_o answer_v that_o although_o fuâke_n many_o abuse_n and_o corruption_n enter_v into_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n which_o the_o devil_n plant_v as_o a_o preparative_n for_o his_o elder_a son_n antichrist_n yet_o we_o may_v well_o say_v that_o the_o religion_n of_o papist_n come_v in_o and_o prevail_v that_o year_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n first_o obtain_v his_o antichristian_a exaltation_n which_o be_v 607._o when_o boniface_n the_o three_o for_o a_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n obtain_v of_o phocas_n the_o murder_a emperor_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v call_v and_o count_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n which_o devilish_a heresy_n increase_v until_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1414._o when_v the_o council_n of_o constance_n decree_v that_o sacrilege_n of_o the_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n likewise_o ar._n 16._o after_o i_o have_v show_v the_o persecution_n of_o the_o true_a church_n until_o constantine_n and_o soon_o after_o by_o the_o arrian_n than_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o empire_n by_o the_o barbarous_a heretical_a &_o idolatrous_a nation_n i_o conclude_v but_o when_o mahomet_n in_o the_o east_n and_o antichrist_n the_o pope_n in_o the_o west_n seduce_v the_o world_n with_o most_o detestable_a heresy_n than_o be_v fulfil_v that_o which_o be_v reveal_v to_o s._n john_n apoâ_n 12._o the_o woman_n clothe_v with_o the_o sun_n which_o be_v the_o church_n be_v so_o persecute_v by_o the_o dragon_n that_o she_o flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n there_o tâ_n remain_v a_o long_a season_n these_o say_n of_o i_o bristol_n rehearse_v cut_v off_o in_o the_o waist_n as_o though_o i_o refer_v the_o dragon_n persecution_n only_o to_o the_o pope_n which_o i_o say_v plain_o begin_v before_o but_o be_v most_o perfect_a concern_v the_o apostasy_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o popish_a antichrist_n again_o he_o say_v i_o do_v apply_v this_o pprophecy_n only_o because_o of_o the_o pope_n primacyâ_n which_o be_v false_a but_o because_o of_o his_o false_a doctrine_n and_o heresy_n also_o for_o that_o he_o say_v the_o pope_n primacy_n be_v a_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o practise_v before_o bonifacius_n âhe_n refer_v we_o for_o proof_n to_o saunders_n trey_n terous_a book_n of_o monarchy_n and_o i_o for_o answer_n will_v send_v the_o reader_n âo_o my_o overthrow_n of_o his_o romish_a rock_n the_o supposed_a contradiction_n i_o refer_v always_o to_o the_o proper_a place_n cap._n 11._o but_o o_o sir_n where_o be_v the_o scripture_n that_o you_o promise_v âo_o bring_v so_o clear_a etc._n etc._n say_v bristol_n sir_n my_o promise_n be_v for_o article_n of_o doctrine_n in_o controversy_n between_o we_o ând_v not_o for_o the_o fulfil_n of_o every_o pprophecy_n which_o the_o âffect_n must_v better_o expound_v oftentimes_o than_o the_o word_n but_o furthermore_o say_v bristol_n you_o make_v show_v of_o a_o âext_n which_o be_v against_o you_o and_o use_v most_o detestable_a falsification_n say_v the_o church_n shall_v remain_v in_o the_o wilderness_n a_o long_a season_n but_o the_o text_n be_v clean_a contraây_n a_o very_a short_a season_n say_v you_o so_o bristol_n where_o have_v you_o these_o word_n in_o the_o text_n a_o very_a short_a season_n but_o you_o have_v 1260._o day_n and_o a_o time_n two_o time_n and_o âalfe_a a_o time_n and_o can_v you_o tell_v we_o the_o length_n of_o these_o âimes_n or_o of_o the_o day_n either_o in_o the_o week_n of_o daniel_n ânto_o who_o you_o refer_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o two_o time_n for_o you_o have_v not_o two_o time_n but_o time_n indefinite_o in_o the_o revelation_n the_o prophetical_a day_n be_v as_o long_o as_o common_a year_n as_o for_o the_o time_n two_o time_n and_o half_o a_o âime_n who_o be_v able_a to_o define_v the_o length_n of_o they_o but_o by_o scripture_n you_o will_v prove_v a_o very_a short_a season_n and_o first_o you_o jumble_v together_o two_o diverse_a prophecy_n of_o apoc._n 12._o &_o 20._o of_o the_o lose_n of_o satan_n for_o a_o short_a season_n why_o man_n short_a and_o long_o be_v relative_n the_o time_n of_o satan_n lose_n be_v short_a in_o comparison_n either_o of_o the_o long_a time_n that_o he_o be_v bind_v or_o of_o the_o long_a and_o eternal_a time_n in_o which_o he_o shall_v remain_v in_o perpetual_a bondage_n for_o though_o antichrist_n reign_v in_o open_a revelation_n and_o not_o in_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n only_o by_o the_o space_n of_o 807._o year_n more_o or_o less_o and_o yet_o be_v not_o utter_o consume_v but_o yet_o in_o his_o consumption_n nevertheless_o for_o a_o whole_a 1000_o year_n after_o christ_n the_o gospel_n of_o salvation_n continue_v in_o the_o church_n though_o much_o defile_v with_o superstition_n yet_o sound_o in_o the_o only_a foundation_n christ_n open_o testify_v by_o sundry_a public_a teacher_n until_o sylvester_n the_o second_o anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1000_o by_o the_o devil_n himself_o as_o even_o the_o popish_a story_n confess_v be_v put_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n &_o then_o be_v the_o church_n drive_v into_o great_a strait_n than_o ever_o before_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n be_v turn_v into_o idolatry_n and_o blasphemy_n but_o it_o be_v monstrous_a that_o bristol_n expound_v the_o consummation_n of_o the_o 1000_o year_n by_o the_o gospel_n speak_v of_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n matt._n 24._o mark_v 13._o and_o confound_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o jerusalem_n with_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o where_o he_o cit_v matth._n 42._o staâiââ_n post_n straight_o after_o the_o persecution_n of_o those_o short_a day_n consider_v that_o from_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n so_o many_o hundred_o year_n be_v pass_v he_o may_v learn_v at_o the_o jest_n not_o to_o measure_v the_o length_n and_o shortness_n of_o time_n by_o man_n reckon_n but_o to_o remember_v that_o with_o the_o lord_n a_o thousand_o year_n be_v as_o a_o day_n and_o a_o day_n as_o a_o thousand_o year_n 2._o pet._n 3._o his_o other_o patch_v of_o centones_n like_o valentinian_o in_o steed_n of_o conserence_n of_o scripture_n because_o they_o consist_v of_o his_o only_a assertion_n without_o reason_n or_o authority_n i_o need_v not_o to_o confute_v as_o that_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n which_o daniel_n prophesi_v shall_v be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n daniel_n the_o 9_o &_o 12._o he_o expound_v it_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n by_o the_o which_o âaint_n paul_n prophesy_v that_o we_o shall_v announce_v our_o âordes_n death_n as_o though_o saint_n paul_n speak_v that_o of_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o not_o express_v of_o eat_v that_o bread_n and_o drink_v that_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n like_o wise_a speak_v of_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n he_o say_v daniel_n agree_v with_o the_o gospel_n &_o the_o apocalypse_n where_o he_o say_v daniel_n 12._o from_o the_o time_n âhen_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o abomination_n set_v up_o for_o desolation_n day_n 1290._o bless_a be_v ãâ¦ã_o e_o that_o expect_v and_o come_v to_o day_n 1335._o what_o agreement_n be_v between_o 1260._o day_n and_o these_o two_o number_n beside_o that_o daniel_n 9_o the_o angel_n show_v that_o âhe_v abhominatian_n of_o desolation_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o desolation_n shall_v continue_v even_o to_o the_o consummation_n ând_v end_n last_o of_o all_o he_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o season_n be_v short_a âut_v of_o the_o apostle_n 2._o thess._n 2._o where_o he_o charge_v the_o thessalonian_o that_o they_o be_v not_o trouble_v as_o though_o the_o âay_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v then_o instant_a for_o antichrist_n must_v âirst_n be_v reveal_v and_o
of_o parent_n murderer_n ince_n ãâ¦ã_o vous_fw-fr person_n remover_n of_o their_o neighbour_n mark_n oppressor_n of_o the_o fatherless_a and_o stranger_a etc._n etc._n and_o general_o against_o all_o transgressor_n of_o the_o law_n unto_o who_o the_o curse_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n be_v threaten_v ân_o the_o same_o word_n '_o that_o it_o be_v to_o the_o rest_n mark_v also_o where_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o galath_n 3._o by_o this_o curse_n prove_v all_o they_o that_o be_v under_o the_o law_n to_o be_v subiectâ_n unto_o this_o curse_n how_o the_o serpent_n deny_v this_o curse_n to_o be_v the_o assurance_n of_o eternal_a death_n make_v the_o case_n of_o they_o to_o be_v nothing_o so_o dangerous_a but_o continue_v under_o the_o law_n they_o may_v avoid_v eternal_a death_n and_o where_o he_o say_v every_o one_o in_o the_o epistle_n be_v not_o mean_v of_o christian_n i_o will_v know_v of_o he_o whether_o the_o galathian_o to_o who_o saint_n paul_n write_v be_v not_o christian_n but_o yet_o seduce_v by_o false_a apostle_n to_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n which_o as_o it_o be_v impossible_a so_o it_o will_v bring_v they_o from_o the_o blessing_n of_o christ_n unto_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n that_o true_a christian_n be_v discharge_v of_o this_o curse_n it_o be_v by_o the_o only_a merit_n of_o christ_n satisfaction_n and_o not_o that_o the_o sin_n themselves_o deserve_v not_o everlasting_a death_n though_o they_o bââ_n never_o so_o small_a of_o their_o own_o nature_n by_o the_o sentence_n of_o god_n curse_n which_o be_v a_o just_a reward_n for_o transgression_n heb._n 2._o the_o two_o other_o place_n that_o i_o cite_v for_o this_o purpose_n the_o soul_n that_o sin_v shall_v die_v ezech._n 18._o and_o the_o reward_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n rom._n 6._o he_o will_v expound_v by_o the_o say_n of_o saint_n james_n chapt._n 1._o sin_n when_o it_o be_v consummate_v gender_v death_n as_o though_o this_o place_n of_o s._n james_n deny_v sin_n not_o bring_v into_o act_n to_o deserve_v death_n because_o show_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o man_n destruction_n iâ_n in_o themselves_o from_o the_o first_o concupiscence_n to_o the_o last_o and_o gross_a act_n he_o conclude_v that_o those_o gross_a act_n bring_v a_o man_n into_o eternal_a death_n our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v this_o be_v condemnation_n that_o light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o man_n have_v love_v darkness_n rather_o than_o light_v be_v it_o not_o good_a logic_n and_o divinity_n also_o of_o this_o place_n to_o conclude_v that_o condemnation_n pertain_v not_o to_o man_n but_o where_o the_o light_n offer_v be_v refuse_v or_o that_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o come_v none_o have_v be_v condemn_v john_n 3._o and_o likewise_o yea_o much_o rather_o where_o christ_n say_v if_o i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o speak_v unto_o they_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v have_v sin_n john_n 15._o be_v the_o obstinate_a jew_n clear_v of_o sin_n by_o bristowe_v judgement_n before_o christ_n come_v but_o let_v we_o examine_v his_o reason_n it_o be_v sin_n say_v he_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v gendr_v but_o it_o gender_v not_o death_n so_o so_o one_o as_o it_o be_v gendr_v therefore_o some_o sin_n there_o be_v that_o gender_v notd_n eath_n the_o minor_a be_v false_a for_o saint_n james_n say_v that_o sin_n consummate_v gender_v death_n do_v not_o say_v that_o sin_n gender_v not_o death_n so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v gendr_v but_o behold_v yet_o his_o impudent_a wrest_n of_o the_o scripture_n he_o add_v also_o a_o exception_n unto_o sin_n consummate_v that_o not_o every_o sin_n consummate_a gender_v death_n except_o the_o matter_n be_v of_o weight_n according_o for_o else_o that_o the_o lightness_n of_o the_o matter_n as_o a_o idle_a word_n bring_v not_o death_n he_o sufficient_o signify_v in_o say_v that_o in_o a_o weighty_a matter_n the_o lightness_n or_o imperfection_n of_o consent_n do_v it_o not_o these_o be_v his_o word_n by_o which_o you_o may_v see_v that_o without_o all_o shame_n he_o impute_v such_o say_n to_o saint_n james_n as_o he_o can_v find_v never_o a_o word_n in_o hiâ_n sound_o like_o such_o ãâã_d say_v but_o this_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o heretic_n which_o learn_v not_o all_o truth_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n to_o bring_v their_o opinion_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o enforce_v the_o word_n thereof_o against_o all_o equity_n to_o signify_v and_o say_v whatsoever_o it_o please_v they_o now_o that_o saint_n james_n hold_v that_o every_o sin_n deserve_v death_n i_o will_v prove_v out_o of_o his_o own_o say_n by_o this_o argument_n whosoever_o be_v guilty_a of_o all_o the_o law_n and_o commandment_n deserve_v eternal_a death_n whosoever_o offend_v in_o one_o be_v guilty_a of_o all_o therefore_o whosoever_o offend_v in_o one_o deserve_v eternal_a death_n the_o mayor_n i_o trust_v you_o will_v grant_v the_o minor_a be_v saint_n james_n cap._n 2._o whosoever_o shall_v keep_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o offend_v but_o in_o one_o point_n he_o be_v guilty_a of_o all_o then_o see_v every_o sin_n be_v a_o breach_n of_o god_n law_n as_o saint_n john_n affirm_v john_n 3._o not_o only_o great_a sin_n but_o also_o small_a sin_n wherein_o soever_o man_n offend_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n deserve_v eternal_a death_n which_o can_v be_v avoid_v but_o by_o remission_n for_o christ_n sake_n for_o be_v the_o sin_n never_o so_o small_a it_o be_v commit_v against_o god_n the_o author_n of_o the_o law_n who_o thereby_o have_v forbid_v all_o sin_n which_o reason_n the_o apostle_n use_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o which_o offend_v in_o one_o be_v guilty_a of_o all_o and_o therefore_o the_o text_n by_o i_o allege_v do_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o all_o sin_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v mortal_a whether_o after_o sin_n remit_v pain_n bristol_n may_v remain_v that_o god_n remit_v the_o punishment_n with_o the_o fault_n in_o respect_n whereof_o the_o punishment_n be_v due_a i_o prove_v by_o fulke_n ezek._n 18._o &_o 33._o where_o the_o lord_n promise_v to_o put_v away_o the_o remembrance_n of_o a_o sinner_n offence_n that_o true_o turn_v unto_o he_o bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o repentance_n bristol_n say_v this_o take_v not_o place_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n whereby_o it_o will_v ensue_v that_o to_o man_n can_v have_v comfort_n of_o his_o sin_n forgive_v in_o this_o life_n but_o he_o oppose_v the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n psal_n 24._o &_o 78._o lord_n remember_v not_o the_o sin_n of_o my_o youth_n and_o lord_n remember_v not_o our_o old_a sin_n which_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o penitent_a to_o obtain_v forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n which_o once_o obtain_v they_o say_v the_o lord_n have_v remove_v our_o sin_n from_o we_o as_o far_o as_o the_o east_n be_v from_o the_o west_n psalm_n 102._o that_o may_v be_v say_v bristol_n in_o respect_n that_o they_o be_v remove_v from_o eternal_a damnation_n although_o they_o have_v yet_o to_o abide_v never_o so_o much_o temporal_a punishment_n i_o will_v prove_v that_o to_o be_v false_a to_o be_v remove_v as_o far_o as_o the_o east_n be_v from_o the_o west_n be_v as_o far_o as_o may_v be_v but_o not_o to_o be_v remove_v from_o temporal_a punishment_n be_v not_o to_o be_v remove_v as_o far_o as_o may_v be_v therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v remove_v as_o far_o as_o the_o easte_n be_v from_o the_o west_n but_o the_o whole_a psalm_n say_v bristol_n be_v speak_v not_o of_o the_o time_n of_o our_o receive_n into_o god_n favour_n by_o absolution_n but_o of_o our_o final_a restitution_n which_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o late_a day_n what_o can_v be_v say_v more_o absurd_o thank_n be_v there_o give_v to_o god_n not_o only_o for_o spiritual_a benefit_n but_o also_o for_o temporal_a the_o fatherly_a pity_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o as_o his_o child_n which_o keep_v his_o covenant_n and_o be_v mindful_a of_o his_o commandment_n to_o do_v they_o be_v there_o set_v forth_o which_o every_o man_n that_o be_v not_o blind_a with_o heretical_a malice_n will_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v extend_v toward_o we_o in_o this_o life_n &_o therefore_o also_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o remove_v of_o they_o as_o far_o as_o heaven_n from_o earth_n and_o east_n from_o west_n as_o for_o the_o argument_n of_o sing_v that_o psalm_n in_o the_o popish_a church_n upon_o the_o feast_n of_o christ_n ascension_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o pertain_v altogether_o to_o the_o late_a day_n be_v as_o good_a as_o it_o be_v true_a âhat_n the_o word_n there_o speak_v be_v only_o of_o our_o final_a âestitution_n at_o the_o late_a day_n to_o the_o example_n of_o the_o publican_n he_o answer_v âhat_n there_o be_v no_o more_o say_v but_o that_o he_o go_v home_o justify_v
call_v they_o to_o wash_v call_v they_o to_o baptism_n so_o many_o hundred_o year_n before_o baptism_n be_v institute_v be_v it_o not_o therefore_o evident_a that_o he_o call_v they_o to_o repentance_n or_o else_o have_v first_o so_o grievous_o accuse_v they_o of_o their_o present_a sin_n do_v he_o show_v no_o comfort_n but_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n which_o no_o man_n live_v can_v then_o possible_o obtain_v in_o such_o manner_n as_o you_o mean_v no_o not_o the_o prophet_n himself_o i_o may_v well_o say_v to_o you_o as_o you_o say_v to_o i_o in_o another_o place_n in_o good_a sooth_n daws_n these_o thing_n be_v not_o apt_o divide_v according_a to_o their_o time_n and_o that_o christ_n john_n 13._o speak_v not_o of_o the_o ceremony_n of_o baptism_n it_o iâ_n manifest_a by_o diverse_a reason_n but_o of_o his_o grace_n by_o which_o he_o wash_v we_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o therefore_o be_v say_v to_o peter_n except_o he_o be_v wash_v of_o he_o he_o can_v have_v no_o part_n with_o he_o but_o neither_o peter_n nor_o any_o other_o be_v or_o be_v baptize_v of_o he_o with_o water_n john_n 4._o therefore_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o where_o you_o add_v that_o he_o which_o be_v so_o wash_v must_v nevertheless_o wash_v his_o foot_n that_o be_v say_v you_o his_o venial_a sin_n which_o he_o commit_v afterward_o although_o he_o continue_v withal_o in_o the_o cleanness_n of_o baptism_n before_o he_o be_v all_o clean_a and_o ask_v i_o what_o if_o he_o die_v before_o he_o wash_v his_o foot_n admit_v that_o the_o foot_n shall_v signify_v none_o but_o venial_a sin_n i_o ask_v you_o again_o who_o shall_v wash_v his_o foot_n but_o he_o which_o wash_v peter_n foot_n for_o the_o true_a text_n be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d he_o have_v no_o need_n but_o that_o his_o foot_n be_v wash_v peter_n can_v not_o wash_v his_o own_o foot_n in_o this_o figurative_a signification_n but_o except_o christ_n do_v wash_v he_o he_o can_v have_v no_o part_n with_o he_o but_o if_o we_o shall_v take_v the_o foot_n only_o for_o venial_a sin_n and_o the_o general_a wash_n for_o baptism_n this_o inconvenience_n will_v follow_v of_o christ_n word_n that_o he_o which_o be_v baptize_v and_o purge_v from_o venial_a sin_n need_v no_o purgation_n to_o cleanse_v he_o from_o mortal_a sin_n but_o be_v perfect_o clear_a the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v general_a &_o can_v admit_v your_o exception_n of_o continue_v in_o the_o cleanness_n of_o baptism_n therefore_o the_o foot_n signify_v all_o sin_n to_o be_v pardon_v after_o the_o first_o grace_n purge_v we_o which_o be_v in_o deed_n represent_v and_o ratify_v in_o baptism_n but_o yet_o be_v perfect_o distinct_a from_o the_o sacrament_n and_o often_o time_n divide_v for_o judas_n of_o who_o you_o speak_v if_o he_o have_v dye_v immediate_o after_o he_o be_v baptize_v shall_v not_o have_v go_v to_o heaven_n as_o one_o thorough_o wash_v or_o cleanse_v by_o baptism_n where_o the_o papist_n urge_v the_o say_n of_o david_n psal._n â1_n amplius_fw-la lava_fw-la i_o etc._n etc._n wash_v i_o more_o from_o my_o iniquity_n bristol_n say_v i_o have_v nothing_o to_o answer_n but_o âhat_n it_o be_v at_o god_n hand_n and_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o christ_n âlood_o that_o he_o pray_v to_o be_v cleanse_v purg._n 97._o &_o 78._o whether_o i_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o say_v let_v the_o reader_n of_o âhose_v place_n judge_v but_o that_o which_o i_o here_o say_v take_v aâay_o purgatory_n and_o all_o satisfaction_n of_o man_n merit_n although_o david_n as_o all_o the_o faithful_a do_v pray_v that_o they_o may_v âaily_o more_o and_o more_o feel_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o grace_n âf_n christ_n redemption_n to_o the_o full_a satisfy_n of_o their_o conscience_n and_o perfect_a assurance_n of_o faith_n and_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n which_o though_o it_o receive_v daily_o increase_v yet_o âhe_v virtue_n of_o christ_n death_n in_o which_o god_n be_v reconcile_v ânto_o we_o be_v always_o one_o and_o the_o same_o where_o i_o charge_v allen_n that_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o christ_n âassion_n be_v count_v a_o light_a argument_n unto_o he_o bristol_n âaith_o it_o be_v too_o light_a in_o deed_n to_o bear_v down_o any_o doctrine_n âf_n christ._n but_o when_o or_o out_o of_o what_o scripture_n shall_v we_o âeare_z the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n for_o man_n merit_n satisfaâtions_n propitiatory_a or_o purgatory_n itself_o where_o i_o deny_v that_o our_o work_n be_v any_o part_n of_o satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n of_o which_o the_o price_n be_v thorough_o pay_v in_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n bristol_n object_v the_o âaying_n of_o the_o apostle_n phil._n 2._o work_v your_o own_o salvation_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v god_n that_o work_v in_o you_o as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o work_n of_o our_o salvation_n but_o by_o satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n we_o work_v our_o salvation_n when_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n that_o god_n have_v call_v we_o to_o pass_v through_o unto_o the_o free_a gift_n of_o eternal_a life_n namely_o in_o faith_n obedience_n thankfulness_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v so_o far_o from_o merit_n that_o it_o be_v god_n which_o work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o perform_v any_o good_a thing_n according_a to_o his_o good_a pleasure_n phil._n 2._o and_o therefore_o we_o need_v not_o the_o school_n distinction_n of_o cause_n for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o our_o work_n which_o be_v only_o the_o effect_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o passion_n need_v no_o help_n of_o our_o work_n which_o word_n bristol_n say_v my_o ignorance_n so_o much_o abhor_v and_o yet_o the_o scripture_n often_o say_v that_o god_n help_v both_o christ_n ps._n 17._o &_o us._n 2._o cor._n 2._o heb._n 13._o and_o also_o that_o christ_n help_v we_o heb._n 2._o but_o where_o say_v the_o scripture_n that_o our_o work_n help_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n i_o abhor_v not_o the_o word_n of_o help_v when_o it_o be_v use_v in_o that_o sense_n that_o god_n and_o christ_n shall_v help_v we_o or_o god_n help_v christ_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o humanity_n but_o that_o man_n by_o merit_n shall_v help_v god_n &_o christ_n in_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n or_o purge_v of_o they_o i_o abhoââe_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n yea_o i_o spit_v at_o it_o and_o tread_v it_o under_o my_o foot_n but_o if_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n say_v bristol_n although_o iâ_n be_v singular_o omnisufficient_a do_v not_o exclude_v neither_o christ_n passion_n nor_o the_o work_n of_o it_o or_o merit_n of_o that_o man_n how_o do_v the_o omnisufficiencie_n of_o christ_n passion_n enforte_v you_o to_o exclude_v either_o his_o baptism_n &_o his_o good_a work_n in_o his_o member_n or_o also_o the_o work_n of_o his_o baptism_n and_o the_o work_n or_o efficacy_n of_o those_o good_a work_n especial_o see_v the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a for_o all_o bristol_n understand_v not_o how_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v omnisufficient_a which_o be_v not_o as_o eâery_o one_o will_v imagine_v but_o as_o it_o may_v stand_v with_o his_o justice_n which_o be_v not_o otherwise_o satisfy_v but_o in_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v thereby_o full_o satisfy_v we_o exclude_v nothing_o that_o the_o scripture_n admit_v but_o that_o which_o not_o only_o the_o scripture_n deny_v but_o nature_n itself_o abhor_v that_o contradictory_n shall_v be_v both_o true_a namely_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n be_v full_o satisfy_v by_o the_o only_a suffering_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n be_v not_o satisfy_v by_o the_o only_a suffering_n of_o christ_n but_o by_o other_o mean_n also_o as_o by_o our_o own_o work_n or_o suffering_n or_o other_o man_n for_o us._n neither_o do_v any_o text_n of_o scripture_n that_o bristol_n cit_v prove_v this_o late_a part_n of_o the_o contradiction_n to_o be_v true_a first_o where_o he_o cit_v tit._n 3_o he_o have_v save_v we_o by_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n the_o text_n be_v when_o the_o love_a kindness_n &_o gentleness_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n appear_v not_o of_o the_o work_n of_o righteousness_n which_o we_o wrought_v but_o according_a to_o his_o own_o mercy_n he_o have_v save_v we_o by_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n and_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o he_o have_v pour_v forth_o plentiful_o upon_o we_o by_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n that_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o grace_n we_o may_v be_v make_v heir_n according_a to_o the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n here_o it_o be_v manifest_a we_o be_v so_o âaved_v by_o baptism_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o grace_n there_o âore_v not_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o baptism_n or_o satisfaction_n
argument_n with_o that_o fulke_n impudent_a slander_n of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o he_o affirm_v be_v ignorant_a that_o any_o soul_n go_v to_o heaven_n before_o their_o church_n have_v define_v it_o within_o these_o 300._o year_n i_o pass_v over_o &_o come_v to_o the_o matter_n in_o question_n i_o say_v purg._n 57_o against_o allen_n maintain_v that_o all_o the_o just_a before_o christ_n be_v punish_v for_o their_o sin_n forgive_v ma_fw-fr ny_fw-fr hundred_v year_n after_o their_o departure_n in_o hell_n that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n before_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o hell_n it_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v with_o manifest_a argument_n &_o autority_n out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n although_o they_o be_v not_o nor_o yet_o be_v in_o perfect_a blessedness_n god_n provide_v a_o better_a thing_n for_o we_o that_o they_o without_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v make_v perfect_a heb._n 11._o but_o by_o this_o text_n say_v brist_n s._n paul_n do_v mean_a that_o their_o soul_n be_v not_o yet_o admit_v into_o heaven_n how_o prove_v he_o that_o forsooth_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v consummate_v nothing_o etc._n etc._n but_o their_o sin_n remain_v not_o perfect_o remit_v christ_n die_v etc._n etc._n a_o sore_a bolt_n as_o though_o any_o man_n have_v his_o sin_n forgive_v but_o by_o the_o new_a testament_n or_o can_v be_v heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o by_o the_o death_n of_o christ._n but_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v heb_fw-mi 9_o that_o the_o way_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v not_o yet_o open_v while_o the_o first_o tabernacle_n stand_v bristol_n add_v to_o the_o text_n of_o his_o own_o into_o soncta_fw-la or_o heaven_n where_o the_o apostle_n mean_v of_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n redemption_n in_o his_o death_n resurrection_n &_o ascension_n the_o effect_n whereof_o nevertheless_o be_v extend_v no_o less_o to_o the_o father_n of_o that_o old_a testament_n then_o to_o us._n three_o the_o apostle_n say_v heb._n 10._o that_o we_o have_v confidence_n to_o enter_v in_o to_o the_o holy_a place_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n which_o have_v dedicate_v that_o new_a &_o live_a way_n for_o we_o through_o the_o veil_n that_o be_v his_o flesh_n all_o which_o prove_v nothing_o but_o that_o there_o be_v no_o entrance_n into_o heaven_n but_o by_o christ_n which_o way_n be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n of_o all_o age_n but_o bristol_n bid_v i_o confer_v the_o end_n of_o my_o text_n heb._n 11._o with_o the_o beginning_n where_o he_o say_v they_o receive_v not_o the_o promise_v which_o be_v the_o exposition_n of_o their_o not_o consummate_v i_o admit_v it_o for_o no_o christian_a receive_v the_o promise_n consummate_v before_o the_o resurrection_n of_o their_o body_n the_o consummation_n of_o which_o promise_n &_o perfection_n of_o the_o saint_n god_n reserve_v unto_o one_o time_n when_o we_o shall_v all_o receive_v the_o promise_n &_o consummation_n together_o that_o they_o without_o we_o say_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v consummate_a the_o same_o reason_n be_v of_o the_o apostle_n &_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n &_o we_o of_o the_o late_a church_n &_o they_o that_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n now_o to_o my_o argument_n &_o autority_n of_o scripture_n i_o reason_n that_o see_v they_o all_o believe_v in_o christ_n they_o have_v everlasting_a life_n &_o enter_v not_o into_o condemnation_n but_o pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n joh._n 5._o to_o what_o life_n say_v bristol_n but_o the_o life_n or_o resurrection_n of_o their_o body_n for_o until_o the_o last_o day_n all_o the_o dead_a be_v in_o death_n o_o prodigious_a heretic_n call_v you_o that_o a_o passage_n from_o death_n to_o life_n to_o continue_v in_o death_n 5._o or_o 6._o thousand_o year_n be_v god_n then_o to_o this_o new_a saducee_n the_o god_n of_o the_o dead_a &_o not_o of_o the_o live_n yea_o he_o say_v that_o life_n after_o corporal_a death_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n light_o every_o where_n signify_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n what_o be_v it_o then_o to_o take_v hold_n of_o eternal_a life_n in_o this_o world_n which_o shall_v be_v interrupt_v with_o so_o long_o abide_v in_o death_n 1._o tim._n 6._o and_o how_o can_v it_o be_v true_a which_o our_o saviour_n say_v he_o that_o beleve_v in_o i_o have_v already_o eternal_a life_n if_o they_o that_o be_v pass_v out_o of_o this_o world_n be_v all_o in_o death_n wherefore_o then_o be_v this_o eternal_a life_n interupt_v with_o any_o purgatory_n limbus_n patrum_fw-la or_o death_n the_o second_o argument_n be_v of_o that_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o lamb_n that_o be_v slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n because_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o passion_n extend_v unto_o the_o godly_a of_o all_o age_n alike_o apoc._n 13._o to_o this_o the_o beast_n have_v nothing_o to_o answer_v but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o the_o lamb_n be_v slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n but_o that_o all_o the_o reprobate_n shall_v adore_v antichrist_n when_o he_o come_v and_o because_o apoc._n 17._o the_o word_n be_v who_o name_n be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n he_o will_v have_v those_o word_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n by_o a_o monstrous_a construction_n contrary_a to_o the_o manifest_a composition_n and_o point_v both_o in_o the_o greek_a &_o vulgar_a latin_a to_o be_v refer_v not_o to_o the_o lamb_n slay_v but_o to_o the_o book_n of_o life_n as_o though_o both_o those_o text_n in_o their_o several_a sense_n may_v not_o be_v true_a except_o such_o manifest_a violence_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o construction_n composition_n &_o point_v in_o this_o text_n of_o the_o apoc._n yet_o he_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v true_a that_o the_o lamb_n be_v slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v not_o where_o else_o write_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o here_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o truth_n he_o will_v not_o have_v to_o be_v my_o fond_a sense_n but_o because_o his_o death_n be_v preordein_v of_o god_n and_o prefigure_v so_o long_o before_o a_o substantial_a cause_n by_o which_o we_o may_v say_v that_o bristol_n be_v dead_a from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n because_o his_o death_n be_v so_o long_o before_o ordain_v of_o god_n and_o prefigure_v in_o the_o death_n of_o adam_n the_o three_o argument_n be_v that_o esay_n speak_v of_o that_o righteous_a that_o be_v depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n say_v that_o there_o be_v peace_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v rest_v in_o their_o bed_n esa._n 57_o like_v as_o he_o affirm_v that_o toph_v which_o be_v gehinnon_n or_o hell_n be_v prepare_v of_o old_a for_o the_o wicked_a to_o this_o he_o answer_v that_o esay_n speak_v not_o of_o his_o own_o time_n but_o as_o a_o prophet_n of_o the_o time_n now_o since_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v our_o peace_n as_o though_o christ_n be_v not_o their_o peace_n as_o well_o as_o we_o and_o what_o a_o shameless_a answer_n be_v this_o to_o deny_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n concern_v the_o comfort_n of_o the_o faithful_a after_o death_n to_o perteine_v to_o the_o faithful_a of_o his_o own_o time_n to_o who_o then_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a preach_v and_o publish_v by_o the_o prophet_n after_o a_o little_a quarrel_v against_o my_o translation_n the_o sense_n whereof_o he_o can_v deny_v he_o ask_v if_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o soul_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o bliss_n of_o heaven_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o their_o limbus_n be_v not_o a_o place_n of_o sensible_a pain_n but_o sir_n salome_n whereinto_o the_o prophet_n say_v the_o righteous_a do_v go_v will_v not_o only_o give_v they_o rest_n without_o sense_n of_o pain_n but_o peace_n with_o happiness_n and_o prosperity_n final_o he_o say_v toph_v or_o gehenna_n be_v not_o the_o only_a hell_n because_o our_o creed_n and_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o christ_n soul_n be_v in_o hell_n i_o answer_v that_o hell_n signifi_v either_o the_o place_n or_o state_n of_o torment_n for_o sin_n in_o the_o former_a caluine_n who_o you_o slander_v say_v not_o that_o christ_n be_v in_o but_o in_o the_o late_a when_o he_o complain_v that_o he_o be_v forsake_v of_o god_n there_o be_v not_o therefore_o prove_v by_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n any_o other_o place_n or_o receptacle_n of_o soul_n in_o hell_n but_o toph_v and_o gehenna_n the_o place_n of_o the_o damn_a the_o four_o argument_n against_o limbus_n be_v that_o lazarus_n be_v carry_v by_o angel_n not_o down_o to_o hell_n but_o up_o to_o abraham_n bosom_n but_o the_o scotfree_a man_n be_v in_o hell_n look_v up_o and_o see_v abraham_n afar_o of_o bristol_n ask_v whether_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d signify_v to_o
towards_o that_o ãâã_d of_o the_o world_n must_v be_v heat_v hot_a because_o the_o soul_n ãâã_d tarry_v there_o the_o short_a time_n with_o such_o invention_n ãâã_d may_v answer_v any_o question_n but_o i_o seek_v a_o resolution_n ãâã_d of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o good_a reason_n agreeable_a thereto_o to_o the_o 2._o question_n you_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o ãâã_d to_o god_n mercy_n to_o remit_v such_o punishment_n at_o ãâã_d ãâã_d quest_n of_o his_o glorious_a saint_n as_o he_o now_o do_v âor_a ãâã_d church_n prayer_n but_o see_v the_o saint_n know_v not_o ãâã_d sodennes_n of_o that_o moment_n how_o shall_v they_o pray_v for_o ãâã_d discharge_v of_o they_o that_o deserve_v to_o go_v to_o purgatory_n ãâã_d they_o pray_v for_o it_o continual_o why_o pray_v they_o not_o as_o ãâã_d to_o discharge_v all_o other_o man_n from_o purgatory_n as_o those_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o shall_v remain_v alive_a at_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o where_o you_o say_v it_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o his_o mercy_n it_o be_v not_o the_o matter_n in_o question_n but_o how_o it_o may_v stand_v with_o ãâã_d justice_n which_o as_o you_o hold_v require_v satisfaction_n by_o temporal_a punishment_n for_o otherwise_o we_o know_v it_o stand_v both_o with_o his_o justice_n and_o his_o mercy_n that_o they_o which_o obtain_v forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n by_o christ_n shall_v immediate_o after_o their_o death_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o fellowship_n of_o they_o that_o be_v likewise_o make_v righteous_a by_o he_o augustine_n be_v quote_v de_n ciu._n dei_fw-la lib._n 21._o cap._n 24._o where_o the_o question_n be_v move_v but_o not_o answer_v and_o yet_o the_o place_n be_v corrupt_v and_o enforce_v as_o ludovicus_n vives_z confess_v in_o that_o chapter_n augustine_n reason_v against_o they_o which_o hold_v that_o god_n after_o the_o judgement_n will_v release_v all_o the_o damn_a at_o the_o prayer_n of_o his_o saint_n in_o the_o 27._o chapter_n which_o he_o also_o quote_v there_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o question_n whether_o faith_n hope_n and_o god_n will_v may_v stand_v with_o purgatory_n bristol_n this_o argument_n be_v gather_v pur._n 381._o if_o it_o be_v against_o the_o hope_n of_o christian_n to_o mourn_v for_o the_o dead_a much_o fulke_n more_o it_o be_v against_o the_o hope_n and_o faith_n of_o christian_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o for_o by_o our_o prayer_n we_o suppose_v they_o ãâ¦ã_o e_o in_o misery_n who_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v testify_v ãâ¦ã_o e_o in_o happiness_n to_o be_v at_o rest_n to_o be_v with_o christ._n joh._n apoc._n 14._o bristol_n answer_v those_o scripture_n prove_v that_o they_o be_v straightway_o in_o happiness_n etc._n etc._n as_o he_o ãâã_d show_v and_o i_o have_v show_v the_o contrary_a that_o they_o ârove_v it_o notwithstanding_o all_o his_o impudent_a cavilati_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o second_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o against_o hope_n to_o mourn_v ãâã_d to_o mourn_v as_o the_o gentile_n which_o know_v not_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o rrection_n neither_o do_v i_o say_v that_o all_o mourning_n be_v a_o ãâ¦ã_o st_o hope_v but_o such_o mourn_a as_o suppose_v they_o to_o ãâ¦ã_o n_z misery_n or_o to_o be_v lose_v as_o the_o papist_n &_o pagan_n ãâã_d our_o mourning_n for_o the_o delay_n of_o the_o kingdom_n god_n as_o he_o understand_v it_o for_o the_o general_a resurre_n ãâ¦ã_o n_z be_v for_o our_o present_a misery_n and_o therefore_o lawful_a ãâ¦ã_o e_o join_v with_o hope_n but_o mourn_v for_o the_o dead_a who_o happiness_n the_o scripture_n assure_v we_o be_v a_o ãâ¦ã_o n_v faith_n therefore_o contrary_a to_o hope_v ãâ¦ã_o neither_o argument_n in_o the_o same_o place_n be_v all_o place_n ãâ¦ã_o cripture_n that_o forbid_v prayer_n without_o faith_n for_o ãâ¦ã_o de_fw-fr prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a for_o faith_n be_v a_o assurance_n ãâã_d of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n this_o argument_n say_v bristol_n suppose_v that_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o de_fw-fr of_o god_n be_v only_a scripture_n yea_o very_o it_o suppo_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o that_o only_a scripture_n be_v the_o warrant_n of_o god_n word_n we_o have_v before_o maintain_v and_o also_o answer_v to_o ãâã_d apocryphal_a book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n a_o three_o argument_n be_v pur._n 281._o we_o learn_v out_o of_o god_n ãâ¦ã_o rde_fw-it that_o whatsoever_o we_o pray_v for_o according_a to_o his_o ãâ¦ã_o will_v we_o shall_v obtain_v 1._o john_n 5._o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a ãâã_d not_o according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o they_o ãâã_d not_o hear_v at_o al._n bristol_n deni_v the_o minor_a which_o he_o ãâ¦ã_o the_o i_o have_v not_o prove_v yes_o very_o i_o prove_v it_o because_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o dgement_n follow_v immediate_o after_o death_n and_o in_o ãâ¦ã_o dgement_n god_n will_v hear_v no_o prayer_n and_o therefore_o ãâ¦ã_o istowe_v exposition_n for_o he_o that_o sin_v a_o sin_n not_o ãâ¦ã_o to_o death_n and_o shameful_a addition_n let_v he_o after_o his_o death_n ãâ¦ã_o quest_n of_o christ_n and_o life_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o he_o be_v false_a and_z ãâ¦ã_o surde_fw-la although_o he_o say_v he_o have_v give_v the_o plain_a &_o smooth_a ãâ¦ã_o se_fw-es of_o the_o whole_a place_n which_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o man_n live_v and_o not_o of_o the_o dead_a a_o smooth_a expos_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o if_o one_o see_v his_o brother_n sin_n he_o must_v pray_v for_o he_o a_o ãâ¦ã_o his_o death_n again_o he_o urge_v the_o present_a temps_fw-fr who_o ãâã_d know_v his_o brother_n to_o sin_v a_o sin_n not_o to_o death_n ãâã_d one_o say_v bristol_n that_o live_v in_o schism_n but_o yet_o ãâã_d reconcile_v before_o he_o die_v o_o monstrous_a and_o more_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o palpable_a blindness_n be_v these_o verb_n live_v reconc_fw-fr ãâ¦ã_o die_v of_o the_o present_a or_o preterperfect_a temps_fw-fr which_o it_o ãâ¦ã_o deny_v the_o apostle_n to_o have_v use_v but_o omit_v the_o te_o ãâ¦ã_o which_o he_o call_v he_o a_o brother_n which_o live_v in_o schis_n ãâ¦ã_o how_o much_o more_o sound_o may_v i_o reason_n upon_o the_o present_a temps_fw-fr saint_n john_n bid_v we_o pray_v for_o a_o brother_n ãâ¦ã_o ning_a but_o a_o brother_n sin_v be_v only_o live_v therefore_o s._n john_n bid_v we_o pray_v only_o for_o a_o brother_n live_v for_o they_o that_o be_v in_o purgarorie_n neither_o deserve_v nor_o sin_n by_o your_o own_o confession_n as_o for_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o we_o say_v be_v not_o to_o be_v pray_v for_o at_o all_o he_o threaten_v often_o to_o consute_n in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o purgatory_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v hitherto_o apply_v by_o bristol_n remain_v confute_v by_o sufficient_a argument_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o four_o part_n concern_v all_o other_o question_n that_o he_o mention_v bristol_n and_o first_o of_o good_a work_n in_o general_a justification_n &_o free_a will_n remit_v the_o question_n of_o the_o witness_n of_o god_n fulke_n word_n unto_o five_o motive_n in_o the_o 10._o chapter_n where_o i_o allege_v that_o good_a work_n do_v not_o justify_v two_o place_n one_o of_o saint_n paul_n another_o of_o esaie_n he_o hold_v the_o contrary_a that_o work_n do_v justify_v and_o first_o call_v i_o a_o falsary_a because_o i_o recite_v not_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v not_o my_o purpose_n but_o to_o show_v what_o we_o do_v affirm_v out_o of_o that_o text_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o say_v justification_n by_o work_n be_v not_o deny_v by_o that_o text_n of_o saint_n paul_n rom._n 3._o we_o hold_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n for_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o work_n go_v before_o baptism_n and_o not_o of_o work_n follow_v ãâ¦ã_o aptisme_n because_o saint_n james_n say_v a_o man_n be_v justify_v of_o cork_n and_o not_o of_o faith_n only_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v ãâ¦ã_o are_v paul_n speak_v of_o justification_n before_o god_n saint_n ãâ¦ã_o ames_o of_o justification_n before_o man_n saint_n paul_n of_o a_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o love_n saint_n james_n of_o a_o bare_a know_v ãâ¦ã_o edge_n a_o barren_a and_o dead_a faith_n a_o faith_n that_o be_v void_a of_o good_a work_n and_o that_o saint_n paul_n speak_v general_o of_o all_o good_a work_n it_o be_v manifest_a by_o this_o reason_n that_o he_o say_v boam_o ãâ¦ã_o thing_fw-mi be_v exclude_v not_o by_o the_o law_n of_o work_n but_o by_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o awe_n of_o faith_n what_o manner_n of_o exclusion_n be_v it_o to_o shut_v âut_v boast_v for_o a_o moment_n while_o one_o be_v baptize_v and_o immediate_o after_o receive_v it_o again_o by_o defend_v justification_n by_o work_n again_o he_o say_v immediate_o after_o ât_z be_v one_o god_n which_o shall_v justify_v circumcision_n which_o be_v of_o faith_n and_o uncircumcision_n through_o faith_n
that_o be_v the_o circum_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o ise_n &_o the_o uncircumcised_a be_v all_o justify_v by_o faith_n as_o aâraham_n in_o both_o the_o state_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n although_o as_o james_n say_v he_o be_v justify_v before_o man_n by_o his_o oblation_n which_o be_v but_o a_o ãâ¦ã_o rial_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o obedience_n where_o the_o apostle_n ãâ¦ã_o ay_v tit._n 3._o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o righteousness_n which_o we_o have_v do_v but_o according_a to_o his_o own_o great_a mercy_n ãâ¦ã_o e_o save_v we_o by_o baptism_n bristol_n ask_v if_o i_o mark_v the_o temps_fw-fr yea_o very_o well_o he_o speak_v of_o work_n before_o faith_n and_o do_v it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o work_v do_v after_o faith_n do_v justify_v saint_n paul_n extend_v the_o salvation_n which_o be_v seal_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o laver_n of_o new_a birth_n and_o renew_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o he_o have_v pour_v rich_o upon_o we_o by_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n unto_o eternal_a life_n therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o grace_n we_o may_v be_v make_v heir_n according_a to_o the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n upon_o the_o 2._o text_n es._n 64._o i_o say_v the_o popish_a church_n be_v not_o content_a to_o be_v clothe_v in_o the_o white_a shine_a silk_n which_o be_v the_o justification_n of_o saint_n make_v white_a in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n but_o with_o the_o filthy_a rag_n of_o man_n righteousness_n bristol_n ask_v where_o i_o learn_v to_o call_v the_o good_a work_n do_v in_o the_o church_n the_o filthy_a rag_n of_o man_n righteousness_n very_o even_o of_o esaie_n who_o speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n all_o we_o be_v as_o a_o unclean_a person_n and_o all_o our_o righteousness_n as_o filthy_a rag_n for_o although_o god_n accept_v our_o work_n that_o be_v do_v in_o faith_n and_o pardon_v their_o imperfection_n yet_o when_o they_o be_v obtrude_v unto_o he_o to_o justify_v we_o he_o abhor_v they_o as_o in_o the_o pharisee_n luke_n 18._o that_o the_o iustification_n of_o the_o saint_n apoc._n 19_o be_v good_a work_n bristol_n will_v have_v it_o appear_v by_o conference_n of_o 1._o john_n 3._o he_o that_o work_v justice_n be_v just_a where_o he_o reason_v of_o the_o effect_n of_o a_o just_a man_n &_o not_o of_o the_o cause_n no_o flesh_n be_v just_a by_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o faith_n by_o which_o god_n make_v just_a even_o the_o ungodly_a man_n but_o how_o much_o better_a conference_n be_v it_o to_o know_v what_o the_o white_a ãâã_d mean_v which_o be_v the_o justification_n of_o saint_n to_o compare_v it_o with_o other_o place_n of_o the_o same_o prophecy_n as_o apoc._n 7._o where_o it_o be_v show_v how_o the_o stole_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v make_v white_a with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n and_o with_o the_o place_n of_o saint_n paul_n show_v how_o the_o church_n be_v make_v white_a and_o without_o spot_n and_o wrinkle_n by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n ephe._n 5._o touch_v freewill_n i_o say_v we_o believe_v that_o man_n after_o his_o fall_n have_v not_o free_a will_n no_o not_o aptness_n of_o will_n to_o think_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a 2._o cor._n 3._o bristol_n translate_v the_o word_n we_o be_v not_o sufficient_a but_o the_o text_n be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d we_o be_v not_o apt_a to_o think_v any_o thing_n of_o ourselves_o as_o of_o ourselves_o but_o our_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d aptness_n be_v of_o god_n to_o this_o bristol_n repli_v that_o natural_a free_a will_n be_v not_o take_v from_o we_o nor_o natural_a aptness_n of_o will_n i_o hope_v he_o speak_v like_o a_o philosopher_n and_o not_o like_o a_o flat_a pelagian_n but_o i_o speak_v as_o a_o christian_a of_o the_o freedom_n of_o man_n will_n unto_o good_a which_o be_v none_o but_o bondage_n unto_o evil_n except_o he_o be_v regenerate_v and_o then_o be_v his_o will_n frame_v of_o god_n in_o part_n to_o good_a but_o not_o perfect_o in_o this_o life_n as_o regeneration_n be_v not_o perfect_o finish_v before_o the_o redemption_n of_o our_o body_n as_o for_o freedom_n opposite_a to_o coaction_n if_o bristol_n mean_v that_o by_o retain_v of_o free_a will_n i_o grant_v every_o man_n will_n to_o be_v free_a from_o constreint_a but_o not_o from_o servility_n unto_o sin_n whereof_o saint_n complain_v rom_n 7._o moreover_o i_o say_v pur._n 35._o how_o shall_v your_o free_a will_n ãâ¦ã_o e_o maintain_v if_o god_n spirit_n have_v any_o place_n that_o di_o ãâ¦ã_o ribute_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n ãâ¦ã_o f_o he_o own_o will_n 1._o cor._n 12._o bristowe_v answer_n be_v that_o god_n can_v work_v his_o own_o will_n upon_o our_o will_n which_o be_v ãâ¦ã_o ery_z true_a but_o without_o work_v of_o god_n spirit_n our_o will_v ãâ¦ã_o at_o h_o no_o aptness_n unto_o any_o good_a thing_n again_o he_o say_v ãâ¦ã_o hat_n saint_n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v free_o gi_z ãâ¦ã_o en_fw-fr and_o not_o of_o they_o that_o make_v a_o man_n acceptable_a as_o ãâ¦ã_o hough_o there_o be_v any_o gift_n which_o be_v not_o free_o give_v and_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o speak_v general_o of_o all_o work_n of_o god_n spirit_n even_o of_o confess_v jesus_n to_o be_v christ_n and_o not_o of_o special_a grace_n only_o so_o that_o bristowe_v answer_n be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n or_o matter_n ãâ¦ã_o n_z question_n for_o i_o hold_v that_o we_o have_v no_o aptenesse_n unto_o ãâ¦ã_o ny_fw-fr good_a of_o our_o own_o freewill_n but_o only_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n bristol_n say_v i_o imagine_v that_o god_n be_v not_o omni_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o otent_a if_o we_o have_v will_n of_o our_o own_o which_o i_o never_o ãâ¦ã_o eny_v but_o that_o we_o have_v will_n of_o out_o own_o unto_o good_a before_o they_o be_v frame_v thereto_o by_o god_n spirit_n be_v the_o thing_n ãâã_d deny_v about_o good_a work_n in_o special_a namely_o prayer_n to_o saint_n bristol_n ãâ¦ã_o astinge_n merit_n concern_v invocation_n of_o saint_n i_o say_v purg._n 451._o fulke_n we_o call_v not_o upon_o saint_n because_o we_o believe_v not_o in_o they_o for_o how_o shall_v we_o call_v upon_o they_o in_o who_o we_o believe_v not_o rom._n 10._o to_o this_o reserve_v a_o pretend_a contradiction_n to_o the_o proper_a place_n he_o say_v first_o that_o saint_n paul_n do_v often_o invocate_v &_o call_v upon_o the_o faithful_a beseech_v they_o to_o pray_v for_o he_o which_o be_v a_o toy_n to_o mock_v with_o a_o ape_n for_o saint_n paul_n do_v not_o invocate_v or_o pray_v to_o they_o as_o unto_o they_o that_o know_v his_o heart_n and_o can_v help_v his_o grief_n but_o only_o of_o charity_n desire_v their_o prayer_n second_o he_o ask_v where_o be_v any_o scripture_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v in_o god_n only_a forsooth_o among_o many_o this_o shall_v suffice_v which_o be_v write_v in_o jeremie_n cap._n 17._o curse_a be_v the_o man_n that_o trust_v in_o man_n and_o make_v flesh_n his_o arm_n and_o his_o heart_n depart_v from_o the_o lord_n but_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o bêleve_v in_o saint_n also_o bristol_n quote_v exod._a 14._o where_o it_o be_v say_v the_o people_n believe_v god_n and_o moses_n his_o servant_n as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o give_v credit_n to_o god_n prophet_n and_o believe_v in_o they_o which_o be_v to_o put_v our_o trust_n in_o they_o the_o like_a i_o say_v to_o the_o second_o place_n quote_v 2._o par._n 20._o where_o josaphat_n promise_v all_o thing_n prosperous_a to_o the_o people_n if_o they_o give_v credit_n to_o god_n prophet_n credit_n prophetis_fw-la eius_fw-la but_o forlake_v his_o vulgar_a authentical_a translation_n he_o provoke_v we_o to_o the_o hebrew_n belike_o because_o of_o the_o preposition_n beth_fw-mi which_o be_v a_o miserable_a shift_n see_v the_o hebrew_n phrase_n be_v well_o know_v to_o differ_v from_o the_o latin_a and_o english_a phrase_n and_o especial_o from_o the_o sense_n of_o beleve_v that_o be_v trust_v in_o god_n which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o he_o and_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v in_o any_o creature_n which_o be_v not_o god_n he_o quote_v also_o philemon_n who_o love_n &_o faith_n the_o apostle_n commend_v towards_o the_o lord_n jesu_n and_o towards_o all_o his_o saint_n where_o every_o wise_a man_n see_v that_o faith_n be_v refer_v to_o christ_n and_o love_n to_o the_o saint_n but_o the_o scripture_n reach_v he_o to_o believe_v he_o say_v in_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n and_o namely_o in_o his_o blood_n john_n 14._o rom._n 3._o he_o will_v prove_v a_o arian_n or_o a_o nestorian_a short_o the_o place_n of_o john_n prove_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n because_o he_o be_v
i_o answer_v the_o argument_n be_v not_o of_o the_o only_a name_n of_o two_o but_o of_o the_o whole_a argument_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o âhe_v father_n in_o participation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v equal_a with_o we_o which_o be_v not_o sufficient_o prove_v if_o have_v name_v only_o two_o there_o be_v other_o five_o wherein_o we_o be_v superior_a to_o they_o so_o that_o the_o name_n of_o two_o be_v in_o this_o place_n the_o exclude_v of_o all_o other_o except_o those_o two_o now_o let_v we_o discuss_v bristowe_v reason_n for_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n to_o be_v seven_o we_o read_v of_o the_o other_o five_o in_o other_o place_n where_o i_o pray_v you_o of_o confirmation_n john_n the_o 7._o you_o read_v more_o than_o i_o can_v find_v there_o name_v or_o signify_v except_o you_o mean_v of_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o more_o excellent_a and_o evident_a grace_n which_o the_o faithful_a shall_v receive_v after_o the_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o christ_n which_o differ_v far_o from_o confirmation_n of_o child_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n of_o penance_n you_o read_v john_n 20._o of_o power_n give_v to_o the_o apostle_n to_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n i_o read_v but_o of_o auricular_a confession_n and_o satisfaction_n i_o read_v not_o of_o extreme_a unction_n you_o read_v jac._n 5_o of_o anoint_v the_o sick_a with_o oil_n which_o by_o a_o special_a gift_n recover_v health_n of_o body_n as_o well_o as_o remission_n of_o sin_n at_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a i_o read_v but_o of_o aneal_v man_n desperate_o sick_a which_o have_v no_o hope_n of_o bodily_a recovery_n i_o read_v not_o of_o order_n you_o read_v math._n 26._o but_o i_o read_v nothing_o at_o all_o although_o i_o read_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v command_v to_o continue_v the_o celebration_n of_o his_o supper_n institute_v by_o he_o which_o be_v before_o minister_n of_o his_o sacrament_n and_o preacher_n of_o his_o word_n but_o of_o bennet_n and_o collet_n conjurer_n subdeacon_n or_o mass_n priest_n i_o read_v not_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n nor_o of_o deacon_n in_o that_o chapter_n of_o matrimony_n both_o yet_o and_o i_o read_v math._n 19_o but_o not_o institute_v at_o that_o time_n by_o christ_n but_o long_o before_o in_o paradise_n and_o be_v no_o more_o a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n than_o the_o raynebowe_n which_o yet_o with_o the_o covenant_n thereof_o remain_v in_o use_n among_o christian_n but_o you_o confess_v you_o read_v not_o in_o those_o place_n that_o they_o be_v sacrament_n no_o more_o do_v you_o read_v 1._o cor._n 10._o that_o baptism_n or_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v sacrament_n or_o any_o where_o else_o this_o be_v a_o stale_a quarrel_n of_o the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o scripture_n although_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o the_o name_n that_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o god_n promise_n and_o the_o name_n of_o sign_n of_o god_n covenant_n be_v often_o find_v but_o your_o last_o refuge_n be_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v only_o of_o the_o first_o entrance_n into_o christianity_n which_o in_o antiquity_n be_v by_o baptism_n confirmation_n the_o complement_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o euchariste_n and_o therefore_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o rest_n beside_o that_o this_o fantasy_n be_v manifest_o contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n purpose_n which_o be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o external_a sacrament_n of_o god_n grace_n without_o a_o godly_a life_n will_v not_o serve_v to_o assure_v we_o that_o god_n be_v please_v withus_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o corinthian_n among_o who_o saint_n paul_n so_o long_o have_v preach_v can_v not_o be_v without_o all_o other_o sacrament_n if_o any_o other_o be_v they_o have_v child_n to_o be_v confirm_v they_o themselves_o be_v marry_v elder_n be_v to_o be_v order_v offender_n by_o penance_n be_v to_o be_v reconcile_v many_o be_v sick_a and_o some_o be_v fall_v a_o sleep_n to_o be_v aneal_v and_o saint_n paul_n say_v express_o they_o be_v behind_o in_o no_o grace_n or_o gift_n of_o god_n spirit_n 1._o corinth_n 1._o wherefore_o that_o they_o be_v young_a novice_n new_o enter_v the_o bar_n and_o not_o knight_n exercise_v in_o battle_n it_o be_v a_o dream_n of_o bristowe_v drowsy_a head_n and_o no_o truth_n to_o be_v verify_v of_o the_o corinthian_n second_o i_o say_v of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o general_a that_o they_o give_v not_o grace_v ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la of_o the_o work_n wrought_v but_o after_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o receiver_n and_o according_a to_o the_o election_n of_o goâ_n ãâã_d corin._n 10._o again_o how_o shall_v the_o sacrament_n give_v grace_n of_o the_o work_n wrought_v if_o faith_n be_v requisite_a in_o they_o that_o receive_v they_o this_o argument_n say_v bristol_n hold_v aswell_o against_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n passion_n why_o sir_n the_o passion_n of_o christ_n give_v not_o grace_n but_o to_o the_o faithful_a and_o elect_v of_o god_n but_o faith_n you_o say_v be_v no_o work_n nor_o instrument_n but_o only_o a_o dispofition_n as_o dryness_n in_o wood_n that_o the_o fire_n work_v upon_o i_o will_v not_o enter_v into_o any_o philosophical_a disputation_n with_o you_o whether_o it_o be_v dryness_n or_o moisture_n in_o the_o wood_n that_o the_o fire_n work_v upon_o perhaps_o you_o think_v that_o water_n be_v moist_a than_o air_n which_o error_n if_o you_o have_v no_o more_o can_v make_v you_o a_o heretic_n but_o i_o marvel_v what_o cause_n you_o will_v make_v faith_n see_v you_o exclude_v it_o from_o efficient_n except_o you_o make_v it_o a_o matter_n for_o the_o sacrament_n to_o work_v upon_o or_o else_o i_o know_v not_o what_o you_o mean_v by_o that_o your_o disposition_n like_o drienesse_n in_o wood_n which_o in_o deed_n be_v the_o thin_a air_n more_o apt_a to_o receive_v inflammation_n than_o the_o thick_a water_n but_o perhaps_o you_o make_v it_o only_o a_o potentia_fw-la like_o materia_fw-la prima_fw-la for_o you_o add_v that_o by_o our_o indisposition_n we_o do_v not_o put_v obicem_fw-la but_o you_o hold_v that_o the_o sacrament_n give_v grace_n of_o the_o work_n wrought_v without_o the_o good_a motion_n of_o the_o user_n only_o so_o he_o do_v no_o part_n obicem_fw-la that_o be_v so_o he_o do_v not_o withstand_v the_o work_n as_o if_o a_o man_n be_v baptize_v sleep_v and_o think_v nothing_o of_o it_o nevertheless_o see_v the_o scripture_n often_o affirm_v that_o god_n work_v in_o we_o by_o faith_n faith_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o instrumental_a efficient_a when_o you_o have_v say_v all_o that_o you_o can_v except_o you_o will_v teach_v we_o new_a grammar_n and_o lògike_n you_o confess_v the_o scripture_n say_v that_o by_o believe_v and_o other_o good_a action_n we_o work_v our_o own_o salvation_n phil._n 2._o as_o by_o way_n of_o merit_v but_o it_o say_v not_o that_o we_o work_v the_o effect_n of_o any_o sacrament_n neither_o do_v i_o say_v that_o we_o work_v the_o effect_n of_o any_o sacrament_n but_o that_o god_n work_v in_o we_o according_a to_o faith_n which_o he_o give_v we_o and_o his_o election_n you_o say_v further_o that_o the_o scripture_n teach_v that_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n give_v to_o our_o deed_n virtue_n to_o merit_n where_o be_v that_o scripture_n write_v for_o until_o you_o show_v i_o where_o it_o be_v write_v i_o will_v say_v still_o to_o you_o as_o i_o say_v to_o allen_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n abhor_v that_o blasphemy_n believe_v steadfast_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v free_o by_o his_o grace_n through_o the_o redemption_n of_o christ_n jesus_n without_o respect_n of_o our_o work_n rom._n 3._o 4._o but_o yet_o bristol_n will_v make_v man_n believe_v that_o i_o show_v manifold_a ignorance_n where_o i_o say_v purg._n 35._o the_o mean_a on_o god_n behalf_n by_o which_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o so_o graff_v into_o his_o body_n be_v his_o holy_a spirit_n of_o promise_n which_o be_v the_o earnest_n and_o assure_v of_o our_o inheritance_n who_o work_v in_o we_o faith_n as_o the_o only_a mean_a by_o which_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n be_v apply_v unto_o we_o ephe._n 1_o and_o as_o for_o the_o sacrament_n which_o you_o seem_v to_o make_v the_o only_a conduit_n of_o god_n mercy_n we_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o they_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o god_n promise_v give_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o be_v circumcision_n to_o abraham_n when_o he_o be_v justify_v before_o through_o faith_n rom._n 4._o bristowe_v eye_n be_v dazzle_a at_o the_o clear_a light_n of_o this_o truth_n turn_v his_o head_n away_o from_o the_o matter_n and_o wrangle_v against_o diverse_a point_n of_o caluinisme_n as_o he_o say_v but_o in_o deed_n of_o
mere_a bristowisme_n for_o caluin_n never_o hold_v any_o such_o matter_n as_o he_o imagine_v he_o ask_v whether_o this_o be_v to_o say_v that_o all_o man_n be_v justify_v before_o they_o come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n as_o though_o caluin_n say_v they_o be_v whereas_o a_o great_a number_n be_v justify_v neither_o before_o nor_o after_o the_o receipt_n of_o they_o but_o this_o be_v to_o say_v that_o as_o abraham_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o respect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o be_v all_o they_o that_o be_v justify_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o respect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n second_o he_o ask_v whether_o all_o sacrament_n be_v seal_n of_o such_o a_o matter_n yea_o very_o or_o else_o saint_n paul_n prove_v the_o justification_n of_o the_o gentile_n by_o faith_n very_o feeble_o after_o the_o example_n of_o abraham_n three_o he_o ask_v whether_o all_o jew_n be_v justify_v before_o they_o come_v to_o circumcision_n which_o i_o never_o hear_v any_o man_n to_o affirm_v but_o that_o as_o many_o jew_n as_o be_v justify_v be_v justify_v by_o faith_n as_o abraham_n be_v circumcision_n no_o more_o regard_v in_o their_o justification_n than_o it_o be_v in_o the_o justification_n of_o abraham_n last_o of_o all_o he_o ask_v whether_o circumcision_n be_v to_o the_o jew_n a_o seal_n of_o such_o a_o matter_n still_o he_o call_v it_o such_o a_o matter_n because_o he_o dare_v not_o name_v justification_n by_o faith_n o_o the_o sting_n of_o a_o wicked_a conscience_n but_o to_o the_o question_n i_o answer_v that_o to_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n circumcision_n be_v a_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v impute_v to_o they_o as_o it_o be_v to_o abraham_n without_o merit_n or_o respect_n of_o their_o circumcision_n other_o point_n of_o my_o ignorance_n he_o say_v be_v about_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o promise_n whereof_o saint_n paul_n speak_v ephe._n 1_o which_o i_o say_v be_v the_o mean_a to_o make_v we_o partaker_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o christ_n passion_n item_n the_o mean_a to_o graft_v we_o into_o his_o body_n item_n that_o it_o work_v in_o we_o faith_n in_o the_o conclusion_n he_o note_v the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o protestant_n where_o they_o hold_v this_o spirit_n promise_v to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n that_o be_v to_o say_v christ_n great_a gift_n to_o be_v his_o least_o gift_n out_o upon_o the_o shameless_a liar_n which_o of_o the_o protestant_n can_v thou_o name_v that_o so_o hold_v we_o all_o hold_v that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o promise_n ephes._n 1_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n by_o which_o we_o be_v assure_v of_o eternal_a life_n rom._n 8._o and_o as_o for_o the_o spirit_n prophesy_v by_o joel_n and_o john_n baptist_n promise_v by_o christ_n to_o be_v send_v after_o his_o ascension_n we_o hold_v not_o to_o be_v special_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n which_o the_o apostle_n &_o all_o the_o faithful_a have_v before_o christ_n death_n and_o much_o less_o of_o that_o spirit_n which_o your_o bishop_n give_v by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o their_o counterfeit_a confirmation_n which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o vanity_n who_o fruit_n appear_v not_o in_o any_o of_o the_o receiver_n but_o we_o hold_v that_o promise_a gift_n of_o god_n spirit_n to_o be_v that_o wonderful_a revelation_n of_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n &_o utterance_n in_o all_o state_n &_o degree_n of_o true_a christian_n general_o beside_o a_o great_a number_n of_o particular_a gift_n not_o perpetual_a bestow_v upon_o the_o church_n in_o diverse_a special_a member_n for_o the_o certify_n thereof_o in_o the_o first_o publish_v of_o the_o gospel_n as_o for_o your_o conference_n of_o scripture_n whereof_o you_o prate_v so_o much_o be_v a_o mere_a confusion_n of_o matter_n of_o diverse_a sense_n according_a to_o which_o manner_n of_o conference_n not_o weigh_v the_o sense_n of_o every_o place_n by_o the_o proper_a circumstance_n thereof_o but_o follow_v only_o a_o sound_n and_o similitude_n of_o some_o word_n every_o heretic_n may_v colour_v his_o heresy_n be_v it_o never_o so_o absurd_a as_o the_o valentinian_o of_o who_o irenaeus_n testify_v that_o they_o patch_v diverse_a sentence_n together_o to_o make_v a_o show_n as_o though_o their_o heresy_n be_v contain_v in_o holy_a write_v which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o as_o if_o a_o man_n break_v a_o goodly_a image_n of_o a_o king_n in_o piece_n shall_v of_o the_o piece_n after_o his_o own_o manner_n join_v together_o make_v the_o image_n of_o a_o dog_n or_o a_o fox_n or_o other_o foul_a beast_n iren._n lib._n 1._o chapt._n 1._o such_o be_v your_o conference_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o promise_n wherewith_o the_o faithful_a be_v seal_v ephes._n 1._o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o tongue_n and_o prophecy_n which_o come_v upon_o the_o twelve_o on_o who_o saint_n paul_n lay_v his_o hand_n act_n 19_o the_o last_o error_n of_o faith_n he_o charge_v i_o to_o be_v the_o only_a mean_a which_o he_o say_v be_v no_o mean_a but_o a_o disposition_n he_o think_v it_o sufficient_o discover_v before_o whereunto_o i_o also_o think_v that_o i_o have_v make_v answer_n sufficient_o about_o the_o sacrament_n in_o special_a the_o necessity_n and_o effect_n of_o baptism_n bristol_n concern_v baptism_n i_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a for_o all_o christian_n fulke_n to_o receive_v that_o be_v not_o by_o necessity_n exclude_v from_o it_o 1._o pet._n 3._o bristol_n say_v it_o be_v necessary_a for_o all_o man_n but_o when_o it_o can_v be_v actual_o have_v the_o effectual_a desire_n of_o it_o suppli_v the_o want_n which_o desire_v infant_n have_v not_o and_o therefore_o only_a the_o actual_a have_v of_o baptism_n do_v quicken_v they_o in_o christ_n be_v dead_a in_o adam_n touch_v the_o salvation_n of_o infant_n of_o the_o faithful_a die_v without_o baptism_n i_o say_v nothing_o but_o by_o implication_n that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n that_o the_o want_n of_o the_o outward_a sacrament_n shall_v condemn_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o faithful_a pertain_v to_o god_n election_n &_o covenant_n where_o there_o be_v no_o default_n either_o of_o contempt_n or_o neglect_n of_o it_o ro._n 9_o ge._n 17._o and_o see_v bristol_n allow_v the_o effectual_a desire_n in_o man_n of_o year_n to_o supply_v the_o want_n which_o yet_o the_o word_n of_o his_o text_n jam._n 3._o of_o which_o he_o take_v colour_n and_o authority_n of_o his_o doctor_n that_o condemn_v all_o unbaptised_a infant_n will_v not_o bear_v what_o reason_n be_v it_o why_o he_o shall_v not_o extend_v his_o supply_n unto_o the_o effectual_a desire_n of_o those_o infant_n parent_n and_o friend_n who_o faith_n he_o acknoledge_v to_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o actual_a faith_n in_o the_o infant_n that_o be_v baptize_v beside_o this_o he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v mark_v well_o enough_o where_o i_o say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n give_v grace_n according_a to_o the_o election_n of_o god_n as_o though_o all_o infant_n baptize_v &_o so_o die_v be_v not_o of_o god_n elect_v or_o that_o some_o be_v not_o save_v although_o they_o be_v baptize_v &_o ask_v what_o scripture_n i_o have_v for_o this_o gear_n but_o in_o deed_n he_o bow_v let_v at_o the_o wrong_a mark_n for_o in_o say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n take_v effect_n according_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o receiver_n and_o according_a to_o god_n election_n i_o mean_v that_o god_n in_o baptism_n give_v grace_n to_o infant_n which_o have_v no_o actual_a faith_n of_o their_o own_o according_a to_o his_o eternal_a election_n in_o mercy_n but_o whether_o all_o infant_n baptize_v &_o so_o die_v be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o god_n elect_v as_o i_o do_v not_o know_v so_o i_o will_v not_o contend_v but_o this_o i_o know_v that_o if_o they_o be_v not_o elect_v of_o god_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v the_o receive_n of_o baptism_n can_v make_v they_o god_n elect_v ephe._n 1_o where_o bristol_n urge_v the_o say_n of_o saint_n peter_n 1._o pet._n 3._o baptism_n save_v we_o now_o it_o be_v a_o weak_a argument_n to_o prove_v the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n either_o to_o save_v they_o all_o that_o receive_v it_o or_o to_o condemn_v all_o that_o receive_v it_o not_o for_o explicate_v he_o self_n of_o what_o baptism_n he_o speak_v he_o add_v not_o the_o put_v away_o of_o the_o filth_n of_o the_o flesh_n as_o you_o will_v say_v outward_a wash_n which_o be_v the_o external_a sacrament_n but_o the_o interrogation_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n towards_o god_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n signify_v by_o outward_a wash_n and_o yet_o not_o find_v in_o infant_n but_o in_o they_o that_o have_v knowledge_n among_o who_o whosoever_o have_v it_o not_o he_o shall_v no_o more_o be_v save_v then_o any_o be_v preserve_v
qui_fw-la matrimonis_fw-la contraxerunt_fw-la sperni_fw-la debere_fw-la dicunt_fw-la they_o say_v that_o elder_n or_o priest_n which_o have_v join_v themselves_o in_o matrimony_n aught_o to_o be_v despise_v therefore_o these_o catholic_a bishop_n think_v those_o priest_n good_a one_o which_o do_v join_v themselves_o in_o matrimony_n &_o so_o they_o make_v their_o canon_n si_fw-la quis_fw-la discernit_fw-la presbyterum_fw-la coniugatum_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o any_o man_n make_v difference_n of_o a_o marry_a priest_n as_o though_o by_o occasion_n of_o his_o marriage_n he_o ought_v not_o to_o offer_v and_o do_v therefore_o abstain_v from_o his_o oblation_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v cap._n 4._o of_o deacon_n also_o the_o ancyrane_n council_n decree_v cap._n 10._o diaconi_fw-la quicunque_fw-la etc._n etc._n whosoever_o be_v ordain_v deacon_n if_o at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o they_o be_v ordain_v they_o protest_v say_v that_o they_o will_v be_v join_v in_o marriage_n because_o they_o can_v not_o so_o continue_v if_o afterward_o they_o have_v marry_v wife_n let_v they_o remain_v in_o the_o ministry_n because_o the_o bishop_n have_v give_v they_o licence_n but_o so_o many_o as_o have_v hold_v their_o peace_n and_o take_v imposition_n of_o hand_n profess_v continency_n and_o afterward_o be_v join_v in_o marriage_n aught_o to_o cease_v from_o the_o ministry_n final_o the_o decree_n of_o pope_n stephanus_n be_v cite_v dist_n 31._o aliter_fw-la se_fw-la by_o gratian_n and_o iuo_o lib_n 4._o allow_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o oriental_a church_n for_o marriage_n of_o their_o church_n minister_n aliter_fw-la se_fw-la orientalium_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o tradition_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n have_v it_o otherwise_o and_o otherwise_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o this_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o priest_n deacon_n and_o subdeacons_n of_o their_o church_n be_v couple_v in_o marriage_n but_o none_o of_o the_o priest_n of_o this_o church_n from_o the_o subdeacon_n unto_o the_o bishop_n have_v licence_n to_o enter_v into_o marriage_n it_o be_v hard_a if_o there_o be_v never_o a_o good_a one_o among_o all_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o east_n church_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n which_o have_v be_v marry_v and_o yet_o be_v to_o conclude_v i_o trust_v it_o be_v apparent_a to_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n that_o such_o text_n of_o scripture_n as_o i_o allege_v in_o those_o two_o book_n which_o bristol_n undertake_v in_o this_o confuse_v manner_n to_o confute_v be_v right_o apply_v and_o without_o all_o violence_n or_o wrest_v do_v prove_v sufficient_o that_o for_o which_o they_o be_v call_v to_o witness_v and_o as_o for_o the_o popish_a conference_n of_o scripture_n whereof_o bristol_n once_o again_o with_o great_a loathsomeness_n do_v brag_v how_o sound_v it_o be_v you_o may_v perceive_v by_o this_o example_n &_o taste_v give_v by_o he_o in_o this_o chapter_n wherefore_o i_o marvel_v much_o what_o learned_a minister_n of_o our_o church_n these_o be_v who_o bristol_n affirm_v be_v in_o number_n more_o than_o a_o dozen_o and_o diverse_a of_o no_o vulgar_a wit_n by_o their_o only_a hear_n of_o your_o conference_n of_o scripture_n to_o have_v become_v papist_n by_o like_o some_o vagabonde_n irregular_a and_o unhonest_a person_n be_v deprive_v of_o their_o ministry_n for_o their_o ungodly_a behaviour_n have_v seek_v favour_n among_o they_o by_o revolt_a or_o at_o least_o counterfeit_v to_o be_v revolt_v to_o papistry_n when_o they_o be_v of_o no_o religion_n commend_v by_o bristol_n for_o their_o wit_n but_o neither_o for_o their_o honesty_n nor_o learning_n cap._n ix_o to_o defend_v that_o the_o doctor_n as_o they_o be_v confess_v to_o be_v we_o in_o very_o many_o point_n so_o they_o be_v we_o in_o all_o point_n and_o the_o protestant_n bristol_n in_o no_o point_n all_o the_o doctor_n saying_n that_o he_o allege_v be_v examine_v and_o answer_v the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o doctor_n general_o his_o challenge_v word_n i_o confess_v not_o the_o doctor_n to_o be_v you_o in_o very_o many_o point_n nor_o simple_o in_o few_o point_n nor_o all_o in_o any_o point_n fulke_n of_o controversy_n but_o grant_v that_o for_o a_o few_o error_n which_o you_o have_v common_a with_o they_o in_o which_o you_o also_o far_o exceed_v they_o as_o in_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a prayer_n to_o saint_n some_o superstitious_a or_o superfluous_a ceremony_n i_o affirm_v that_o in_o the_o great_a and_o chief_a point_n of_o controversy_n they_o be_v either_o all_o with_o we_o or_o not_o one_o against_o us._n 2_o a_o general_a answer_n to_o his_o challenge_n declare_v that_o ãâã_d need_v not_o to_o answer_v his_o doctor_n particular_o bristol_n his_o first_o reason_n be_v because_o i_o say_v we_o stand_v for_o authority_n fulke_n only_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o scripture_n in_o the_o chapter_n go_v before_o he_o have_v satisfy_v but_o how_o he_o have_v satisfy_v they_o let_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n judge_v and_o see_v the_o papist_n offer_v to_o stand_v to_o their_o judgement_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o we_o refuse_v they_o not_o as_o witness_n unto_o the_o truth_n in_o most_o thing_n he_o be_v not_o discharge_v in_o reason_n of_o answer_v my_o doctor_n his_o second_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o i_o do_v answer_n all_o i_o own_o doctor_n for_o he_o if_o it_o be_v well_o consider_v &_o what_o be_v your_o consideration_n in_o that_o i_o confess_v they_o to_o have_v hold_v with_o you_o the_o very_a same_o point_n for_o which_o we_o must_v be_v condemn_v no_o remedy_n as_o differ_v from_o the_o doctor_n in_o the_o great_a point_n what_o be_v those_o i_o pray_v you_o bristol_n answer_v for_o why_o do_v he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v against_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n &_o against_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n but_o because_o we_o hold_v invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o worship_v of_o their_o relic_n yes_o sir_n for_o other_o more_o gross_a idolatry_n and_o deface_v of_o the_o kingdom_n priesthood_n and_o prophetical_a office_n of_o christ_n and_o for_o hold_v these_o two_o point_n more_o absurd_o and_o gross_o then_o any_o of_o the_o doctor_n do_v again_o why_o do_v he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n but_o because_o we_o hold_v with_o tradition_n as_o the_o doctor_n do_v i_o answer_v the_o doctor_n hold_v with_o no_o tradition_n that_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v against_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n they_o make_v not_o the_o decree_n of_o counsel_n and_o pope_n of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o you_o do_v but_o of_o one_o of_o the_o great_a point_n he_o repeat_v my_o word_n in_o which_o i_o say_v express_o i_o confess_v with_o m._n allen_n that_o the_o old_a writer_n not_o only_o know_v but_o also_o have_v express_v the_o value_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o christ_n in_o such_o word_n as_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o the_o popish_a satisfaction_n can_v stand_v with_o they_o and_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n say_v bristol_n see_v what_o follow_v immediate_o against_o the_o value_n of_o which_o redemption_n if_o they_o have_v utter_v any_o thing_n by_o the_o word_n of_o satisfaction_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o we_o may_v lawful_o reject_v their_o authority_n not_o only_o though_o they_o be_v doctor_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o if_o they_o be_v angel_n from_o heaven_n but_o what_o i_o pray_v you_o conclude_v bristol_n of_o these_o two_o say_n his_o word_n follow_v immediate_o so_o that_o now_o we_o no_o more_o need_n to_o defend_v against_o he_o that_o we_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctor_n then_o that_o the_o doctor_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o themselves_o as_o though_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o man_n to_o be_v contrary_a to_o themselves_o and_o yet_o i_o say_v no_o more_o of_o they_o then_o of_o the_o angel_n that_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n in_o this_o point_n but_o that_o if_o they_o be_v we_o may_v reject_v they_o as_o lawful_o as_o the_o angel_n if_o they_o bring_v another_o gospel_n last_o of_o all_o he_o say_v we_o need_v not_o defend_v that_o we_o be_v contrary_a to_o ourselves_o in_o the_o same_o for_o in_o what_o word_n the_o doctor_n speak_v thereof_o the_o same_o do_v we_o neither_o be_v the_o antecedent_n true_a nor_o if_o it_o be_v do_v the_o argument_n follow_v for_o you_o will_v not_o say_v as_o the_o old_a writer_n do_v that_o through_o the_o redemption_n of_o christ_n a_o man_n be_v justify_v before_o god_n by_o faith_n only_o without_o respect_n of_o his_o work_n or_o merit_n and_o where_o you_o use_v the_o doctor_n word_n you_o either_o use_v they_o in_o a_o contrary_a sense_n or_o else_o elude_v they_o with_o addition_n &_o distinction_n neither_o ground_v on_o the_o scripture_n nor_o on_o the_o old_a doctor_n but_o invent_v out_o of_o your_o own_o
save_v the_o go_v in_o peace_n but_o also_o in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o read_v that_o our_o saviour_n use_v this_o speech_n that_o he_o say_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o believer_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o salvation_n by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o apostle_n judge_v right_o that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n see_v you_o not_o that_o justification_n be_v not_o only_o to_o set_v a_o man_n in_o free_a will_n discharge_v of_o his_o sin_n commit_v before_o baptism_n but_o continue_v with_o he_o unto_o salvation_n also_o where_o i_o say_v that_o origen_n answer_v this_o objection_n which_o the_o papist_n make_v against_o we_o for_o teach_v justification_n by_o faith_n only_o though_o bristol_n say_v it_o be_v false_a it_o be_v very_o true_a lib_n 3_o cap_n 3._o in_o epi._n ad_fw-la rom._n sed_fw-la fortassis_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o peradventure_o some_o body_n hear_v this_o may_v become_v idle_a and_o negligent_a in_o do_v good_a work_n if_o only_a faith_n suffice_v to_o justification_n be_v not_o this_o one_o of_o the_o papist_n objection_n again_o that_o this_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n pertain_v only_o to_o they_o that_o be_v new_o convert_v to_o christianity_n against_o which_o origen_n show_v by_o example_n of_o the_o pharisee_n trust_v in_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v righteous_a and_o boast_v thereof_o luk_n 18._o that_o it_o perteyn_v to_o all_o man_n that_o boast_v may_v be_v exclude_v and_o that_o none_o boast_v in_o any_o thing_n but_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n vides_fw-la apostol_n ãâ¦ã_o non_fw-it gloriantem_fw-la etc._n etc._n thou_o see_v the_o apostle_n not_o glory_v of_o his_o righteousness_n nor_o of_o his_o chastity_n nor_o of_o his_o wisdom_n nor_o of_o his_o other_o virtue_n and_o act_n but_o most_o manifest_o pronounce_v and_o say_v let_v he_o that_o glori_v glory_n in_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o at_o length_n show_v that_o all_o this_o do_v verify_v the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o judge_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n which_o before_o he_o have_v interpret_v by_o faith_n only_o whether_o they_o have_v no_o work_n go_v before_o as_o the_o thief_n the_o sinful_a woman_n or_o whether_o they_o have_v work_n of_o the_o law_n without_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o pharisee_n or_o whether_o they_o have_v never_o so_o many_o work_n and_o virtue_n with_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n there_o be_v but_o one_o way_n of_o justification_n for_o all_o man_n which_o be_v by_o remission_n of_o sin_n through_o faith_n only_o where_o cyprian_n say_v that_o faith_n only_o profit_v ad_fw-la quirin_n cap._n 42._o bristol_n say_v he_o mean_v that_o faith_n profit_v and_o without_o faith_n nothing_o profit_v i_o confess_v in_o deed_n he_o mean_v all_o that_o bristol_n say_v and_o more_o too_o namely_o that_o faith_n profit_v therefore_o work_n do_v not_o profit_v unto_o justification_n as_o appear_v by_o that_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n which_o he_o cit_v to_o prove_v his_o say_n abraham_n believe_v god_n and_o it_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o for_o justice_n gen._n 15._o by_o which_o saint_n paul_n prove_v that_o abraham_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n and_o yet_o abraham_n be_v not_o void_a of_o good_a work_n out_o of_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr duplici_fw-la martyrio_fw-la i_o cite_v cyprian_n saying_n that_o he_o believe_v not_o in_o god_n at_o all_o which_o place_v not_o the_o trust_n of_o all_o his_o felicity_n in_o he_o only_o to_o this_o bristol_n answer_v without_o shame_n that_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr duplici_fw-la martyrio_fw-la be_v think_v to_o be_v supposition_n coin_a by_o erasmus_n as_o though_o it_o be_v credible_a that_o erasmus_n be_v such_o a_o utter_a enemy_n to_o all_o forgery_n and_o supposition_n will_v himself_o counterfeit_v a_o book_n under_o the_o name_n of_o cyprian_a but_o bristol_n doubt_v lest_o he_o may_v be_v convict_v by_o ancient_a copy_n of_o this_o book_n remain_v in_o library_n as_o no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o may_v for_o a_o second_o answer_n say_v that_o this_o sentence_n be_v of_o itself_o catholic_a enough_o for_o to_o trust_v god_n gift_n as_o in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o good_a work_n that_o he_o work_v in_o we_o also_o to_o trust_v in_o saint_n to_o trust_v in_o these_o i_o say_v as_o they_o be_v his_o be_v to_o trust_v in_o he_o only_o i_o say_v say_v bristol_n what_o need_v we_o further_o witness_v or_o reason_n but_o christ_n tell_v a_o parable_n against_o they_o that_o trust_v in_o themselves_o that_o they_o be_v righteous_a tell_v of_o a_o pharisee_n that_o trust_v in_o his_o work_v as_o they_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n to_o who_o he_o give_v thanks_n for_o they_o luke_n 18._o this_o authority_n of_o bristol_n be_v enough_o to_o discharge_v pelagius_n celestinus_fw-la and_o all_o the_o rabble_n of_o freewill_n man_n who_o trust_v in_o nothing_o but_o that_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o so_o acknowledge_v by_o they_o in_o so_o much_o as_o they_o confess_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n when_o he_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o own_o work_n because_o god_n give_v free_a will_n and_o power_n to_o work_v well_o also_o a_o law_n by_o keep_v whereof_o man_n may_v be_v righteous_a final_o this_o rule_n of_o bristol_n will_v justify_v a_o man_n which_o put_v his_o trust_n in_o angel_n worship_v they_o as_o god_n angel_n yea_o which_o put_v his_o trust_n in_o any_o of_o god_n creature_n trust_v in_o he_o alone_o so_o that_o nothing_o be_v so_o singular_a but_o he_o can_v make_v it_o general_a nor_o any_o thing_n so_o general_a but_o he_o can_v restrain_v it_o at_o his_o pleasure_n now_o that_o ambrose_n also_o extend_v the_o grace_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o unto_o eternal_a salvation_n it_o be_v manifest_a as_o general_o throughout_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n so_o notable_o in_o 1._o cor._n cap._n 1._o upon_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n i_o thank_v my_o god_n always_o for_o you_o for_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o have_v be_v give_v you_o in_o christ_n jesu._n datam_fw-la dicit_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o say_v this_o grace_n which_o have_v be_v give_v you_o in_o christ_n jesus_n which_o grace_n be_v so_o give_v in_o christ_n jesus_n because_o this_o be_v decree_v of_o god_n that_o he_o which_o beleve_v in_o christ_n shall_v be_v save_v without_o work_n obtain_v free_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o faith_n only_o also_o in_o praef._n ad_fw-la gall._n a_o praedicatione_n etc._n etc._n that_o from_o the_o preach_n of_o john_n the_o law_n do_v cease_v that_o only_a faith_n may_v suffice_v unto_o salvation_n which_o be_v a_o abridgement_n of_o the_o law_n likewise_o exhortatione_n ad_fw-la virgin_n videtis_fw-la mysteria_fw-la etc._n etc._n you_o see_v the_o mystery_n you_o see_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v deliver_v as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o certain_a lot_n because_o not_o of_o work_n but_o of_o faith_n every_o one_o be_v justify_v of_o the_o lord_n for_o as_o the_o fall_n out_o of_o the_o lot_n be_v not_o in_o our_o power_n but_o be_v such_o as_o chance_n have_v bring_v so_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v not_o as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o merit_n of_o hire_n but_o be_v deliver_v as_o of_o his_o will_n this_o write_v ambrose_n of_o all_o that_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o they_o that_o be_v new_o baptize_v or_o convert_v only_o again_o in_o the_o same_o book_n he_o say_v speak_v of_o all_o man_n that_o attain_v to_o salvation_n hîc_fw-la quidem_fw-la luctamur_fw-la sed_fw-la alibi_fw-la coronamur_fw-la etc._n etc._n here_o true_o we_o do_v wrestle_v but_o in_o a_o other_o place_n we_o be_v crown_v i_o have_v speak_v not_o of_o myself_o only_o but_o of_o all_o man_n general_o for_o whence_o shall_v i_o have_v so_o much_o merit_n to_o who_o pardon_n be_v in_o steed_n of_o a_o crown_n what_o can_v be_v say_v more_o plain_o to_o exclude_v the_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n from_o justification_n whereas_o the_o reward_n of_o good_a work_n that_o be_v free_o give_v to_o the_o justify_v man_n by_o faith_n only_o both_o ambrose_n and_o we_o do_v nevertheless_o acknowledge_v 3._o about_o purgatorye_n touch_v scripture_n expound_v against_o bristol_n it_o he_o say_v i_o be_o take_v in_o a_o vain_a brag_n because_o fulke_n i_o be_v urge_v by_o allen_n to_o bring_v any_o scripture_n expound_v by_o any_o of_o all_o antiquity_n against_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a i_o bring_v only_a hierom_n refer_v the_o reader_n to_o other_o place_n of_o cyprian_a and_o origen_n
will_v have_v nothing_o do_v in_o the_o celebration_n fulke_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n &_o namely_o in_o minister_a of_o the_o cup_n but_o that_o christ_n himself_o do_v lib._n 2._o ep._n 3._o bristol_n answer_v the_o he_o write_v against_o the_o aquarians_n which_o offer_v water_n only_o where_o as_o christ_n offer_v wine_n which_o be_v clean_o against_o christ_n do_v and_o what_o be_v your_o sacrilege_n in_o rob_v of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o whole_a cup_n be_v it_o not_o clean_o contrary_a both_o to_o his_o do_v &_o his_o commandment_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o and_o such_o do_v as_o he_o do_v for_o a_o tradition_n unto_o we_o when_o the_o apostle_n reherse_v that_o tradition_n reherse_v drink_v of_o the_o lord_n cup_n by_o the_o lay_v as_o well_o as_o eat_v of_o the_o bread_n as_o for_o mingle_v wine_n with_o water_n which_o first_o be_v but_o a_o custom_n of_o sobriety_n after_o grow_v into_o a_o ceremony_n if_o cyprian_n shall_v urge_v of_o necessity_n he_o may_v be_v answer_v by_o his_o own_o rule_n likewise_o where_o chrysostom_n say_v it_o be_v decree_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n a_o remembrance_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o they_o that_o be_v depart_v i_o say_v we_o will_v be_v bold_a to_o charge_v he_o with_o his_o own_o say_n first_o hom_o de_fw-fr adam_n &_o heâa_n satis_fw-la sufficere_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o think_v it_o suffice_v enough_o whatsoever_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostles_n have_v teach_v we_o according_a to_o the_o foresay_a rule_n insomuch_o that_o we_o count_v it_o not_o all_o catholic_a whatsoever_o shall_v appear_v contrary_a to_o the_o rule_v appoint_v by_o this_o bristol_n see_v that_o i_o be_o a_o great_a reader_n of_o the_o doctor_n for_o whosoever_o make_v this_o homily_n say_v he_o he_o take_v those_o word_n out_o of_o the_o instruction_n which_o follow_v the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n celestinus_fw-la in_o the_o first_o tome_n of_o counsel_n where_o the_o word_n be_v not_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a which_o be_v think_v sufficient_a whatsoever_o my_o read_n be_v for_o the_o maker_n of_o the_o homily_n i_o can_v depose_v but_o i_o trust_v he_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o it_o have_v in_o all_o print_a book_n go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o chrysostom_n and_o it_o contain_v nothing_o unworthy_a the_o judgement_n of_o chrysostom_n it_o be_v therefore_o more_o like_a that_o celestinus_fw-la or_o whosoever_o gather_v that_o instruction_n borrow_v those_o word_n out_o of_o this_o homily_n and_o from_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n pervert_v they_o to_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a many_o such_o borrow_n &_o perversion_n be_v common_o find_v in_o those_o pontifical_a epistle_n for_o admit_v that_o not_o chrysostom_n but_o some_o late_a man_n make_v that_o homily_n which_o borrow_v such_o word_n out_o of_o that_o epistle_n or_o instruction_n why_o do_v he_o alter_v they_o if_o he_o think_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v sufficient_a to_o approve_v all_o catholic_a doctrine_n except_o perhaps_o his_o copy_n have_v also_o apostolica_fw-la scripta_fw-la &_o that_o copy_n which_o peter_n crab_n follow_v in_o gather_v the_o counsel_n be_v corrupt_v certain_a it_o be_v the_o homily_n be_v ancient_a and_o make_v in_o the_o time_n when_o the_o pelagian_n heresy_n begin_v to_o spring_n which_o be_v in_o the_o late_a time_n of_o chrysostom_n &_o therefore_o i_o have_v use_v no_o fraud_n or_o misdemeanour_n in_o cite_v this_o say_n for_o chrysostoms_n whereto_o bristol_n make_v no_o answer_n but_o deny_v the_o authority_n likewise_o where_o i_o cite_v out_o of_o chrysost._n in_o ge._n ho._n 58._o thou_o see_v into_o how_o great_a absurdity_n they_o fall_v which_o will_v not_o follow_v the_o canon_n or_o rule_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o permit_v all_o to_o their_o own_o cogitation_n bristol_n answer_v nothing_o but_o that_o chrysost._n answer_v heretic_n which_o say_v our_o lord_n take_v not_o ture_a flesh_n as_o though_o his_o sentence_n be_v not_o general_a against_o all_o heretic_n which_o go_v beside_o the_o scripture_n three_o i_o say_v if_o we_o be_v further_o urge_v we_o will_v allege_v that_o he_o write_v in_o euang._n jac._n hom._n 58._o he_o that_o use_v not_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o clyme_v another_o way_n that_o be_v a_o by_o way_n not_o allow_v be_v a_o thief_n to_o this_o bristol_n repli_v that_o i_o will_v call_v chrysostom_n a_o thief_n by_o his_o own_o say_n for_o use_v tradition_n yea_o very_o if_o he_o be_v obstinate_a and_o why_o not_o as_o well_o as_o s._n paul_n or_o a_o angel_n accurse_v if_o they_o bring_v a_o other_o gospel_n second_o he_o say_v as_o though_o he_o use_v not_o scripture_n which_o use_v tradition_n or_o that_o scripture_n do_v not_o warrant_v tradition_n as_o 2._o thessa._n 2._o i_o answer_v such_o tradition_n as_o be_v warrant_v by_o scripture_n we_o refuse_v not_o but_o if_o all_o your_o tradition_n be_v warrant_v by_o scripture_n where_o shall_v be_v your_o unwritten_a verity_n three_o say_v bristol_n the_o thing_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o be_v that_o antichrist_n &_o pseudochrist_n can_v show_v any_o commission_n out_o of_o scripture_n i_o answer_v that_o prove_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n who_o neither_o for_o his_o authority_n nor_o for_o his_o doctrine_n can_v show_v any_o commission_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n four_o i_o say_v we_o may_v be_v as_o bold_a with_o chrysostome_n as_o he_o say_v he_o will_v be_v with_o paul_n himself_o in_o 2._o ad_fw-la tim._n hom._n 2._o i_o will_v say_v somewhat_o more_o we_o must_v not_o be_v rule_v by_o paul_n himself_o if_o he_o speak_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v his_o own_o and_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v human_a but_o we_o must_v obey_v the_o apostle_n when_o he_o carri_v christ_n speak_v in_o he_o bristol_n ask_v whether_o he_o speak_v only_o by_o scripture_n no_o very_o but_o by_o revelation_n he_o speak_v to_o s._n paul_n by_o audible_a and_o human_a voice_n he_o speak_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o whatsoever_o he_o speak_v any_o way_n pertain_v to_o our_o instruction_n be_v commit_v to_o writing_n and_o therefore_o i_o believe_v not_o chrysostom_n allege_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o their_o writing_n another_o place_n of_o chrysostom_n i_o cite_v in_o luke_n chap._n 16_o say_v that_o ignorance_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v breed_v heresy_n therefore_o he_o will_v have_v heresy_n keep_v away_o by_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o will_v the_o same_o say_v bristol_n but_o what_o make_v this_o for_o only_a scripture_n to_o be_v of_o authority_n yes_o forsooth_o if_o all_o heresy_n come_v through_o ignorance_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o which_o come_v not_o through_o ignorance_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o heresy_n and_o that_o opinion_n which_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n come_v not_o of_o ignorance_n of_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o he_o that_o know_v the_o scripture_n know_v all_o truth_n unto_o leo_n the_o great_a allege_v custom_n and_o tradition_n i_o oppose_v his_o own_o say_n for_o only_a scripture_n to_o be_v sufficient_a ep._n 10._o they_o fall_v into_o this_o folly_n which_o when_o they_o be_v hinder_v by_o some_o obscurity_n to_o know_v the_o truth_n have_v not_o recourse_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n nor_o to_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n nor_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o to_o themselves_o he_o do_v not_o say_v say_v bristol_n that_o all_o truth_n be_v express_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o he_o blame_v the_o heretic_n for_o not_o have_v recourse_n to_o our_o common_a creed_n as_o though_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o our_o common_a creed_n which_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o if_o only_a scripture_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o man_n to_o know_v the_o truth_n in_o any_o obscurity_n how_o can_v they_o be_v blame_v for_o not_o have_v recourse_n unto_o they_o for_o that_o which_o they_o can_v find_v in_o they_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n the_o 6._o act._n 18._o of_o bristow_v true_a translation_n be_v these_o if_o all_o man_n have_v simple_o and_o without_o calliditie_n from_o the_o beginning_n receive_v the_o gospel_n preach_v and_o be_v content_n with_o the_o apostle_n institution_n the_o matter_n very_o have_v be_v well_o a_o fine_a and_o neither_o the_o author_n of_o heresy_n nor_o the_o fautor_n of_o the_o priest_n have_v be_v put_v to_o the_o pain_n of_o conflict_n but_o because_o the_o devil_n not_o rest_v raise_v up_o his_o squire_n therefore_o christ_n also_o in_o time_n convenient_a have_v raise_v up_o his_o warrior_n against_o they_o to_o wit_n the_o general_a
everlasting_a rest_n of_o infant_n that_o be_v not_o baptize_v but_o what_o say_v bristol_n to_o my_o reply_n which_o be_v this_o the_o same_o reason_n serve_v as_o well_o against_o the_o popish_a purgatory_n because_o we_o find_v it_o not_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n bristol_n ask_v whether_o saint_n augustine_n do_v so_o reason_n against_o it_o as_o though_o that_o be_v material_a when_o the_o reason_n will_v bind_v one_o man_n as_o well_o as_o another_o and_o one_o matter_n as_o well_o as_o another_o as_o for_o his_o opinion_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a as_o i_o have_v often_o say_v prove_v not_o a_o third_o place_n as_o for_o the_o two_o place_n de_n ciu._n dei_fw-la lib._n 21._o cap._n 13._o &_o 24._o the_o one_o manifest_o corrupt_v the_o other_o just_o suspect_v i_o have_v speak_v to_o they_o both_o already_o other_o doctor_n about_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a bristol_n i_o cite_v purg._n 382._o gelasius_n 24._o 92._o c._n legatur_fw-la that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v absolve_v of_o the_o pope_n after_o his_o death_n and_o fulke_n wherefore_o then_o serve_v the_o pope_n pardon_n bristol_n answer_v that_o all_o their_o suffrage_n be_v only_o for_o they_o that_o die_v in_o their_o communion_n and_o not_o for_o excommunicate_a person_n very_o well_o yet_o be_v you_o not_o escape_v for_o where_o be_v the_o pope_n commission_n for_o pardon_v quodeunque_fw-la &c_n &c_n whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v upon_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n if_o this_o be_v your_o commission_n as_o well_o for_o give_v pardon_n as_o for_o absolve_a excommunicate_a person_n this_o commission_n can_v be_v exercise_v but_o upon_o the_o live_n we_o read_v say_v gelâsius_n that_o christ_n do_v raise_v the_o dead_a we_o read_v not_o that_o he_o do_v absolve_v they_o that_o die_v in_o error_n if_o i_o have_v pleasure_n to_o enterlarde_v the_o doctor_n say_n as_o you_o have_v i_o shall_v add_v that_o we_o read_v not_o that_o christ_n give_v pardon_n to_o any_o in_o purgatory_n and_o because_o he_o alone_o have_v power_n only_o this_o to_o do_v he_o commit_v it_o to_o peter_n the_o apostle_n principal_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v upon_o earth_n it_o shabe_v loose_v also_o in_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n he_o say_v upon_o earth_n for_o he_o never_o say_v that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v absolve_v which_o die_v in_o his_o bind_n likewise_o that_o this_o authority_n give_v by_o this_o text_n be_v it_o more_o or_o less_o be_v to_o be_v exercise_v only_o upon_o man_n live_v on_o the_o earth_n you_o may_v read_v c._n 24_o q._n 2._o quod_fw-la autem_fw-la and_o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v excommunicate_v or_o absolve_v after_o his_o death_n it_o be_v show_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o which_o it_o be_v say_v whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v etc._n etc._n he_o say_v upon_o the_o earth_n not_o under_o the_o earth_n where_o i_o cite_v out_o of_o cyprian_a cont._n demetr_v pur._n 140._o when_o man_n be_v depart_v from_o hence_o there_o be_v no_o place_n of_o repentance_n no_o effect_n of_o satisfaction_n here_o life_n be_v either_o lose_v or_o save_v here_o provision_n be_v make_v for_o everlasting_a life_n by_o the_o worship_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n bristol_n charge_v i_o with_o clip_v because_o i_o leave_v out_o the_o last_o period_n which_o be_v neither_o to_o nor_o fro_o my_o purpose_n likewise_o where_o i_o say_v he_o exhort_v demetrianus_n himself_o to_o repentance_n which_o have_v be_v a_o wicked_a man_n and_o a_o persecutor_n of_o christian_n he_o charge_v i_o with_o change_v for_o i_o shall_v have_v say_v which_o present_o be_v i_o change_v no_o word_n of_o cyprian_a in_o say_v he_o have_v be_v and_o a_o reasonable_a man_n will_v have_v understand_v i_o that_o he_o present_o be_v such_o a_o one_o when_o i_o say_v cyprian_a exhort_v he_o to_o repentance_n but_o what_o be_v the_o answer_n this_o which_o be_v express_o write_v of_o infidel_n in_o hell_n and_o of_o baptism_n i_o pretend_v to_o be_v write_v of_o the_o faithful_a in_o purgatory_n and_o of_o penance_n after_o baptism_n i_o answer_v cyprian_n speak_v general_o of_o all_o man_n &_o not_o of_o infidel_n only_o &_o of_o all_o man_n in_o this_o world_n and_o not_o of_o infidel_n in_o hell_n nec_fw-la quisquam_fw-la etc._n etc._n neither_o let_v any_o man_n be_v stay_v either_o by_o sin_n or_o by_o year_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o come_v to_o obtain_v salvation_n to_o he_o that_o remain_v still_o in_o this_o world_n no_o repentance_n be_v to_o late_o the_o way_n be_v open_a unto_o pardon_n and_o to_o they_o that_o seek_v and_o understand_v the_o truth_n the_o access_n be_v easy_a final_o after_o he_o have_v say_v that_o passage_n be_v from_o death_n to_o life_n the_o place_n by_o i_o cite_v he_o add_v hanc_fw-la graiiam_fw-la this_o grace_n christ_n bestow_v this_o gift_n of_o his_o mercy_n he_o give_v by_o subdue_a death_n with_o the_o trophy_n of_o his_o cross_n redeem_v the_o believer_n with_o the_o price_n of_o his_o blood_n reconcile_a man_n to_o god_n his_o father_n quicken_a a_o mortal_a man_n by_o heavenly_a regeneration_n he_o if_o it_o may_v be_v let_v we_o all_o follow_v let_v we_o be_v esteem_v by_o his_o sacrament_n and_o sign_n he_o open_v unto_o we_o the_o way_n of_o life_n he_o restore_v we_o to_o paradise_n he_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o kingdom_n heaven_n with_o he_o we_o shall_v always_o live_v etc._n etc._n these_o word_n declare_v that_o cyprian_a acknowledge_v one_o mean_a of_o salvation_n as_o well_o for_o the_o gentile_a to_o be_v baptize_v as_o for_o the_o penitent_a christian_a by_o the_o only_a mercy_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n obtain_v in_o this_o life_n without_o any_o satisfaction_n of_o pain_n for_o ever_o after_o this_o life_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v moreover_o that_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o christ_n restore_v by_o his_o blood_n we_o shall_v always_o rejoice_v with_o he_o we_o christian_n shall_v be_v together_o with_o christ_n glorious_a bless_v of_o god_n our_o father_n rejoice_v of_o perpetual_a pleasure_n always_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o always_o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n for_o he_o can_v not_o be_v but_o always_o joyful_a and_o glad_a which_o when_o he_o be_v guilrie_n of_o death_n be_v make_v sure_a of_o immortality_n thus_o do_v cyprian_a promise_n to_o demetrianus_n if_o he_o do_v repent_v but_o even_o immediate_o before_o his_o death_n and_o be_v baptize_v that_o he_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o same_o state_n of_o felicity_n with_o all_o faithful_a christian_n in_o perpetual_a joy_n after_o death_n with_o christ._n in_o like_a manner_n he_o exhort_v they_o that_o be_v fall_v in_o persecution_n to_o repent_v in_o this_o world_n while_o confession_n may_v be_v receive_v and_o satisfaction_n and_o remission_n make_v by_o the_o priest_n be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n which_o he_o speak_v general_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v no_o satisfaction_n or_o remission_n make_v by_o the_o priest_n avail_v to_o they_o that_o be_v depart_v to_o the_o place_n of_o chrysostome_n which_o i_o cite_v against_o himself_o pur._n 251._o bristol_n after_o he_o have_v remove_v the_o question_n from_o the_o cause_n to_o the_o person_n answer_v that_o no_o friend_n no_o just_a man_n shall_v help_v he_o that_o die_v in_o mortal_a sin_n either_o commit_v evil_a or_o do_v no_o good_a i_o say_v no_o more_o but_o as_o i_o say_v before_o let_v it_o be_v compare_v with_o chrysostom_n other_o say_v the_o homily_n next_o before_o 41._o in_o 1._o cor._n and_o with_o allens_n exhortation_n in_o the_o same_o chapter_n pur._n 242._o if_o thou_o yet_o chance_n etc._n etc._n out_o of_o ambrose_n although_o allow_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a i_o cite_v in_o psalm_n 4._o be_v etc._n etc._n the_o prophet_n do_v well_o to_o add_v on_o earth_n for_o if_o he_o be_v not_o cleanse_v here_o he_o can_v not_o be_v cleanse_v there_o i_o shall_v have_v say_v clean_o say_v bristol_n for_o though_o he_o be_v not_o clean_a from_o venial_a sin_n he_o may_v be_v cleanse_v there_o as_o also_o from_o the_o temporal_a debt_n of_o his_o remit_v mortal_a sin_n but_o he_o forget_v the_o word_n of_o the_o psalm_n out_o of_o which_o ambrose_n make_v his_o note_n ut_fw-la emundet_fw-la cum_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la that_o he_o may_v cleanse_v he_o on_o earth_n why_o be_v it_o well_o add_v on_o earth_n if_o he_o may_v be_v cleanse_v after_o this_o life_n there_o be_v no_o cleanse_v but_o on_o earth_n where_o ambrose_n be_v allege_v by_o allen_n pur._n 104._o to_o prove_v that_o every_o man_n immediate_o after_o his_o death_n do_v feel_v that_o he_o must_v look_v for_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n i_o say_v purgatory_n 105._o i_o marvel_v wherefore_o it_o be_v bring_v in_o if_o it_o be_v not_o to_o
the_o church_n in_o the_o wilderness_n as_o though_o we_o be_v forbid_v to_o seeâe_v she_o or_o else_o to_o acknowledge_v she_o to_o be_v where_o sometime_o she_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o 4_o demand_v of_o rise_v after_o he_o will_v maintain_v 2_o argument_n the_o first_o be_v this_o our_o first_o author_n can_v not_o be_v name_v ergo_fw-la they_o be_v none_o but_o the_o apostle_n this_o argument_n have_v no_o consequens_fw-la and_o yet_o the_o antecedent_n iâ_n false_a for_o of_o many_o of_o your_o error_n we_o name_v the_o author_n and_o of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a montanus_n the_o heretic_n until_o you_o can_v name_v we_o a_o catholic_n that_o hold_v it_o which_o be_v more_o ancient_a than_o he_o and_o although_o you_o will_v clear_v yourselves_o of_o theft_n because_o you_o have_v not_o steal_v that_o article_n but_o receive_v it_o yet_o see_v it_o come_v first_o from_o a_o thief_n your_o possession_n can_v not_o be_v just_a and_o therefore_o you_o must_v restore_v it_o to_o the_o heathen_a from_o whence_o montanus_n steal_v it_o where_o i_o bring_v example_n of_o the_o heretic_n call_v acephali_n and_o diverse_a other_o pur._n 388._o to_o prove_v that_o the_o first_o auctor_fw-la of_o every_o heresy_n can_v not_o be_v name_v bristol_n say_v that_o he_o find_v his_o name_n to_o have_v be_v severus_n &_o that_o they_o be_v but_o a_o piece_n of_o eutyches_n as_o the_o puritan_n be_v of_o caluin_n but_o when_o writer_n doubt_v &_o the_o common_a voice_n give_v they_o their_o name_n because_o their_o bead_n be_v not_o know_v the_o conjecture_n of_o a_o name_n will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n if_o they_o have_v add_v nothing_o to_o eutyches_n they_o shall_v have_v be_v call_v eutychian_o as_o for_o the_o cavil_n of_o caluine_n and_o the_o puritan_n deserve_v none_o answer_v more_o like_a be_v the_o friar_n obseruant_n and_o general_a franciscanes_n to_o those_o headless_a heretic_n &_o the_o eutychian_o but_o bristol_n be_v drive_v from_o the_o auctor_fw-la fall_v to_o the_o begin_n of_o a_o heresy_n which_o be_v show_v to_o have_v be_v late_a than_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v indeed_o a_o undoubted_a argument_n to_o reprove_v a_o heresy_n and_o the_o begin_n say_v he_o be_v show_v by_o this_o that_o the_o primitive_a name_n of_o christian_n will_v not_o serve_v they_o but_o they_o must_v have_v new_a name_n to_o be_v call_v by_o by_o this_o demonstratine_a logic_n none_o shill_v so_o apt_o be_v prove_v heretic_n as_o monk_n friar_n nun_n &c_n &c_n who_o disdain_v the_o primitive_a name_n of_o christian_n have_v choose_v to_o themselves_o new_a name_n as_o benedictines_n franciscanes_n jesuite_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o the_o old_a heretic_n do_v not_o willing_o choose_v the_o name_n that_o they_o be_v call_v by_o but_o by_o like_a name_n reproach_v the_o true_a catholic_n which_o argue_v that_o the_o new_a name_n except_o it_o be_v choose_v by_o they_o âelues_n be_v no_o good_a argument_n to_o convince_v heretic_n bris._n ask_v if_o the_o papist_n do_v acknowledge_v any_o founder_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n yea_o very_o the_o pope_n &_o the_o popish_a council_n which_o have_v give_v you_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o apostles_n never_o teach_v but_o yâ_z contrary_n as_o transubstantiation_n &_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n etc._n etc._n that_o teâtul_n &_o other_o latter_a writer_n do_v father_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a upon_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostles_n it_o be_v no_o warrant_n for_o we_o see_v the_o doctrine_n thereof_o be_v not_o find_v in_o all_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n but_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o same_o &_o montanus_n be_v find_v to_o be_v the_o first_o that_o since_o christ_n teach_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_z that_o transubstantiation_n be_v late_o decree_v he_o answer_v it_o be_v the_o name_n &_o not_o the_o thing_n as_o homoousion_n be_v always_o beleve_v even_o before_o the_o nicen_n council_n which_o first_o receive_v that_o name_n a_o fit_a comparison_n but_o how_o can_v brist_n say_v that_o transubstantiation_n be_v always_o beleve_v when_o the_o common_a opinion_n almost_o of_o all_o the_o schoolman_n be_v that_o before_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o laterane_n council_n it_o be_v no_o heresy_n to_o hold_v impuration_n or_o adnihilation_n of_o the_o element_n and_o he_o himself_o confess_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n that_o perfect_a transubstantiation_n be_v not_o decree_v before_o the_o last_o tridentine_a session_n the_o second_o argument_n be_v this_o your_o first_o author_n can_v be_v name_v after_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n rise_v with_o their_o new_a opinion_n ergo_fw-la their_o opnion_n be_v heresy_n etc._n etc._n to_o this_o argument_n i_o answer_v deny_v the_o antecedent_n for_o we_o hold_v no_o new_a opinion_n but_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n corner_n stone_n where_o i_o take_v exception_n to_o allens_n rule_n pur._n 413_o bristol_n expound_v his_o meaning_n to_o be_v of_o such_o a_o opinion_n as_o be_v contrary_n to_o the_o truth_n first_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o upon_o his_o exposition_n not_o necessary_a upon_o allens_n word_n charge_v i_o with_o nugation_n or_o trisel_v in_o add_v my_o exception_n which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o his_o exposition_n i_o pray_v the_o reader_n vouchsafe_v to_o peruse_v the_o place_n and_o see_v if_o there_o be_v any_o drop_n of_o shamefast_a blood_n leave_v in_o this_o blunder_a papist_n which_o blush_v not_o to_o scoff_n at_o i_o for_o triseling_n when_o he_o do_v nothing_o but_o cavil_v and_o trifle_v himself_o and_o that_o without_o all_o wit_n or_o reason_n truth_n or_o likelihood_n in_o the_o 5._o demand_n of_o contradiction_n of_o heresy_n in_o their_o first_o arise_v where_o i_o have_v show_v how_o some_o few_o plausible_a error_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a &_o to_o the_o dead_a ar._n 39_o by_o little_a and_o little_o prevail_v without_o any_o great_a contradiction_n mention_v in_o history_n bristol_n say_v it_o be_v a_o fond_a part_n to_o tell_v why_o and_o how_o a_o thing_n be_v do_v which_o be_v never_o do_v for_o the_o scripture_n es._n 62._o and_o august_n ep._n 119._o cap._n 19_o affirm_v that_o there_o ne_o shall_v be_v ne_o be_v any_o such_o silence_n in_o the_o true_a pastor_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v both_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o doctor_n speak_v of_o silence_n which_o may_v bring_v present_a overthrow_n of_o the_o city_n or_o damnation_n of_o the_o citizen_n otherwise_o the_o true_a pastor_n in_o saint_n augustine_n time_n not_o only_o in_o silence_n pass_v but_o by_o speech_n and_o write_v allow_v the_o error_n of_o communicate_v of_o infant_n and_o the_o necessity_n thereof_o as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o and_o see_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o to_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v convince_v to_o be_v error_n it_o can_v be_v no_o justify_n of_o they_o to_o say_v no_o man_n preach_v against_o they_o at_o their_o first_o rise_v and_o see_v the_o history_n of_o the_o ancient_a time_n be_v very_o few_o and_o short_a it_o be_v more_o bold_o affirm_v then_o sound_o prove_v that_o no_o man_n preach_v against_o they_o epiphanius_n do_v not_o tell_v who_o preach_v against_o every_o heresy_n at_o the_o first_o arise_v thereof_o and_o even_o some_o of_o origens_n heresy_n of_o which_o bristol_n take_v example_n sleep_v almost_o 200._o year_n in_o his_o book_n before_o they_o be_v open_o contradict_v in_o the_o day_n of_o hieronyme_n ruffian_n and_o augustine_n touch_v that_o i_o allege_v of_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n work_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n 2._o thess._n 2._o bristol_n charge_v i_o to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n wrought_v this_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n wherein_o he_o do_v i_o open_a injury_n for_o i_o know_v it_o be_v satan_n which_o wrought_v it_o but_o yet_o in_o the_o church_n where_o antichrist_n shall_v sit_v and_o not_o without_o it_o he_o ask_v whether_o my_o text_n say_v there_o be_v no_o preach_n against_o it_o i_o answer_v my_o text_n say_v it_o be_v a_o mystery_n not_o reveal_v and_o therefore_o can_v not_o at_o the_o first_o be_v open_o preach_v against_o but_o antichrist_n be_v open_o show_v be_v preach_v against_o by_o the_o two_o witness_n apoc._n 11._o although_o he_o be_v not_o espy_v in_o the_o first_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n yea_o when_o he_o be_v yet_o in_o fashion_v he_o be_v preach_v against_o by_o irenaeus_n pollycrates_n and_o other_o ar._n 36._o and_o in_o this_o book_n cap._n 9_o the_o case_n of_o cyprian_a and_o the_o africans_n be_v true_a pastor_n and_o yet_o contradict_v the_o truth_n and_o other_o true_a pastor_n deny_v that_o such_o as_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n be_v to_o be_v rebaptise_v i_o have_v clear_o
set_v down_o pur._n 413._o but_o that_o bristol_n can_v do_v nothing_o but_o cavil_n allens_n rule_n be_v of_o the_o first_o rise_v of_o the_o person_n whereunto_o i_o require_v to_o be_v add_v that_o their_o opinion_n must_v also_o be_v new_a which_o if_o bristowe_v blind_a malice_n can_v have_v see_v he_o need_v not_o to_o have_v paint_v his_o margin_n with_o so_o many_o quotation_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o true_a opinion_n be_v ancient_a and_o perpetual_a where_o i_o show_v ar._n 93._o that_o the_o pope_n in_o secret_a &_o not_o by_o open_a contradiction_n cause_v a_o most_o horrible_a blasphemous_a lake_n call_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n write_v by_o the_o friar_n to_o be_v privy_o burn_v for_o shame_v their_o order_n which_z continued_z 55._o year_n without_o reprehension_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o but_o such_o as_o be_v account_v heretic_n bristol_n call_v it_o favourable_o but_o a_o new_a scandalous_a book_n ask_v what_o fault_n it_o be_v very_o such_o a_o fault_n as_o prove_v he_o to_o be_v more_o zealous_a of_o the_o glory_n of_o beggarly_a friar_n then_o of_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v shadow_v by_o the_o example_n of_o augustine_n at_o the_o first_o forbear_v the_o name_n of_o pelagius_n while_o there_o be_v hope_n of_o amendment_n in_o he_o and_o he_o not_o thorough_o understand_v his_o heresy_n but_o contrary_a wise_a the_o pope_n favour_v the_o blaspheââous_a friar_n and_o condemn_v their_o reprehender_n for_o heretic_n where_o i_o say_v this_o be_v a_o argument_n from_o man_n authority_n negative_o &_o therefore_o nothing_o worth_a no_o man_n preach_v against_o purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a at_o their_o first_o entry_n therefore_o they_o be_v true_a bristol_n say_v it_o be_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n father_n and_o history_n that_o all_o heresy_n have_v bâne_v preach_v against_o at_o their_o first_o entry_n beside_o that_o he_o flit_v from_o error_n to_o heresy_n as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o they_o those_o scripture_n father_n and_o history_n be_v not_o yet_o show_v by_o which_o it_o may_v be_v apparent_a what_o man_n and_o of_o what_o name_n and_o in_o what_o time_n do_v open_o preach_v against_o all_o heresy_n at_o their_o first_o entry_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v urge_v upon_o us._n in_o the_o sixth_o demand_n which_o be_v of_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n where_o i_o say_v he_o be_v a_o foolish_a sophister_n that_o reason_v from_o name_n to_o the_o thing_n bristol_n say_v he_o know_v not_o in_o what_o logic_n i_o have_v that_o axiom_n he_o be_v a_o great_a stranger_n in_o aristotel_n that_o know_v not_o that_o a_o carcase_n although_o he_o be_v call_v a_o man_n yet_o be_v not_o a_o man_n in_o deed_n moreover_o he_o charge_v i_o to_o reason_n so_o myself_o in_o the_o seven_o demand_v where_o indeed_o i_o do_v only_o deride_v the_o vain_a kind_n of_o reasoninge_v from_o the_o name_n to_o the_o thing_n when_o the_o name_n be_v not_o right_o give_v retort_v the_o argument_n upon_o the_o papist_n who_o of_o we_o be_v call_v heretic_n as_o we_o be_v of_o they_o but_o saint_n augustine_n reason_v of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n aug._n in_o psa_n cont._n part._n donat._n diciâis_n etc._n etc._n you_o say_v that_o you_o be_v with_o i_o but_o you_o see_v it_o be_v false_a i_o be_o call_v catholic_n and_o you_o of_o donates_n part_n i_o answer_v saint_n augustine_n do_v not_o by_o the_o only_a name_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o a_o sufficient_a motive_n prove_v the_o catholic_n church_n but_o by_o many_o other_o weighty_a reason_n prove_v that_o she_o be_v just_o call_v so_o because_o the_o question_n be_v between_o the_o donatist_n and_o the_o church_n not_o only_o of_o the_o church_n but_o even_o of_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a where_o i_o show_v be_v 6._o that_o the_o grecian_n be_v call_v catholic_n by_o as_o many_o nation_n as_o the_o papist_n bristol_n have_v nothing_o to_o reply_n but_o that_o the_o heretic_n grecians_z and_o latin_n do_v not_o mistake_v the_o person_n when_o common_a talk_n and_o book_n call_v catholic_n latin_v or_o catholic_a grecians_n therefore_o they_o be_v true_a catholic_n a_o miserable_a conclusion_n upon_o a_o false_a antecedent_n for_o the_o grecian_n by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a grecian_n understande_v enemy_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o by_o the_o name_n of_o heretic_n papist_n either_o latin_n or_o revolt_v grecian_n that_o in_o public_a edict_n by_o man_n of_o our_o side_n papist_n be_v call_v catholic_n it_o be_v more_o than_o i_o know_v or_o think_v to_o be_v true_a although_o edict_n pen_v by_o papist_n or_o neuter_n call_v the_o papist_n catholic_n as_o they_o call_v we_o of_o the_o religion_n reform_v which_o appellation_n prove_v neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o where_o i_o compare_v the_o papist_n ar._n 67_o glory_v in_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a &_o church_n to_o the_o infidel_n âewes_v cri_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n when_o they_o have_v make_v it_o ãâã_d den_n of_o thief_n bristol_n answer_v that_o our_o lordâ_n both_o in_o the_o prophet_n jer_n 7._o and_o in_o the_o gospel_n math._n 21._o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v his_o temple_n although_o they_o in_o it_o be_v thief_n and_o wicked_a person_n the_o place_n indeed_o have_v be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o christ_n use_v his_o authority_n as_o high_a priest_n in_o purge_v it_o of_o corruption_n but_o of_o their_o make_n it_o be_v not_o god_n temple_n but_o a_o den_n of_o thief_n except_o bristol_n will_v say_v that_o a_o den_n of_o thief_n may_v be_v god_n temple_n and_o although_o unto_o the_o godly_a notwithstanding_o the_o corruption_n it_o be_v still_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n yet_o have_v not_o the_o ungodly_a the_o temple_n of_o god_n nor_o be_v in_o it_o as_o in_o god_n temple_n but_o as_o in_o a_o thievish_a den_n so_o be_v papist_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n where_o i_o say_v suppose_v we_o be_v not_o call_v catholiqueâ_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v in_o worse_a case_n than_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n who_o not_o only_o have_v not_o that_o name_n but_o be_v of_o the_o jew_n who_o be_v as_o right_o call_v god_n people_n as_o the_o papist_n be_v call_v the_o christian_a world_n call_v heretic_n and_o deceiver_n bristol_n bid_v i_o bate_v a_o ace_n of_o that_o except_o i_o can_v show_v by_o prediction_n of_o the_o prophet_n the_o reprobation_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n in_o these_o day_n as_o they_o show_v the_o reprobation_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o those_o day_n a_o wretched_a refuge_n as_o though_o papist_n be_v only_o name_v the_o christian_a world_n or_o that_o the_o jew_n be_v reprobate_v in_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n preach_v or_o the_o apostle_n either_o before_o the_o extreme_a obstinate_a refuse_v of_o the_o gospel_n or_o as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o show_v the_o popish_a apostasy_n from_o the_o faith_n by_o those_o undoubted_a note_n which_o the_o spirit_n speak_v evident_o do_v give_v of_o they_o 1._o tim._n 4._o beside_o this_o bristol_n deride_v i_o for_o require_v the_o jew_n to_o use_v those_o name_n which_o they_o never_o hear_v of_o and_o be_v bristol_n so_o well_o read_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o name_n of_o true_a church_n be_v never_o hear_v of_o the_o jew_n in_o his_o opinion_n as_o for_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a i_o require_v it_o not_o of_o they_o neither_o do_v i_o think_v we_o ought_v to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o catholic_a see_v we_o believe_v not_o bare_o and_o simple_o the_o catholic_n but_o the_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n which_o church_n be_v not_o call_v catholic_a because_o it_o shall_v be_v every_o where_o for_o that_o it_o never_o be_v nor_o never_o shall_v be_v but_o because_o that_o wheresoever_o it_o be_v in_o part_n it_o be_v one_o body_n of_o christ._n but_o here_o bristol_n take_v i_o up_o for_o halt_v charge_v i_o to_o be_v the_o first_o of_o all_o heretic_n that_o say_v it_o be_v call_v catholica_fw-la because_o it_o be_v una_fw-la but_o he_o play_v his_o old_a part_n for_o i_o say_v it_o be_v catholic_a because_o that_o be_v in_o diverse_a part_n it_o be_v one_o so_o that_o my_o reason_n be_v not_o only_o of_o unity_n but_o of_o universality_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v catholic_a in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o be_v knit_v in_o one_o and_o not_o of_o be_v in_o every_o particular_a place_n of_o the_o world_n nor_o at_o all_o time_n in_o most_o place_n of_o the_o world_n and_o with_o this_o holy_a catholic_a church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n our_o church_n do_v and_o always_o have_v communicate_v when_o it_o be_v not_o
quiet_o confess_v that_o augustine_n bring_v much_o superstition_n into_o this_o island_n &_o yet_o not_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o popery_n but_o the_o principal_a &_o most_o necessary_a ground_n of_o christianity_n where_o i_o affirm_v that_o in_o many_o thing_n the_o faith_n &_o religion_n of_o the_o old_a saxon_n be_v contrary_a to_o that_o the_o papist_n now_o do_v hold_v as_o by_o diverse_a monument_n of_o antiquity_n may_v be_v prove_v bristol_n with_o a_o double_a negative_a will_v have_v it_o seem_v impossible_a because_o in_o s._n bede_n story_n and_o in_o all_o his_o work_n etc._n etc._n we_o find_v nothing_o against_o the_o pope_n nor_o against_o any_o one_o point_n of_o his_o doctrine_n what_o i_o have_v find_v in_o s._n bede_n story_n and_o other_o monument_n of_o the_o saxon_n religion_n i_o have_v set_v forth_o in_o confutation_n of_o stapletons_n fortress_n as_o for_o that_o print_a saxon_a homily_n which_o be_v against_o real_a presence_n &_o transubstantiation_n which_o bristol_n say_v be_v so_o soon_o &_o so_o diligent_o call_v in_o again_o it_o be_v abroad_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o many_o never_o call_v in_o that_o ever_o i_o hear_v of_o but_o have_v since_o the_o first_o set_v forth_o of_o it_o be_v print_v three_o or_o four_o time_n in_o master_n fox_n book_n of_o act_n and_o monument_n in_o the_o ten_o and_o twelve_o demand_n of_o miracle_n and_o vision_n where_o i_o have_v cite_v the_o admonition_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2._o thessalon_n 2._o that_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v in_o all_o lie_a sign_n and_o wonder_n bristol_n ask_v i_o what_o scripture_n tell_v i_o that_o after_o the_o revelation_n of_o antichrist_n there_o shall_v be_v none_o but_o feign_a miracle_n whereas_o i_o infer_v no_o such_o thing_n upon_o the_o text_n but_o show_v even_o that_o which_o he_o blame_v i_o not_o to_o have_v show_v how_o to_o know_v seigned_a miracle_n from_o unfeigned_a namely_o by_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o be_v say_v to_o confirm_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n deut._n 13._o where_o i_o say_v that_o augustine_n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccle_n cap._n 16._o will_v allow_v no_o miracle_n and_o vision_n for_o sufficient_a proof_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n bristol_n say_v i_o do_v shameful_o abuse_v my_o reader_n for_o he_o say_v express_o what_o so_o ever_o such_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n therefore_o they_o be_v to_o be_v allow_v because_o they_o be_v do_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n yea_o sir_n but_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o show_v to_o be_v catholic_a because_o such_o thing_n be_v do_v but_o as_o he_o say_v there_o and_o else_o where_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n but_o bristol_n will_v have_v i_o allow_v all_o the_o miracle_n that_o saint_n augustine_n speak_v of_o because_o they_o be_v do_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o though_o saint_n augustine_n make_v that_o the_o sufficient_a cause_n to_o allow_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v or_o say_v to_o be_v do_v without_o join_v that_o they_o be_v do_v to_o confirm_v the_o catholic_a faith_n cyprian_n miracle_n can_v not_o justify_v his_o error_n in_o the_o popish_a church_n the_o sect_n of_o dominicane_n and_o franciscanes_n in_o their_o dissension_n about_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n boast_v both_o of_o their_o miracle_n yet_o bristol_n will_v not_o i_o ween_v allow_v both_o their_o miracle_n except_o he_o will_v allow_v both_o their_o opinion_n which_o be_v contradictory_n again_o many_o thing_n be_v feign_v even_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o perverse_a zeal_n to_o confirm_v truth_n as_o the_o history_n of_o paul_n and_o tecla_n confess_v by_o a_o priest_n of_o asia_n tert._n the_o bapt_a neither_o will_v bristol_n i_o think_v defend_v that_o all_o the_o miracle_n contain_v in_o the_o alcoran_n of_o frances_n vitas_fw-la patrum_fw-la legendââârea_fw-la dormi_fw-la securè_fw-la sermon_n discipuli_fw-la promptuarium_fw-la exemplorum_fw-la festival_n and_o life_n of_o so_o many_o saint_n as_o be_v write_v be_v all_o true_a and_o none_o feign_v although_o they_o all_o serve_v to_o prove_v popery_n wherefore_o it_o may_v be_v that_o even_o some_o of_o those_o miracle_n that_o s._n augustine_n do_v report_n may_v of_o emulation_n and_o unordered_a zeal_n be_v feign_v by_o some_o catholic_n to_o win_v credit_n to_o the_o church_n against_o heretic_n that_o luther_n and_o caluine_n who_o he_o affirm_v not_o able_a to_o heal_v a_o lame_a horse_n attempt_v wonder_n it_o be_v as_o impudent_a a_o lie_n and_o gross_a forgery_n as_o that_o liâdanus_n tell_v that_o luther_n be_v beget_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v diverse_a horseleech_n among_o the_o protestant_n that_o have_v heal_v more_o lame_a horse_n then_o ever_o s._n loy_n do_v either_o when_o he_o live_v or_o since_o he_o be_v worship_v of_o the_o papist_n as_o a_o excellent_a horseleech_n pass_v over_o 5._o demand_n which_o he_o do_v only_a name_n in_o the_o 18._o of_o destroy_a idolatry_n he_o say_v that_o to_o all_o that_o he_o say_v i_o say_v nothing_o but_o like_o a_o cuckoo_n you_o have_v not_o destroy_v idolatry_n but_o set_v up_o idolatry_n not_o weigh_v say_v bristol_n that_o i_o tell_v he_o according_a to_o the_o prophet_n that_o we_o have_v thorough_o convert_v all_o nation_n from_o idolatry_n that_o we_o have_v make_v they_o forget_v also_o the_o name_n of_o their_o idol_n in_o deed_n that_o which_o bristol_n tell_v i_o be_v of_o great_a weight_n and_o therefore_o i_o be_o belike_o to_o blame_v to_o weigh_v it_o no_o more_o but_o as_o bare_a word_n without_o matter_n and_o wind_n without_o reason_n or_o authority_n otherwise_o i_o think_v i_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o papist_n have_v convert_v few_o nation_n from_o paganism_n and_o they_o who_o they_o have_v turn_v they_o have_v rather_o change_v the_o idol_n then_o take_v away_o the_o idolatry_n or_o rather_o the_o very_a name_n than_o the_o idol_n themselves_o see_v there_o be_v never_o a_o idol_n almost_o among_o the_o gentile_n but_o they_o retain_v the_o idolatry_n under_o the_o name_n of_o one_o saint_n or_o other_o they_o have_v castor_n and_o pollux_n you_o have_v loy_n and_o george_n they_o have_v februa_n or_o febris_n you_o have_v fiacre_n that_o which_o juno_n lucina_n be_v to_o their_o woman_n the_o virgin_n marie_n be_v to_o you_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o 19_o demand_n of_o king_n and_o emperor_n bristol_n say_v that_o although_o i_o challenge_v the_o king_n of_o the_o first_o 600_o year_n to_o be_v of_o our_o religion_n yet_o i_o bring_v no_o proof_n at_o all_o as_o though_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n receive_v in_o that_o time_n which_o we_o hold_v be_v no_o proof_n at_o all_o but_o i_o ãâã_d not_o answer_v so_o much_o as_o that_o allen_n allege_v ââwe_v constantinus_n receive_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o priest_n ãâã_d at_o nice_a as_o pronounce_v of_o god_n what_o need_v any_o ãâ¦ã_o be_v to_o this_o we_o honour_n it_o likewise_o but_o bristol_n such_o i_o confess_v there_o be_v prayer_n for_o his_o soul_n according_a ãâã_d the_o error_n of_o his_o time_n and_o he_o add_v that_o there_o be_v ãâã_d for_o his_o soul_n with_o intercession_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o ãâ¦ã_o ose_v honour_v it_o be_v offer_v at_o their_o relic_n and_o their_o ââmple_n and_o all_o by_o procurement_n of_o constantinus_n himself_o euseb._n in_o vita_fw-la const._n lib_n 4._o cap._n 58._o 59_o 60._o 66._o 71._o first_o cap._n 58._o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o that_o constantine_n build_v a_o church_n which_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o apostle_n cap._n 59_o follow_v the_o description_n of_o the_o same_o church_n and_o his_o intent_n that_o the_o memory_n of_o christ_n apostle_n by_o that_o sumptuous_a building_n shall_v be_v continue_v always_o among_o all_o nation_n cap._n 60._o his_o purpose_n be_v show_v that_o he_o be_v bury_v there_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o prayer_n that_o shall_v be_v there_o make_v in_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o apostle_n mean_v the_o prayer_n make_v to_o god_n which_o many_o move_v by_o devotion_n of_o that_o glorious_a memory_n of_o the_o apostle_n shall_v make_v cap._n 66._o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o description_n of_o a_o magnificent_a funeral_n pomp_n prepare_v cap._n 71._o be_v those_o prayer_n which_o the_o people_n make_v for_o his_o soul_n that_o i_o speak_v of_o and_o beside_o that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d etc._n etc._n the_o tomb_n of_o the_o thrice_o happy_a soul_n beautify_v with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o adjoin_v to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o make_v worthy_a of_o the_o divine_a ceremony_n and_o mystical_a liturgy_n or_o service_n and_o injoin_v the_o communion_n of_o holy_a prayer_n but_o of_o sacrifice_n for_o his_o soul_n with_o the_o
sacrifice_n and_o sacrificer_n the_o other_o be_v offer_v continual_o the_o sacrificer_n live_v as_o for_o his_o rule_n to_o know_v proper_a and_o unproper_a speech_n let_v he_o try_v to_o teach_v his_o pupil_n when_o i_o be_o dispose_v to_o learn_v i_o will_v choose_v a_o better_a learned_a teacher_n but_o now_o he_o come_v to_o answer_v objection_n first_o i_o say_v the_o bring_v forth_o of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v no_o part_n of_o melchisedeks_n priesthood_n see_v the_o apostle_n compare_v he_o with_o christ_n in_o all_o thing_n in_o which_o he_o be_v comparable_a never_o teach_v it_o as_o any_o part_n of_o his_o priesthood_n this_o argument_n bristol_n make_v to_o be_v of_o one_o place_n of_o scripture_n negative_o not_o considete_v it_o be_v the_o only_a place_n where_o such_o comparison_n be_v make_v and_o that_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o think_v the_o apostle_n will_v omit_v so_o principal_a a_o part_n of_o melchisedeks_n and_o christ_n priesthood_n but_o bristol_n will_v examine_v the_o text_n first_o their_o vulgar_a translation_n begin_n at_o proferens_fw-la both_o gelding_n the_o text_n &_o false_o translate_n at_o verò_fw-la melchisedek_n rex_fw-la salem_n proferens_fw-la panem_fw-la &_o vinum_fw-la erat_fw-la enim_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la dei_fw-la altissimi_fw-la benedixit_fw-la ei_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o true_o melchisedek_n king_n of_o salem_n bring_v forth_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o he_o be_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o high_a god_n bless_v he_o say_v what_o do_v this_o context_n help_v he_o which_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o he_o bless_v he_o because_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n bristol_n fraudulent_o omit_v the_o parenthesis_n and_o in_o translation_n change_v the_o participle_n into_o the_o verb_n but_o in_o the_o hebrew_n if_o we_o believe_v bristol_n the_o point_v declare_v that_o also_o the_o rabbin_n themselves_o take_v it_o in_o the_o same_o sort_n what_o a_o great_a rabbine_n be_v bristol_n sudden_o grow_v to_o be_v since_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o oxford_n but_o what_o point_v shall_v declare_v this_o he_o show_v not_o neither_o can_v i_o guess_v the_o text_n be_v and_o melchisedek_n king_n of_o salem_n bring_v forth_o bread_n and_o wine_n there_o be_v the_o middle_n of_o the_o verse_n than_o it_o follow_v and_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n of_o the_o high_a god_n there_o be_v the_o end_n than_o it_o follow_v and_o he_o bless_v he_o etc._n etc._n in_o deed_n rabbi_n solomon_n but_o not_o in_o respect_n of_o any_o point_v say_v of_o the_o bring_v forth_o of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o a_o true_a exposition_n first_o that_o it_o be_v usual_a to_o do_v so_o to_o man_n that_o be_v weary_v in_o war_n also_o that_o thereby_o he_o show_v that_o he_o be_v not_o offend_v with_o he_o for_o kill_v of_o his_o child_n for_o he_o take_v melchisedek_n to_o be_v sem_fw-mi the_o middle_a son_n of_o noach_n second_o for_o a_o mideash_n or_o vain_a exposition_n that_o it_o be_v to_o signify_v the_o minchoth_n and_o nesecuth_n the_o meat_n offering_n and_o the_o drink_v offering_n which_o his_o child_n or_o posterity_n shall_v offer_v in_o that_o place_n not_o that_o melchisedek_n in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n do_v bring_v forth_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o all_o the_o father_n do_v agree_v in_o this_o similitude_n of_o melchisedeches_n priesthood_n with_o christ_n i_o know_v that_o many_o do_v so_o but_o one_o apostle_n be_v of_o great_a authority_n than_o they_o all_o yet_o none_o of_o they_o all_o speak_v of_o a_o priesthood_n to_o offer_v up_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n in_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a matter_n in_o question_n but_o if_o melchisedek_n be_v a_o priest_n bristol_n will_v ask_v i_o what_o be_v his_o sacrifice_n if_o it_o be_v not_o bread_n and_o wine_n see_v none_o other_o be_v mention_v for_o my_o part_n i_o be_o not_o ashamed_a to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o that_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v not_o reveil_v sure_o i_o be_o if_o bread_n and_o wine_n have_v be_v his_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n also_o the_o apostle_n will_v not_o have_v omit_v it_o which_o compare_v much_o smale_a matter_n in_o he_o with_o christ_n then_o that_o where_o i_o say_v it_o be_v horrible_a blasphemy_n to_o challenge_v the_o priesthood_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedek_n which_o be_v singular_a to_o christ_n psalm_n 110._o and_o heb._n 7._o bristol_n ask_v if_o the_o scripture_n say_v not_o that_o there_o be_v one_o baptizer_n which_o be_v christ_n and_o yet_o all_o be_v not_o blasphemer_n that_o be_v baptiser_n i_o answer_v if_o any_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o baptise_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o fire_n he_o be_v a_o horrible_a blasphemer_n but_o to_o baptise_v with_o water_n that_o be_v to_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o outward_a sacrament_n in_o which_o only_a christ_n baptise_v inward_o christ_n have_v call_v all_o those_o minister_n of_o his_o word_n and_o sacrament_n show_v you_o the_o like_o call_v for_o your_o blasphemous_a priesthood_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedek_n or_o else_o your_o example_n of_o baptiser_n will_v not_o discharge_v you_o of_o horrible_a blasphemy_n but_o you_o have_v another_o docterlike_a argument_n when_o you_o have_v scoff_v out_o my_o poor_a doctershippe_n be_v not_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o old_a time_n the_o minister_n of_o aaron_n but_z aaron_z himself_o be_v priest_n only_o in_o his_o own_o time_n and_o after_o he_o every_o one_o in_o his_o time_n be_v priest_n as_o well_o as_o he_o and_o therefore_o in_o that_o law_n be_v many_o priest_n he_o ask_v the_o question_n as_o though_o it_o be_v out_o of_o question_n be_v not_o all_o etc._n etc._n o_o famous_a and_o illuminate_v doctor_n where_o do_v your_o doctors_n hood_n learn_v that_o all_o the_o high_a priest_n successive_o whereof_o every_o one_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n as_o much_o as_o aaron_n be_v minister_n of_o aaron_n for_o you_o speak_v of_o high_a priest_n or_o else_o what_o mean_v you_o to_o say_v that_o aaron_n himself_o be_v priest_n only_o in_o his_o own_o time_n for_o all_o his_o son_n be_v priest_n although_o he_o only_o the_o high_a priest_n in_o his_o time_n upon_o this_o strong_a foundation_n you_o build_v a_o similitude_n and_o dissimilitude_n so_o that_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v like_a to_o england_n since_o the_o conquest_n have_v successive_o many_o king_n but_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v like_a to_o england_n dudure_v the_o time_n of_o one_o king_n who_o be_v but_o one_o yet_o have_v many_o minister_n as_o one_o may_v say_v so_o many_o ministerial_a king_n you_o show_v learning_n enough_o in_o this_o similitude_n and_o dissimilitude_n to_o make_v you_o a_o doctor_n after_o the_o pope_n order_n but_o let_v we_o under_o correction_n of_o your_o doctor_n hood_n examine_v your_o comparison_n the_o old_a testament_n be_v like_o england_n since_o the_o conquest_n have_v successive_o many_o king_n have_v not_o every_o of_o those_o king_n many_o minister_n under_o they_o and_o every_o aaronicall_a priest_n have_v also_o many_o priest_n and_o levite_n under_o he_o and_o be_v not_o christ_n head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o several_a time_n of_o every_o the_o high_a priest_n wherefore_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v as_o like_v to_o england_n during_o the_o time_n of_o one_o king_n as_o the_o new_a in_o those_o point_n but_o the_o difference_n be_v this_o that_o the_o figurative_a high_a priest_n be_v many_o because_o they_o can_v not_o continue_v but_o by_o death_n be_v always_o change_v christ_n be_v a_o everlasting_a priest_n have_v a_o priesthood_n that_o descend_v not_o by_o succession_n so_o that_o although_o he_o have_v many_o minister_n yet_o he_o only_o have_v the_o everlasting_a priesthood_n which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedek_n heb._n 7._o as_o for_o your_o term_n of_o ministerial_a king_n how_o well_o it_o agree_v to_o your_o shave_a crown_n i_o will_v not_o stand_v here_o to_o discuss_v my_o three_o argument_n as_o bristol_n call_v it_o be_v this_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n cap._n 10._o teach_v we_o that_o christ_n offer_v but_o one_o sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o that_o but_o once_o cap._n 9_o have_v make_v perfect_a for_o ever_o those_o that_o be_v sanctify_v that_o our_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o by_o that_o sacrifice_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o more_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n leave_v to_o this_o brisâowe_n answer_v that_o i_o do_v not_o understand_v what_o the_o apostle_n mean_v by_o those_o that_o be_v sanctify_v by_o their_o make_n perfect_a by_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n the_o sanctify_a be_v only_o the_o new_a baptize_v by_o his_o judgement_n for_o which_o he_o quote_v 1._o cor_fw-la 6._o where_o the_o apostle_n say_v but_o now_o you_o be_v wash_v you_o
be_v sanctify_v you_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o god_n by_o which_o he_o plain_o show_v that_o although_o they_o be_v baptize_v long_o before_o and_o have_v commit_v many_o sin_n sithence_o their_o baptism_n yet_o the_o cleanness_n of_o their_o wash_n the_o holiness_n of_o their_o sanctification_n the_o righteousness_n of_o their_o justification_n they_o retain_v still_o and_o therefore_o exhort_v they_o to_o keep_v it_o to_o the_o end_n so_o that_o while_n bristol_n as_o he_o do_v always_o charge_v i_o with_o ignorance_n not_o know_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o their_o make_n perfect_a he_o incur_v great_a forgetfulness_n even_o of_o the_o apostles_n word_n where_o he_o expound_v which_o be_v not_o only_o he_o have_v make_v perfect_a but_o he_o have_v make_v perfect_a for_o ever_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v so_o that_o if_o sanctification_n be_v restrain_v to_o baptism_n which_o no_o logic_n can_v prove_v yet_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o which_o be_v sanctify_v by_o christ_n death_n in_o baptism_n be_v make_v perfect_a not_o for_o a_o moment_n as_o these_o obstinate_a blind_a papist_n teach_v from_o which_o perfection_n they_o fall_v immediate_o and_o must_v recover_v it_o by_o mass_n and_o as_o bristol_n say_v by_o penance_n etc._n etc._n but_o christ_n by_o that_o one_o sacrifice_n but_o once_o offer_v have_v make_v perfect_a for_o ever_o all_o those_o that_o be_v sanctify_v that_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o all_o that_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n be_v no_o more_o but_o to_o exhort_v the_o stand_n to_o perseverance_n as_o bristol_n in_o so_o many_o word_n affirm_v let_v he_o believe_v that_o can_v think_v the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o disputation_n for_o the_o abolish_n of_o all_o ceremony_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n to_o be_v idle_a and_o beside_o his_o purpose_n likewise_o that_o if_o they_o fall_v he_o tell_v they_o that_o christ_n death_n will_v not_o work_v in_o they_o a_o other_o baptism_n but_o remedy_n he_o tell_v they_o none_o very_o there_o be_v no_o remedy_n for_o they_o that_o make_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n of_o none_o effect_v unto_o themselve_v by_o a_o utter_a and_o universal_a fall_n from_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v a_o horrible_a slander_n of_o god_n spirit_n that_o he_o tell_v no_o remedy_n by_o repentance_n from_o particular_a faulle_n and_o daily_a offence_n when_o he_o show_v the_o perpetual_a cleanse_n of_o our_o conscience_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n hebrew_n 10._o verse_n 14._o and_o in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n he_o have_v many_o and_o earnest_a exhortation_n to_o repentance_n verse_n 1._o and_o 12._o show_v the_o necessity_n of_o god_n fatherly_a correction_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o repentance_n verse_n 5._o 6._o 7._o etc._n etc._n but_o i_o show_v great_a ignorance_n where_o i_o conclude_v that_o if_o the_o great_a part_n be_v leave_v to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n namely_o to_o take_v away_o all_o sin_n commit_v since_o baptism_n christ_n have_v not_o make_v they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v perfect_a for_o ever_o by_o a_o sacrifice_n once_o offer_v for_o all_o for_o papist_n divide_v not_o remission_n of_o a_o man_n sin_n between_o baptism_n and_o the_o mass_n no_o but_o you_o ascribe_v the_o whole_a in_o such_o sort_n to_o either_o of_o both_o that_o you_o divide_v the_o power_n of_o make_v perfect_a for_o ever_o from_o the_o only_o once_o offer_v sacrifice_n of_o christ._n but_o you_o think_v it_o be_v high_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o that_o one_o high_a priest_n to_o have_v many_o minister_n and_o many_o ministery_n as_o it_o be_v conduit_n to_o derive_v his_o purchase_n &_o his_o redemption_n to_o his_o people_n in_o deed_n if_o he_o have_v not_o one_o spirit_n that_o be_v of_o power_n to_o apply_v the_o grace_n of_o his_o redemption_n unto_o all_o his_o elect_a he_o have_v need_n of_o many_o conduit_n such_o as_o you_o speak_v of_o for_o which_o purpose_n he_o use_v not_o the_o ministry_n of_o man_n but_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o ministry_n of_o man_n be_v such_o as_o man_n can_v execute_v that_o be_v by_o the_o word_n audible_a and_o visible_a to_o speak_v to_o the_o ear_n and_o eye_n of_o man_n and_o be_v ââiâred_v up_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o commend_v the_o whole_a effect_n of_o his_o word_n to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o you_o think_v to_o avoid_v exclamation_n if_o you_o ascribe_v nothing_o to_o any_o man_n nor_o any_o thing_n but_o from_o that_o priest_n and_o from_o that_o sacrifice_n as_o though_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o you_o to_o take_v any_o thing_n from_o the_o priest_n and_o sacrifice_n and_o bestow_v it_o upon_o any_o man_n or_o thing_n without_o commission_n yea_o against_o commandment_n and_o against_o the_o excellency_n of_o perfection_n of_o that_o singular_a priest_n and_o singular_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v once_o offer_v need_n no_o more_o to_o be_v repeat_v the_o scripture_n thus_o examine_v he_o come_v to_o the_o doctor_n and_o first_o to_o augustine_n or_o rather_o fulgentius_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la ad_fw-la petrum_fw-la cap._n 19_o cite_v by_o i_o pur._n 316._o &_o 292._o to_o prove_v that_o the_o old_a doctor_n usinge_v the_o name_n of_o sacrifice_n mean_v not_o the_o popish_a sacrifice_n propitiatory_a of_o the_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o of_o christ_n because_o he_o call_v it_o sacrificium_fw-la panis_fw-la &_o vini_fw-la the_o sacrifice_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n bristol_n repli_v that_o he_o also_o call_v it_o the_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n wherein_o as_o it_o be_v cite_v by_o he_o so_o be_v it_o answer_v by_o i_o cap._n 6._o of_o this_o book_n second_o where_o he_o say_v in_o this_o sacrifice_n be_v thanksgiving_n &_o commemoration_n etc._n etc._n bristol_n repli_v that_o he_o say_v also_o that_o in_o this_o sacrifice_n be_v evident_o show_v what_o be_v give_v for_o we_o &_o he_o be_v announce_v already_o kill_v but_o because_o this_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n he_o compare_v it_o to_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o peter_n &_o paul_n commemorate_a upon_o their_o feast_n at_o rome_n evident_o show_v and_o announce_v by_o their_o very_a body_n and_o head_n there_o see_v and_o visit_v a_o new_a way_n to_o understand_v old_a doctor_n by_o practice_n of_o idolatrous_a juggle_n and_o feign_v of_o relic_n if_o these_o apostle_n by_o their_o body_n be_v whole_a at_o rome_n so_o many_o church_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n as_o have_v present_o or_o have_v have_v in_o time_n past_a relic_n of_o their_o bone_n be_v great_o deceive_v for_o notwithstanding_o that_o petres_n whole_a head_n be_v at_o rome_n his_o nether_a jaw_n with_o his_o beard_n be_v at_o poyter_v and_o many_o of_o both_o their_o bone_n at_o trier_n saint_n paul_n shoulder_n at_o argentina_n yea_o a_o piece_n of_o saint_n peter_n brain_n be_v at_o geneva_n where_o it_o be_v try_v to_o be_v a_o good_a pumice_n stone_n the_o second_o doctor_n be_v august_n de_fw-fr civi_fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 22._o cap._n 10._o saying_n the_o martyr_n be_v that_o body_n which_o be_v offer_v in_o sacrifice_n whereof_o i_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o his_o mystical_a body_n which_o be_v offer_v in_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n bristol_n answer_v that_o the_o mystical_a body_n be_v offer_v in_o the_o offering_n of_o the_o natuâll_a body_n but_o augustine_n never_o say_v that_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v offer_v but_o express_v what_o body_n be_v offer_v show_v that_o the_o mystical_a body_n be_v offer_v nevertheless_o bristol_n compare_v it_o to_o the_o oblation_n of_o christ_n natural_a body_n in_o offer_v whereof_o for_o his_o church_n he_o offer_v his_o church_n to_o god_n with_o it_o but_o how_o prove_v he_o that_o christ_n offer_v his_o church_n to_o god_n for_o a_o sacrifice_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o himself_o be_v propitiatory_a for_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o church_n which_o before_o he_o have_v purge_v by_o his_o sacrifice_n he_o can_v not_o offer_v as_o a_o clean_a and_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n the_o three_o doctor_n be_v tertullian_n which_o say_v that_o prayer_n be_v the_o great_a sacrifice_n that_o god_n have_v command_v bristol_n say_v that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o that_o prayer_n he_o comprehend_v all_o that_o be_v say_v and_o do_v in_o the_o mass_n which_o to_o this_o day_n the_o priest_n therefore_o begin_v say_v unto_o we_o after_o the_o gospel_n dominus_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la oremus_fw-la let_v we_o pray_v &_o immediate_o go_v to_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n etc._n etc._n you_o may_v think_v i_o jest_v they_o be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o bristol_n and_o his_o only_a answer_n yea_o but_o there_o be_v reason_n of_o this_o say_n because_o that_o pure_a
sacrifice_n be_v make_v &_o celebrate_v with_o prayer_n as_o hierom_n say_v by_o the_o priest_n prayer_n what_o be_v then_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n and_o because_o even_o the_o old_a house_n of_o those_o leviticall_a blood_n sacrifice_n also_o be_v domus_fw-la orationis_fw-la the_o house_n of_o prayer_n therefore_o the_o mass_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o prayer_n so_o be_v tertullian_n answer_v who_o will_v not_o wonder_v at_o this_o clearke_o answer_n for_o i_o think_v no_o man_n can_v understand_v of_o what_o reason_n it_o hold_v the_o last_o doctor_n be_v irenaeus_n say_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n libr._n 4._o cap._n 34._o the_o conscience_n of_o he_o that_o do_v offer_v be_v pure_a do_v sanctify_v the_o sacrifice_n and_o cause_v god_n to_o accept_v it_o as_o come_n from_o a_o friend_n the_o sacrifice_n do_v not_o sanctify_v a_o man_n for_o god_n have_v no_o need_n of_o sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n this_o can_v be_v verify_v of_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ._n bristol_n answer_v they_o say_v the_o same_o yea_o do_v bristol_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n you_o offer_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n yea_o do_v the_o conscience_n of_o the_o offerer_n sanctify_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n out_o upon_o thou_o filthy_a blasphemous_a dog_n if_o thou_o dare_v affirm_v it_o but_o bristol_n ask_v weather_n any_o heretic_n canpleade_v by_o their_o verdict_n that_o he_o please_v god_n in_o offer_v to_o he_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o though_o that_o be_v the_o question_n yea_o or_o also_o the_o body_n itself_o and_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o as_o all_o priest_n do_v in_o their_o caluinicall_a communion_n no_o less_o than_o we_o do_v in_o the_o mass_n what_o news_n be_v this_o do_v all_o priest_n in_o the_o caluinicall_a communion_n offer_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o much_o as_o you_o papi_v do_v in_o your_o mass_n i_o think_v even_o the_o same_o for_o none_o that_o communicate_v with_o caluine_n do_v at_o all_o offer_n christ_n natural_a body_n and_o blood_n and_o no_o more_o do_v you_o although_o arrogant_o and_o blasphemous_o you_o presume_v to_o do_v it_o in_o the_o 25._o demand_n of_o monk_n where_o i_o say_v the_o old_a monk_n be_v nothing_o but_o college_n of_o student_n bristol_n say_v in_o overthtow_v of_o popish_a abbey_n in_o which_o be_v nothing_o almost_o but_o ignorance_n and_o filthme_n and_o idolatry_n we_o have_v spoil_v the_o church_n of_o god_n of_o great_a utility_n but_o he_o say_v further_a they_o be_v votary_n and_o so_o they_o be_v not_o in_o college_n of_o student_n their_o vow_n be_v not_o such_o that_o can_v make_v they_o other_o then_o student_n they_o vow_v to_o serve_v god_n upright_o and_o his_o church_n when_o they_o be_v call_v and_o they_o in_o college_n which_o have_v once_o promise_v the_o same_o forsake_v this_o holy_a purpose_n have_v small_a commendation_n among_o student_n i_o know_v in_o time_n superstition_n prevail_v and_o that_o which_o first_o be_v free_a at_o last_o become_v coact_v and_o that_o which_o be_v of_o conveencie_n be_v think_v of_o necessity_n even_o as_o true_a religion_n decline_v and_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n at_o length_n degenerate_v into_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n in_o the_o 27._o demand_n of_o counsel_n where_o i_o prove_v that_o counsel_n may_v err_v first_o by_o the_o prayer_n usual_o say_v after_o the_o end_n of_o every_o general_a council_n bristol_n say_v the_o prayer_n be_v not_o in_o respect_n for_o any_o false_a decree_n or_o beleeving_n of_o their_o whole_a body_n but_o by_o reason_n of_o certain_a ignorances_n and_n frailty_n of_o their_o member_n when_o in_o the_o prayer_n they_o express_o declare_v their_o fear_n lest_o ignorance_n have_v drive_v they_o into_o error_n which_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o none_o other_o common_a error_n of_o this_o life_n but_o of_o their_o error_n in_o decree_n see_v the_o prayer_n be_v appropriate_a unto_o the_o council_n and_o that_o the_o word_n go_v before_o &_o after_o do_v manifest_o declare_v te_fw-la in_o nostris_fw-la principiis_fw-la etc._n etc._n thou_o in_o our_o beginning_n we_o require_v a_o assister_n thou_o also_o in_o this_o end_n of_o our_o judgement_n or_o decree_n we_o desire_v to_o be_v present_a a_o pardoner_n for_o our_o fault_n that_o be_v that_o thou_o will_v spare_v our_o ignorance_n and_o pardon_v our_o error_n that_o to_o our_o perfect_a desire_n thou_o will_v grant_v a_o perfect_a efficacy_n of_o work_n and_o because_o our_o conscience_n accuse_v we_o we_o do_v faint_a for_o fear_n lest_o either_o ignorance_n have_v draw_v we_o into_o error_n or_o rashness_n of_o will_n perhaps_o have_v drive_v we_o to_o decline_v from_o justice_n therefore_o we_o desire_v thou_o &_o we_o pray_v thou_o that_o if_o we_o have_v draw_v unto_o we_o any_o offence_n in_o the_o celebrity_n of_o this_o council_n thou_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o pardon_v it_o and_o to_o make_v it_o remissible_a who_o will_v pray_v thus_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a council_n which_o he_o think_v can_v not_o possible_o fall_v into_o any_o error_n that_o i_o allege_v out_o of_o augustine_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la contra_fw-la donat._n libr._n 2._o cap._n 3._o that_o general_a counsel_n be_v and_o may_v be_v reform_v the_o late_a by_o the_o former_a bristol_n understand_v of_o counsel_n not_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n which_o may_v be_v reform_v even_o by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a alone_o that_o be_v a_o point_n more_o then_o s._n augustine_n see_v but_o how_o can_v they_o be_v call_v plenaria_fw-la concilia_fw-la full_a and_o whole_a counsel_n where_o lack_v any_o necessary_a confirmation_n this_o be_v a_o shameless_a elude_n of_o the_o doctor_n say_n for_o first_o augustine_n include_v all_o catholic_a bishop_n in_o possibility_n of_o err_v in_o doctrine_n not_o except_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o provincial_a &_o last_o of_o all_o general_a counsel_n only_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v amend_v as_o that_o which_o have_v no_o error_n in_o it_o where_o i_o say_v the_o counsel_n be_v receive_v because_o they_o decree_v true_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o the_o truth_n receive_v because_o it_o be_v decree_v in_o counsel_n bristol_n say_v i_o may_v as_o well_o say_v the_o scripture_n be_v receive_v because_o they_o be_v write_v true_o and_o not_o the_o truth_n receive_v because_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o i_o say_v the_o comparison_n be_v not_o like_a for_o truth_n be_v not_o so_o necessary_o bind_v unto_o general_a counsel_n as_o it_o be_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o both_o the_o scripture_n be_v receive_v because_o they_o be_v write_v true_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v receive_v because_o it_o be_v know_v by_o the_o scripture_n it_o follow_v not_o so_o of_o counsel_n that_o what_o soever_o they_o have_v decree_v be_v truth_n although_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v confirm_v they_o leo_fw-la bishop_n of_o rome_n confirm_v the_o 6._o of_o constantinople_n which_o condemn_v pope_n honorius_n his_o predecessor_n for_o a_o heretic_n who_o you_o hold_v can_v err_v in_o doctrine_n which_o be_v a_o argument_n sufficient_a to_o strangle_v any_o papist_n in_o either_o of_o these_o two_o blasphemous_a assertion_n the_o pope_n can_v err_v the_o general_a council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v in_o the_o 28._o demand_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a where_o i_o bring_v the_o example_n of_o victor_n bishop_n of_o rome_n withstand_v by_o irenaeus_n and_o polycrates_n when_o he_o go_v about_o to_o usurp_v authority_n over_o other_o church_n in_o excommunicate_v all_o the_o church_n in_o asia_n and_o yet_o irenaeus_n and_o polycrates_n with_o other_o so_o reprove_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o heretic_n bristol_n babble_v about_o the_o cause_n of_o victor_n displeasure_n which_o be_v no_o matter_n in_o question_n say_v he_o usurp_v no_o authority_n nor_o be_v so_o charge_v but_o that_o his_o censure_n do_v seem_v to_o harp_n to_o s._n irenaeus_n as_o if_o the_o pope_n will_v now_o excommunicate_v all_o they_o that_o will_v not_o receive_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n it_o will_v seem_v likewise_o to_o many_o who_o confess_v he_o have_v authority_n over_o al._n but_o none_o of_o these_o bishop_n that_o withstand_v victor_n confess_v that_o he_o have_v authority_n over_o they_o or_o that_o he_o can_v not_o err_v but_o contrariwise_o polycrates_n charge_v he_o with_o usurpation_n where_o he_o say_v he_o will_v not_o be_v trouble_v with_o his_o terrify_a censure_n see_v he_o follow_v as_o he_o think_v the_o scripture_n and_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n likewise_o eusebius_n say_v that_o victor_n be_v sharp_o reprove_v of_o many_o and_o namely_o of_o irenaeus_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o all_o the_o brethren_n of_o france_n who_o he_o govern_v yea_o he_o say_v express_o that_o victor_n
of_o scripture_n as_o i_o bring_v to_o prove_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v irremissible_a first_o the_o place_n of_o 1._o john_n 5._o he_o say_v be_v mean_v of_o they_o that_o be_v dead_a and_o damn_a in_o hell_n as_o he_o have_v teach_v we_o cap._n 8._o but_o because_o i_o refuse_v that_o interpretation_n as_o false_a and_o new_a he_o cit_v augustine_n in_o ret_n li._n 19_o cap._n 12._o who_o interpretation_n at_o the_o first_o be_v as_o i_o hold_v but_o afterward_o he_o add_v if_o he_o end_v his_o life_n in_o this_o perversitie_n for_o we_o must_v despair_v of_o no_o man_n be_v he_o never_o so_o wicked_a so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v in_o this_o life_n neither_o be_v prayer_n make_v unwise_o for_o he_o who_o be_v not_o despair_v of_o here_o be_v two_o contrary_a exposition_n of_o one_o man_n in_o which_o we_o must_v consider_v whether_o be_v more_o proper_a to_o the_o place_n and_o not_o whether_o better_o or_o last_v please_v the_o author_n of_o they_o that_o no_o man_n be_v to_o be_v despair_v of_o while_o he_o live_v as_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n so_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n which_o refuse_v to_o pray_v for_o julianus_n the_o apostata_fw-la and_o pray_v to_o god_n against_o he_o maris_n also_o the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n denounce_v he_o to_o his_o face_n to_o be_v impious_a and_o a_o apostata_fw-la and_o enemy_n of_o god_n socrat._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 10._o sozo_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 4._o the_o second_o text_n heb._n 6._o bristol_n expound_v it_o of_o fall_v through_o frailty_n in_o persecution_n of_o they_o which_o can_v not_o be_v renew_v by_o baptism_n but_o the_o apostle_n say_v express_o by_o repentance_n and_o therefore_o speak_v not_o of_o lapsion_n or_o fall_a but_o of_o prolapsion_n or_o fall_v clean_o away_o from_o christ_n with_o manifest_a contempt_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o redemption_n the_o terrible_a denunciation_n of_o christ_n against_o the_o obstinate_a and_o malicious_a pharisees_n matt._n 13._o mar._n 3._o bristol_n faith_n he_o speak_v it_o not_o to_o drive_v they_o to_o desperation_n but_o to_o move_v they_o to_o repentance_n what_o if_o that_o be_v grant_v that_o by_o show_v the_o danger_n of_o malicious_a obstinacy_n which_o grow_v to_o irremissible_a wickedness_n he_o shall_v admonish_v they_o to_o beware_v in_o time_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v heb._n 6._o do_v it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o no_o man_n sin_v irremissiblie_o while_o he_o live_v although_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n denounce_v their_o damnation_n as_o man_n so_o obdurate_a in_o their_o wickedness_n that_o nothing_o can_v reclay_v i_o they_o or_o bring_v they_o to_o repentance_n but_o bristol_n will_v make_v i_o contrary_a to_o myself_o who_o though_o in_o express_a word_n i_o count_v d._n allen_n &_o his_o fellow_n such_o as_o by_o you_o heb._n 6._o can_v repent_v yet_o do_v exhort_v they_o true_o to_o repent_v etc._n etc._n pur._n 461._o but_o how_o prove_v he_o that_o i_o count_v allen_n and_o his_o fellow_n such_o as_o can_v repent_v forsooth_o because_o i_o say_v they_o have_v sometime_o be_v lighten_v and_o taste_v of_o the_o good_a gift_n of_o god_n why_o sir_n be_v all_o such_o come_v to_o prolapsion_n i_o trow_v not_o in_o deed_n i_o admonish_v they_o be_v in_o the_o way_n of_o prolapsion_n that_o be_v curable_a whether_o allen_n be_v ever_o a_o protestant_n i_o know_v not_o but_o certain_a i_o be_o that_o some_o of_o his_o fellow_n have_v be_v lighten_v and_o be_v protestant_n of_o who_o i_o speak_v and_o not_o of_o he_o if_o i_o say_v bristol_n and_o his_o fellow_n which_o be_v lay-man_n do_v i_o say_v bristol_n be_v a_o lie_v man_n this_o wilful_a &_o malicious_a cavil_v bristol_n if_o you_o take_v not_o heed_n of_o it_o in_o time_n argue_v that_o you_o be_v fall_v very_o deep_a if_o you_o be_v not_o yet_o at_o the_o bottom_n of_o apostasy_n but_o this_o be_v a_o cunning_a comforter_n of_o they_o that_o be_v in_o desperation_n which_o affirm_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o otherwise_o say_v that_o such_o sin_n and_o blasphemy_n shall_v not_o be_v remit_v than_o he_o say_v that_o all_o other_o sin_n and_o blasphemy_n shall_v be_v remit_v and_o therefore_o many_o one_o yea_o and_o above_o all_o number_n may_v be_v and_o be_v forgive_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o mean_v because_o the_o condition_n of_o repentance_n be_v not_o express_v in_o they_o that_o be_v forgive_v but_o if_o that_o condition_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o they_o also_o that_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n what_o distinction_n be_v there_o for_o which_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o blasphemy_n and_o sin_n shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v neither_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v such_o a_o sinner_n have_v no_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o be_v guilty_a of_o eternal_a damnation_n for_o that_o none_o shall_v be_v forgive_v without_o repentance_n as_o every_o man_n know_v without_o that_o distinction_n but_o bristol_n will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v a_o extraordinary_a matter_n for_o god_n to_o forgive_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o he_o forgive_v one_o of_o those_o pharisee_n and_o he_o the_o very_o worst_a of_o they_o all_o namely_o s._n paul_n who_o have_v be_v indeed_o a_o pharisee_n as_o he_o confess_v act._n 23._o &_o 26._o but_o none_o of_o those_o pharisee_n for_o he_o know_v not_o christ_n in_o the_o flesh_n 2._o cor_fw-la 5._o yea_o he_o have_v be_v a_o persecuter_n and_o a_o blasphemer_n as_o he_o confess_v 1._o tim_n 1._o but_o not_o the_o worst_a of_o all_o pharesee_n for_o he_o be_v a_o elect_a vessel_n of_o god_n and_o his_o persecution_n and_o blasphemy_n be_v not_o of_o malice_n or_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o of_o ignorance_n and_o blind_a zeal_n of_o god_n for_o he_o add_v immediate_o but_o i_o obtain_v mercy_n because_o i_o do_v it_o ignorant_o in_o unbelief_n as_o for_o those_o pharisee_n against_o who_o our_o saviour_n christ_n thunder_v that_o judgement_n do_v blaspheme_v the_o holy_a ghost_n against_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o knowledge_n malicious_o attribute_v unto_o the_o devil_n that_o which_o they_o know_v to_o be_v the_o finger_n of_o god_n that_o which_o i_o speak_v out_o of_o samuel_n jeremie_n and_o ezekiel_n bristol_n say_v be_v all_o speak_v in_o one_o sense_n of_o temporal_a matter_n to_o wit_n of_o cast_v saul_n from_o his_o kingdom_n and_o the_o jew_n into_o captivity_n but_o except_o the_o person_n have_v be_v incurable_a god_n will_v have_v be_v entreat_v to_o give_v they_o repentance_n &_o to_o have_v continue_v saul_n in_o his_o kingdom_n and_o the_o people_n in_o their_o country_n the_o rule_n that_o ezechiel_n 33._o be_v understand_v of_o sin_n that_o be_v not_o against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o example_n do_v plain_o declare_v the_o 8._o point_n be_v that_o strange_a interpretation_n of_o the_o creed_n aâ_n he_o call_v it_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n to_o redeem_v we_o out_o of_o hell_n by_o suffer_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n heb._n 5._o first_o bristol_n say_v there_o be_v never_o a_o word_n of_o that_o article_n and_o much_o less_o of_o the_o interpretation_n thereof_o in_o that_o chapter_n yet_o after_o to_o prove_v that_o to_o be_v prayer_n which_o i_o say_v be_v a_o complaint_n as_o though_o it_o may_v not_o be_v be_v a_o complain_v prayer_n he_o cit_v the_o 7._o verse_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n of_o christ_n who_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n with_o a_o mighty_a cry_n and_o with_o tear_n offer_v up_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n to_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o save_v he_o out_o of_o death_n and_o be_v hear_v from_o his_o fear_n or_o from_o that_o he_o fear_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d but_o by_o this_o text_n bristol_n will_v prove_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o forsake_v of_o his_o father_n no_o not_o corporal_o although_o he_o complain_v that_o he_o be_v forsake_v as_o though_o his_o lamentable_a complaint_n hadbeene_v more_o than_o need_v when_o he_o say_v my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o which_o to_o he_o that_o be_v god_n be_v great_a torment_n of_o hell_n than_o any_o heart_n of_o man_n can_v conceive_v and_o therefore_o bristol_n which_o make_v all_o to_o stand_v in_o the_o bodily_a death_n of_o christ_n and_o rail_v at_o caluine_n for_o show_v how_o necessary_a it_o be_v for_o christ_n to_o suffer_v in_o soul_n as_o much_o as_o in_o body_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o whole_a man_n do_v nothing_o but_o cavil_v &_o slander_v one_o while_o feign_v that_o caluine_n shall_v make_v two_o death_n of_o christ_n another_o while_n that_o he_o be_v in_o fear_n lest_o he_o shall_v have_v
gardener_n &_o other_o challenge_v theodoret_n &_o gelasius_n again_o he_o say_v the_o father_n be_v against_o the_o protestant_n because_o they_o excuse_v hilary_n chrysost._n cyrill_n by_o the_o figure_n of_o hyperbole_n which_o be_v a_o rhetorical_a lie_n but_o in_o deed_n this_o argument_n be_v a_o lewd_a lie_n of_o one_o which_o know_v neither_o logic_n nor_o rhetoric_n but_o like_o a_o young_a smatterer_n or_o a_o sophistical_a caviller_n for_o the_o figure_n of_o hyperbole_n be_v not_o a_o lie_n more_o than_o any_o other_o figure_n of_o rhetoric_n in_o the_o true_a understanding_n thereof_o whereas_o after_o wrong_a understanding_n even_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v without_o all_o figure_n be_v false_a and_o untrue_a final_o whereas_o he_o charge_v we_o to_o deny_v the_o work_n of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n dionysius_n ignatius_n polycarpus_n abdias_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v a_o loud_a lie_n shadow_v neither_o with_o rhetoric_n nor_o reason_n for_o we_o deny_v not_o the_o work_n of_o those_o father_n but_o we_o refuse_v counterfeit_a work_n false_o ascribe_v to_o they_o which_o thing_n if_o we_o prove_v not_o by_o manifest_a demonstration_n we_o require_v no_o credit_n as_o for_o that_o which_o he_o cavil_v against_o master_n nowell_n i_o omit_v as_o be_v confute_v by_o master_n nowell_n himself_o but_o where_o he_o say_v the_o scripture_n will_v never_o abide_v he_o that_o shall_v say_v this_o be_v not_o my_o body_n i_o answer_v we_o never_o say_v this_o be_v not_o christ_n body_n after_o any_o manner_n but_o this_o be_v not_o his_o body_n after_o a_o gross_a carnal_a or_o natural_a manner_n and_o that_o say_v the_o scripture_n will_v abide_v even_o as_o well_o as_o this_o the_o rock_n be_v not_o christ_n natural_o substantial_o or_o essential_o although_o the_o scripture_n say_v the_o rock_n be_v christ._n or_o this_o christ_n be_v not_o a_o vine_n proper_o natural_o or_o substantial_o notwithstanding_o that_o he_o say_v i_o be_o a_o very_a or_o true_a vine_n the_o proud_a brag_n which_o saunder_n make_v that_o popish_a catholic_n lack_v no_o scripture_n for_o any_o of_o their_o assertion_n how_o true_a it_o be_v let_v all_o man_n judge_v see_v that_o for_o many_o thing_n they_o confess_v they_o have_v nothing_o to_o show_v but_o tradition_n unwritten_a likewise_o how_o apt_o in_o this_o controversy_n of_o the_o supper_n he_o have_v examine_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n supper_n note_v the_o circumstance_n of_o thing_n do_v and_o say_v there_o confer_v the_o scripture_n of_o both_o the_o testament_n and_o join_v the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o yet_o he_o favour_v himself_o so_o much_o in_o his_o do_v that_o he_o bold_o affirm_v we_o to_o have_v no_o help_n of_o those_o thing_n for_o scripture_n we_o can_v confer_v to_o make_v the_o word_n of_o the_o supper_n plain_a because_o do_v and_o the_o word_n thereof_o be_v more_o plain_a than_o any_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n concern_v it_o as_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n be_v more_o plain_n than_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n etc._n etc._n if_o this_o be_v true_a the_o apostle_n labour_v in_o vain_a to_o prove_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n out_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v needless_a and_o uncertain_a instruction_n if_o the_o history_n of_o the_o passion_n do_v teach_v all_o the_o doctrine_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v concern_v it_o but_o it_o be_v a_o clerkly_o conclusion_n of_o saunder_n that_o if_o the_o word_n of_o the_o supper_n be_v figurative_a none_o other_o can_v be_v plain_a as_o though_o figurative_a speech_n can_v be_v plain_a when_o they_o be_v use_v for_o playnesse_n sake_n of_o they_o that_o know_v how_o to_o use_v they_o and_o because_o saunder_n charge_v we_o tell_v i_o master_n &c_n &c_n i_o say_v likewise_o tell_v i_o master_n be_v these_o word_n record_v to_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o institution_n &_o action_n of_o the_o supper_n this_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n tell_v i_o i_o say_v be_v these_o the_o very_a word_n which_o christ_n then_o speak_v or_o the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o if_o they_o be_v the_o very_a word_n which_o of_o you_o will_v say_v they_o be_v not_o figarative_a if_o they_o be_v the_o interpretation_n then_o be_v they_o more_o clear_a &_o plain_a than_o those_o word_n which_o he_o utter_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n now_o whether_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o the_o first_o 600._o year_n make_v for_o we_o as_o it_o have_v in_o many_o treatise_n so_o in_o this_o that_o follow_v it_o shall_v be_v show_v sufficient_o last_o of_o all_o it_o will_v appear_v both_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o external_a sense_n or_o natural_a reason_n be_v not_o the_o first_o argument_n that_o may_v move_v they_o that_o first_o depart_v from_o antichristianitie_n to_o the_o ancient_a &_o true_a understanding_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o supper_n of_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o christ_n we_o doubt_v no_o more_o then_o of_o his_o will_n reveil_v in_o scripture_n in_o which_o see_v we_o learn_v that_o christ_n concern_v his_o humanity_n be_v make_v like_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n except_o sin_v and_o that_o our_o body_n after_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v be_v make_v like_o to_o his_o glorious_a body_n heb._n 2_o for_o 17_o phil._n 3._o 21_o which_o see_v it_o can_v stand_v with_o transubstantiation_n we_o may_v not_o reason_n of_o his_o power_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v overthrow_v his_o wil._n for_o he_o be_v almighty_a to_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o will_v &_o not_o willing_a to_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o can_v but_o of_o the_o whole_a matter_n we_o shall_v entreat_v more_o at_o large_a as_o occasion_n be_v give_v in_o the_o book_n follow_v cap._n ii_o certain_a note_n about_o the_o use_n and_o translation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n saunder_n to_o be_v remember_v of_o he_o that_o shall_v read_v this_o book_n saunder_n prosess_v that_o he_o follow_v most_o the_o vulgar_a fulke_n latin_a translation_n and_o lest_o the_o english_a bible_n because_o it_o almost_o never_o translate_v any_o text_n well_o whereof_o any_o controversy_n be_v in_o these_o our_o day_n take_v in_o hand_n to_o prove_v many_o falsification_n and_o wrong_a translation_n in_o the_o only_a matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n the_o first_o be_v john_n the_o 6._o ver_fw-la 27._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d operamini_fw-la cibum_fw-la permanentem_fw-la the_o true_a english_a be_v work_v the_o meat_n which_o carry_v the_o english_a bible_n turn_v operamini_fw-la labour_n for_o we_o labour_v say_v he_o for_o that_o which_o we_o seek_v and_o ãâã_d not_o we_o work_v that_o stuff_n which_o be_v present_a with_o us._n this_o corruption_n the_o sacramentary_n have_v use_v because_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o meat_n which_o tarry_v to_o be_v make_v real_o present_a so_o that_o we_o may_v work_v it_o by_o faith_n and_o body_n this_o final_a cause_n be_v false_o allege_v for_o we_o believe_v the_o meat_n that_o tarry_v unto_o eternal_a life_n to_o be_v make_v real_o present_a by_o faith_n to_o they_o that_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n worthy_o contrariwise_o the_o papist_n hold_v that_o the_o same_o meat_n be_v receive_v where_o it_o tarry_v not_o unto_o etetnall_a life_n namely_o in_o the_o wicked_a and_o concern_v the_o corruption_n pretend_v it_o be_v false_a which_o saunder_n say_v that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d signify_v always_o to_o work_v that_o which_o be_v present_a and_o not_o to_o labour_v or_o seek_v for_o that_o which_o be_v absent_a for_o saint_n paul_n write_v 2._o thessa._n 3._o ver_fw-la 10._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d si_fw-mi quis_fw-la non_fw-la vult_fw-la operarâ_n if_o any_o man_n will_v not_o labour_v neither_o let_v he_o eat_v every_o man_n can_v work_v that_o stuff_n which_o be_v present_a as_o in_o sanders_n example_n of_o a_o carpenter_n work_v a_o piece_n of_o timber_n therefore_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d signify_v to_o labour_v general_o either_o in_o seek_v that_o which_o be_v absent_a or_o in_o work_v that_o which_o be_v present_a wherefore_o this_o be_v a_o doltish_a distinction_n of_o doctor_n saunder_n and_o a_o manifest_a corruption_n of_o the_o text_n by_o leave_v out_o such_o word_n as_o show_v the_o vanity_n of_o this_o cavil_n and_o overthrow_v the_o difference_n of_o this_o distinction_n for_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v these_o speak_v to_o the_o jew_n which_o seek_v he_o be_v absent_a not_o because_o they_o see_v his_o miracle_n but_o because_o they_o have_v be_v fill_v with_o his_o bread_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d labour_n you_o not_o for_o the_o meat_n which_o perish_v but_o for_o the_o
meat_n which_o abide_v unto_o eternal_a life_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v but_o once_o set_v down_o which_o must_v be_v refer_v as_o well_o to_o the_o meat_n which_o perish_v as_o to_o the_o meat_n which_o tarry_v but_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o meat_n which_o perish_v it_o can_v be_v turn_v work_v not_o the_o mere_n which_o perish_v as_o stuff_n that_o be_v present_a but_o labour_n not_o or_o seek_v not_o for_o it_o as_o you_o do_v which_o be_v absent_a therefore_o it_o must_v be_v so_o turn_v as_o it_o may_v serve_v for_o both_o and_o where_o as_o saunder_n say_v that_o this_o meat_n be_v not_o labour_v for_o because_o it_o be_v not_o seek_v out_o by_o our_o diligence_n but_o give_v by_o christ_n it_o be_v a_o fond_a reason_n except_o you_o will_v say_v that_o we_o must_v not_o labour_v for_o any_o good_a thing_n because_o all_o good_a thing_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n final_o that_o you_o may_v see_v what_o a_o singular_a quarrel_v &_o vain_a glorious_a person_n he_o be_v to_o seek_v a_o knot_n in_o a_o rush_n you_o shall_v understande_v that_o the_o papi_v themselves_o translate_v this_o place_n even_o as_o the_o great_a bible_n do_v namely_o heskin_n as_o well_o learned_a a_o papist_n as_o saunder_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 2._o of_o his_o popish_a parliament_n the_o second_o text_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v falsify_v be_v ver_fw-la 57_o of_o the_o same_o chapter_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d qui_fw-la manducat_fw-la i_o &_o ipse_fw-la vivet_fw-la propter_fw-la i_o the_o true_a english_a be_v he_o that_o eat_v i_o he_o shall_v also_o live_v for_o i_o the_o english_a bible_n read_v he_o that_o eat_v i_o shall_v live_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o i_o the_o best_a colour_n of_o his_o cavil_v be_v that_o propter_fw-la patrem_fw-la be_v translate_v in_o the_o same_o ver_fw-la for_o the_o father_n howbeit_o see_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d or_o propter_fw-la signify_v the_o efficient_a cause_n there_o be_v no_o fraud_n in_o turn_v it_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o i_o which_o be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v mean_v by_o for_o i_o and_o as_o i_o think_v be_v so_o turn_v by_o the_o translator_n to_o show_v that_o for_o the_o father_n include_v not_o the_o final_a cause_n as_o it_o may_v seem_v but_o the_o eternal_a efficient_a cause_n of_o life_n as_o for_o the_o cavillation_n that_o a_o man_n may_v live_v by_o mean_n of_o he_o which_o be_v absent_a be_v altogether_o childish_a and_o ridiculous_a for_o who_o can_v understande_v he_o to_o be_v absent_a which_o be_v eat_v the_o controversy_n be_v not_o of_o the_o presence_n but_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o presence_n but_o how_o can_v the_o papist_n digest_v this_o say_n of_o christ_n he_o that_o eat_v i_o shall_v live_v by_o i_o or_o for_o i_o when_o they_o affirm_v that_o wicked_a man_n eat_v he_o which_o live_v not_o by_o he_o for_o this_o be_v general_o true_a of_o all_o that_o eat_v he_o and_o not_o to_o be_v restrain_v to_o they_o that_o eat_v he_o worthy_o for_o the_o sacrament_n in_o deed_n may_v be_v eat_v unworthy_o but_o christ_n himself_o be_v not_o eat_v but_o where_o he_o give_v life_n the_o 3._o corruption_n observe_v by_o saunder_n be_v vers_n 58._o of_o john_n 6._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d qui_fw-la manducat_fw-la hunc_fw-la panem_fw-la vivet_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la the_o true_a english_a be_v he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o the_o bible_n do_v english_a it_o he_o that_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n the_o add_v of_o this_o word_n of_o may_v be_v the_o printer_n fault_n for_o many_o translation_n read_v without_o of._n but_o see_v saunder_n confess_v it_o be_v a_o true_a say_n he_o that_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n use_v by_o christ_n before_o verse_n 51._o here_o can_v be_v no_o corruption_n or_o falsification_n prove_v as_o for_o the_o distinction_n which_o saunder_n make_v between_o eat_v christ_n and_o eat_v of_o christ_n eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o eat_v of_o his_o flesh_n be_v frivolus_fw-la and_o vain_a for_o none_o eat_v of_o he_o but_o they_o which_o eat_v he_o yes_o say_v he_o of_o he_o we_o may_v eat_v without_o the_o sacrament_n but_o himself_o we_o proper_o eat_v only_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n how_o untrue_a this_o be_v you_o may_v see_v by_o this_o argument_n none_o can_v have_v eternal_a life_n except_o they_o eat_v christ_n and_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n but_o many_o have_v eternal_a life_n which_o eat_v not_o the_o sacrament_n therefore_o many_o eat_v christ_n and_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o eat_v not_o the_o sacrament_n joan._n 6._o ver_fw-la 53._o &_o 57_o the_o 4._o falsification_n be_v in_o s._n matth._n 26._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d cùm_fw-la accepisset_fw-la jesus_n panem_fw-la &_o gratias_fw-la egisset_fw-la fregit_fw-la &_o dedit_fw-la discipulis_fw-la &_o ait_fw-la the_o true_a english_a be_v jesus_n have_v take_v bread_n and_o give_v thanks_n or_o bless_a break_v and_o give_v to_o the_o disciple_n and_o say_v the_o common_a bible_n read_v jesus_n take_v bread_n and_o when_o he_o have_v give_v thanks_n he_o break_v it_o and_o give_v iâ_n to_o the_o disciple_n the_o holy_a scripture_n say_v not_o that_o jesus_n break_v it_o neither_o that_o he_o give_v it_o but_o that_o he_o break_v and_o give_v again_o in_o saint_n mark_v saint_n luke_n and_o saint_n paul_n five_o time_n put_v the_o particle_n it_o which_o be_v neither_o in_o the_o greek_a nor_o in_o the_o latin_a bible_n who_o will_v think_v that_o a_o ancient_a man_n will_v play_v the_o boy_n so_o kind_o what_o say_v you_o saunder_n be_v not_o the_o particle_n it_o add_v neither_o in_o greek_a nor_o latin_a when_o the_o accusative_a case_n be_v once_o set_v down_o and_o then_o follow_v transitive_a verb_n be_v it_o the_o phrase_n of_o the_o greek_a or_o latin_a tongue_n to_o add_v the_o particle_n it_o you_o say_v he_o break_v and_o give_v but_o not_o break_v it_o nor_o give_v it_o will_v you_o teach_v we_o a_o new_a grammar_n that_o fregit_fw-la and_o dedit_fw-la be_v verb_n newter_n absolute_a or_o if_o you_o will_v say_v they_o be_v verb_n active_a transitives_n lest_o the_o wild_a irish_a boy_n that_o go_v to_o the_o grammar_n school_n shall_v hiss_v at_o you_o as_o you_o go_v about_o your_o popish_a and_o traitorous_a commission_n i_o will_v wish_v some_o young_a redshank_n lad_n to_o oppose_v you_o and_o ask_v you_o what_o he_o break_v and_o what_o he_o give_v if_o he_o break_v not_o and_o give_v not_o it_o which_o he_o take_v if_o you_o say_v he_o break_v his_o body_n and_o not_o the_o bread_n because_o you_o say_v he_o so_o give_v his_o body_n that_o he_o give_v no_o bread_n advise_v yourself_o how_o you_o will_v answer_v the_o break_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o be_v but_o once_o break_v for_o we_o on_o the_o cross_n but_o yet_o not_o break_v into_o several_a piece_n as_o that_o thing_n whatsoever_o you_o will_v call_v it_o be_v break_v which_o he_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n and_o this_o undoubted_o you_o mean_v when_o you_o say_v the_o word_n of_o saint_n matthew_n do_v not_o all_o stand_v in_o order_n in_o so_o much_o as_o christ_n say_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n before_o he_o break_v the_o sacrament_n or_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n and_o do_v you_o now_o complain_v of_o saint_n matthew_n for_o disorder_v the_o word_n very_o saint_n mark_v saint_n luke_n and_o saint_n paul_n place_v the_o word_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o saint_n matthew_n do_v and_o if_o all_o these_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n do_v set_v the_o word_n out_o of_o order_n whence_o come_v you_o that_o will_v take_v upon_o you_o to_o set_v they_o in_o order_n have_v you_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v this_o pretend_a inversion_n of_o order_n and_o if_o you_o have_v have_v you_o forget_v what_o you_o do_v write_v even_o now_o in_o the_o preface_n that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o obscurity_n find_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o supper_n there_o be_v no_o other_o part_n of_o scripture_n that_o can_v clear_v they_o but_o stand_v of_o the_o word_n out_o of_o order_n and_o that_o in_o every_o one_o that_o rehearse_v they_o must_v needs_o make_v uncerteintie_n and_o obscurity_n yea_o this_o stand_n or_o not_o stand_v out_o of_o order_n may_v decide_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o controversy_n for_o if_o the_o word_n be_v speak_v after_o he_o break_v and_o give_v than_o he_o break_v and_o give_v bread_n and_o see_v the_o place_n of_o the_o word_n in_o all_o the_o evangelist_n and_o saint_n paul_n favour_v this_o opinion_n you_o shall_v not_o easy_o prove_v the_o contrary_a against_o so_o many_o faithful_a and_o prudent_a witness_n which_o have_v a_o care_n to_o place_v
may_v say_v if_o he_o will_v this_o be_v a_o regeneration_n or_o birth_n good_a for_o angel_n that_o have_v no_o body_n for_o he_o will_v not_o understand_v that_o both_o body_n and_o soul_n may_v be_v nourish_v by_o spiritual_a food_n as_o well_o as_o both_o body_n &_o soul_n bear_v a_o new_a by_o a_o spiritual_a wash_n and_o engraff_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n but_o the_o corinthian_n say_v he_o have_v two_o fault_n both_o which_o the_o heretic_n do_v follow_v the_o first_o fault_n they_o come_v to_o it_o after_o they_o have_v eat_v their_o own_o supper_n so_o the_o heretic_n first_o devise_v what_o supper_n they_o will_v allow_v christ_n and_o then_o they_o come_v to_o it_o conform_v it_o to_o their_o devise_n in_o deed_n so_o do_v the_o papist_n the_o second_o fault_n be_v they_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v alone_o without_o make_v their_o meat_n common_a to_o the_o poor_a so_o the_o heretic_n eat_v and_o drink_v alone_o teach_v that_o every_o man_n eat_v christ_n only_o by_o measure_n of_o his_o own_o faith_n nay_o rather_o the_o popish_a heretic_n eat_v and_o drink_v all_o alone_a often_o time_n not_o tarry_v for_o other_o to_o communicate_v with_o they_o and_o always_o they_o drink_v all_o alone_a give_v no_o part_n to_o they_o that_o will_v drink_v with_o they_o which_o be_v worse_o than_o the_o corinthian_n do_v for_o they_o eat_v not_o their_o supper_n alone_o which_o teach_v that_o christ_n must_v be_v eat_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n together_o require_v faith_n in_o every_o man_n that_o shall_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n worthy_o but_o saunder_n make_v christ_n so_o liberal_a that_o he_o give_v himself_o to_o all_o that_o sit_v at_o the_o table_n scotfree_a or_o poor_a good_a or_o bad_a in_o deed_n he_o offer_v himself_o to_o all_o but_o he_o give_v himself_o to_o none_o but_o to_o such_o as_o receive_v he_o thankful_o and_o which_o take_v profit_n by_o he_o wherefore_o he_o say_v he_o that_o eat_v i_o shall_v live_v for_o i_o whereupon_o it_o follow_v invincible_o that_o he_o which_o live_v not_o for_o he_o eat_v he_o not_o neither_o say_v hierom_n any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o this_o where_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v give_v his_o body_n to_o be_v eat_v himself_o be_v the_o meat_n and_o the_o feaster_n or_o guest_n true_a it_o be_v that_o christ_n alone_o in_o his_o death_n be_v the_o priest_n the_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o temple_n or_o altar_n not_o play_v all_o part_n as_o saunder_n lewd_o speak_v but_o perform_v thorough_o in_o his_o own_o person_n whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a for_o our_o full_a and_o perfect_a redemption_n the_o seal_n and_o assurance_n whereof_o with_o all_o benefit_n thereto_o belong_v he_o give_v we_o in_o his_o holy_a supper_n and_o not_o bare_a odour_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n but_o a_o true_a communicate_v of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n unto_o everlasting_a life_n of_o as_o many_o as_o with_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n receive_v it_o spiritual_o as_o their_o body_n receive_v the_o outward_a element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n bodily_a like_o as_o in_o baptism_n we_o receive_v not_o bare_a odour_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n but_o be_v very_o bear_v a_o new_a and_o ingraff_v into_o the_o death_n burial_n and_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n after_o a_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a manner_n with_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n even_o as_o outward_o our_o body_n be_v sprinkle_v or_o wash_v with_o pure_a water_n wherefore_o that_o which_o we_o teach_v of_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n be_v no_o deny_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o a_o clear_a exposition_n and_o set_v forth_o of_o the_o same_o according_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o institution_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o cap._n vi_o a_o special_a error_n of_o caluine_n be_v confute_v who_o teach_v this_o be_v saunder_n my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o to_o be_v word_n of_o promise_n in_o the_o way_n of_o preach_v at_o christ_n supper_n whereas_o they_o be_v word_n of_o performance_n in_o the_o way_n of_o work_v the_o long_a babble_n quarrel_a and_o wrangle_v that_o he_o use_v in_o this_o large_a chapter_n be_v ground_v upon_o one_o poor_a fulke_n sophistication_n of_o saunder_n in_o disjoin_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v conjoin_v &_o match_v together_o namely_o where_o caluine_n say_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v word_n of_o promise_n saunder_n press_v he_o to_o say_v they_o be_v word_n of_o promise_n only_o where_o he_o say_v express_o that_o they_o be_v also_o word_n of_o performance_n as_o saunder_n himself_o translate_v his_o word_n they_o be_v a_o lively_a preach_n which_o may_v show_v his_o efficacy_n in_o accomplishment_n of_o that_o it_o promise_v be_v not_o efficacy_n in_o accomplishment_n which_o be_v all_o one_o with_o performance_n here_o join_v with_o promise_n to_o omit_v therefore_o his_o rail_n against_o caluine_n for_o singularity_n &_o against_o the_o preacher_n of_o england_n for_o follow_v his_o fancy_n etc._n etc._n let_v we_o see_v what_o matter_n he_o have_v to_o bring_v against_o caluin_n say_v that_o those_o word_n be_v word_n of_o promise_n first_o he_o confess_v that_o they_o be_v word_n of_o promise_n fulfil_v a_o promise_n make_v before_o at_o capernaun_n also_o they_o be_v word_n of_o promise_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v promise_v in_o these_o word_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o or_o shall_v be_v give_v for_o you_o etc._n etc._n but_o this_o say_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v no_o more_o word_n of_o promise_n than_o the_o say_n this_o be_v my_o well-beloved_a son_n which_o be_v word_n of_o witness_n of_o a_o thing_n present_a then_o he_o will_v teach_v the_o difference_n between_o a_o promise_n and_o a_o performance_n a_o promise_n say_v he_o begin_v the_o bargain_n the_o performance_n end_v it_o let_v it_o be_v so_o that_o shall_v prove_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v a_o promise_n whereof_o the_o performance_n follow_v upon_o the_o condition_n require_v in_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o supper_n there_o be_v mention_n of_o a_o new_a covenant_n in_o every_o covenant_n there_o must_v be_v two_o party_n at_o the_o least_o christ_n be_v one_o party_n but_o who_o be_v the_o other_o party_n will_v master_n saunder_n say_v every_o man_n or_o every_o faithful_a man_n only_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v a_o covenant_n of_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n but_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o obtain_v of_o all_o man_n but_o only_o of_o they_o that_o believe_v therefore_o not_o all_o man_n but_o only_o the_o faithful_a be_v the_o other_o party_n in_o this_o covenant_n wherefore_o though_o the_o promise_n of_o eat_v of_o christ_n body_n even_o as_o of_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v offer_v by_o christ_n general_o to_o all_o man_n yet_o the_o performance_n be_v only_o unto_o the_o faithful_a which_o be_v the_o other_o party_n of_o the_o covenant_n whereof_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o wicked_a man_n eat_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v word_n of_o promise_n the_o performance_n whereof_o be_v in_o they_o that_o do_v receive_v faithful_o that_o which_o he_o offer_v but_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n say_v he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o time_n to_o come_v but_o of_o the_o present_a time_n ergo_fw-la no_o promise_n a_o sorry_a reason_n by_o which_o he_o may_v prove_v a_o thousand_o word_n of_o promise_n in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v no_o word_n of_o promise_n because_o they_o be_v speak_v not_o only_o in_o the_o present_a time_n but_o also_o in_o the_o time_n past_a and_o yet_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n must_v have_v relation_n unto_o the_o time_n to_o come_v for_o christ_n do_v not_o consecrate_v bread_n and_o wine_n into_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o with_o purpose_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v eat_v and_o drunken_a and_o therefore_o he_o bid_v they_o first_o eat_v &_o drink_v and_o then_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o eat_v and_o drink_v this_o bread_n and_o this_o cup_n you_o shall_v eat_v and_o drink_v my_o body_n and_o blood_n therefore_o in_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o covenant_n be_v not_o end_v as_o saunder_n say_v until_o that_o which_o be_v offer_v on_o the_o one_o party_n be_v accept_v on_o the_o other_o party_n where_o he_o affirm_v that_o word_n of_o promise_n consist_v in_o bare_a talk_n he_o give_v a_o bare_a judgement_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n which_o be_v effectual_a in_o work_n although_o they_o be_v utter_v in_o word_n and_o when_o he_o say_v they_o have_v no_o condition_n or_o delay_v annex_v it_o be_v untrue_a although_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o
every_o promise_n shall_v have_v a_o condition_n for_o many_o promise_n be_v make_v absolute_o but_o god_n promise_n require_v the_o condition_n of_o faith_n in_o they_o that_o shall_v obtain_v the_o performance_n of_o they_o and_o so_o do_v this_o and_o therefore_o the_o promise_n of_o spiritual_a communicate_v which_o saunder_n object_v help_v not_o judas_n because_o he_o receive_v it_o not_o with_o faith_n saunder_n ask_v caluine_n whether_o the_o condition_n of_o faith_n be_v write_v in_o the_o supper_n or_o no_o if_o not_o how_o dare_v caluine_n supply_v it_o have_v he_o not_o choke_v caluine_n with_o this_o question_n trow_v you_o but_o if_o caluine_n can_v find_v a_o covenant_n in_o the_o supper_n he_o will_v not_o seek_v far_o off_o to_o find_v faith_n necessary_o require_v in_o the_o receiver_n thereof_o but_o he_o have_v two_o other_o reason_n against_o the_o promise_n one_o of_o the_o word_n this_o another_o of_o the_o word_n is._n this_o say_v he_o show_v where_o the_o thing_n be_v that_o it_o point_v unto_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v promise_v &_o also_o point_v unto_o if_o the_o word_n this_o be_v such_o a_o pointer_n i_o pray_v you_o sir_n where_o be_v that_o which_o be_v point_v unto_o when_o he_o say_v of_o the_o cup_n this_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n be_v that_o which_o seem_v the_o cup_n or_o that_o in_o the_o cup_n the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v point_v unto_o if_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n or_o seal_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n confirm_v in_o his_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o we_o than_o be_v the_o other_o a_o sacrament_n or_o seal_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n confirm_v in_o the_o break_n and_o give_v of_o his_o body_n for_o us._n it_o anger_v saunder_n that_o caluine_n shall_v say_v christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n speak_v not_o to_o the_o bread_n but_o to_o his_o disciple_n wherein_o he_o will_v make_v he_o so_o singular_a that_o not_o only_o the_o papist_n but_o also_o all_o lutheran_n &_o zwinglian_o do_v confess_v the_o word_n to_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v a_o shameful_a lie_n both_o of_o the_o lutheran_n &_o of_o the_o zwinglian_o for_o none_o of_o they_o be_v so_o mad_a to_o think_v that_o when_o he_o begin_v to_o speak_v to_o his_o disciple_n and_o say_v take_v and_o eat_v than_o he_o turn_v his_o tale_n from_o they_o and_o speak_v to_o the_o bread_n when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n &_o then_o again_o to_o his_o disciple_n when_o he_o say_v which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o for_o if_o he_o have_v speak_v to_o the_o bread_n he_o will_v have_v say_v thou_o be_v my_o body_n and_o not_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v of_o the_o third_o person_n and_o to_o put_v all_o out_o of_o doubt_n s._n mark_n say_v speak_v of_o the_o cup_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n if_o he_o speak_v not_o to_o the_o wine_n but_o to_o his_o disciple_n when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n then_o sure_o he_o speak_v not_o to_o the_o bread_n but_o to_o his_o disciple_n of_o the_o bread_n when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n mark_v this_o well_o for_o although_o it_o be_v but_o a_o small_a matter_n yet_o it_o overthrow_v the_o whole_a mystery_n of_o popish_a consecration_n the_o argument_n of_o this_o verb_n est_fw-la be_v take_v for_o proof_n that_o which_o be_v in_o controversy_n namely_o that_o it_o be_v put_v proper_o because_o it_o be_v indeed_o christ_n body_n when_o the_o word_n be_v speak_v but_o see_v by_o your_o own_o divinity_n it_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n before_o the_o last_o syllable_n um_o be_v pronounce_v how_o can_v the_o verb_n est_fw-fr be_v take_v proper_o when_o neither_o before_o it_o be_v speak_v nor_o while_o it_o be_v in_o speak_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v of_o bread_n but_o saunder_n will_v know_v by_o what_o scripture_n caluine_n prove_v his_o lewd_a interpretation_n as_o though_o caluine_n affirm_v any_o thing_n of_o this_o matter_n which_o he_o proove_v not_o plentiful_o by_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o sacrament_n general_o and_o of_o this_o sacrament_n especial_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n &_o of_o many_o tropical_a speech_n use_v throughout_o the_o scripture_n which_o he_o that_o will_v may_v read_v at_o large_a in_o his_o writing_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v we_o see_v how_o saunder_n do_v confute_v his_o fond_a opinion_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o first_o argument_n of_o confutation_n be_v gather_v of_o the_o present_a temps_fw-fr use_v in_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o promise_n which_o be_v a_o prediction_n of_o a_o thing_n to_o come_v i_o have_v before_o answer_v this_o lewd_a argument_n for_o all_o promise_n be_v not_o utter_v in_o the_o future_a temps_fw-fr esay_n say_v pver_fw-la natus_fw-la est_fw-la nobis_fw-la a_o child_n be_v bear_v unto_o 9_o we_o when_o he_o be_v not_o bear_v 500_o year_n after_o i_o have_v show_v before_o that_o the_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n have_v relation_n to_o the_o eat_v which_o follow_v after_o they_o be_v utter_v caluine_n say_v further_a that_o christ_n speak_v not_o to_o the_o bread_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v his_o body_n but_o he_o command_v his_o disciple_n to_o eat_v &_o promise_v they_o the_o communicate_v of_o his_o body_n &_o blood_n against_o this_o saunder_n repli_v that_o god_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n take_v eat_v which_o be_v a_o commandment_n and_o no_o promise_n he_o say_v further_a this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v the_o make_v of_o the_o meat_n which_o must_v be_v eat_v &_o the_o show_v of_o it_o but_o no_o promise_n s._n paul_n say_v 1._o cor._n 10._o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communicate_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n who_o dare_v say_v the_o contrary_a but_o be_v the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v a_o actual_a communicate_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n before_o we_o eat_v it_o no_o very_o how_o be_v then_o the_o bread_n that_o we_o break_v a_o communicate_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n before_o we_o eat_v it_o but_o by_o promise_n of_o communicate_v to_o they_o that_o shall_v eat_v it_o faithful_o and_o if_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v not_o word_n of_o promise_n of_o communicate_v his_o body_n what_o other_o word_n of_o promise_n can_v saunder_n show_v in_o the_o institution_n but_o now_o will_v saunder_n prove_v at_o large_a that_o christ_n speak_v not_o to_o his_o disciple_n when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o to_o the_o bread_n although_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o s._n mark_v that_o christ_n speak_v to_o his_o disciple_n so_o plain_o that_o sanders_n ear_n may_v gloe_v on_o his_o head_n for_o shame_n to_o read_v it_o yet_o will_v i_o consider_v all_o his_o particular_a argument_n by_o which_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o prove_v that_o christ_n speak_v to_o the_o bread_n the_o first_o reason_n christ_n speak_v sometime_o to_o unsensible_a creature_n as_o to_o the_o wind_n the_o figtree_n and_o all_o creature_n here_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n when_o he_o speak_v to_o they_o so_o he_o speak_v here_o to_o the_o bread_n if_o this_o consequent_a do_v hang_v to_o the_o antecedent_n by_o any_o necessity_n i_o will_v grant_v it_o otherwise_o i_o must_v deny_v it_o well_o yet_o thus_o much_o be_v gain_v that_o it_o be_v not_o absurd_a that_o christ_n shall_v speak_v to_o the_o bread_n be_v a_o senseless_a creature_n yes_o very_a absurd_a that_o beginning_n to_o speak_v to_o man_n he_o shall_v sudden_o make_v a_o apostrophe_n to_o bread_n and_o without_o any_o transition_n but_o even_o with_o a_o relative_a as_o sudden_o return_v to_o speak_v to_o man_n and_o that_o speak_v to_o bread_n he_o shall_v use_v no_o word_n of_o the_o second_v person_n which_o he_o use_v in_o speak_v to_o the_o wind_n &_o to_o the_o figtree_n the_o second_o reason_n begin_v thus_o caluine_n say_v christ_n speak_v not_o to_o the_o bread_n i_o tell_v he_o he_o speak_v to_o the_o bread_n not_o as_o to_o a_o thing_n which_o shall_v carry_v bread_n but_o as_o to_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v change_v into_o his_o body_n for_o he_o call_v the_o bread_n his_o body_n be_v not_o this_o a_o magistral_a or_o doctoral_a kind_n of_o reason_v i_o tell_v he_o quoth_v saunder_n it_o be_v so_o but_o how_o prove_v he_o that_o christ_n speak_v to_o the_o bread_n because_o he_o call_v it_o his_o body_n which_o if_o caluine_n will_v deny_v he_o have_v it_o ready_a out_o of_o tertullian_n adver_v marc._n lib._n 4._o panem_fw-la
thing_n present_a weight_n in_o reason_v eloquence_n in_o utter_v power_n in_o reprove_v or_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o old_a time_n account_v for_o learning_n i_o trust_v all_o indifferent_a man_n will_v confess_v that_o great_a step_n thereof_o may_v be_v find_v in_o caluins_n writing_n but_o if_o learning_n be_v nothing_o else_o with_o papist_n but_o that_o which_o they_o fantasy_n themselves_o to_o know_v there_o be_v none_o learn_v but_o papist_n whereas_o saunder_n threaten_v upon_o the_o defence_n of_o caluins_n suppose_a error_n take_v in_o hand_n by_o any_o of_o his_o scholar_n to_o discover_v more_o of_o the_o ignorance_n of_o their_o arrogant_a master_n if_o he_o can_v have_v so_o much_o leisure_n from_o his_o traitorous_a practice_n in_o ireland_n which_o he_o have_v late_o take_v in_o hand_n under_o the_o service_n of_o his_o devilish_a blasphemous_a &_o antichristian_a master_n the_o pope_n i_o wish_v he_o not_o to_o spare_v not_o doubt_v but_o as_o i_o have_v so_o discover_v his_o proud_a and_o yet_o blockish_a ignorance_n in_o this_o chapter_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o his_o friend_n will_v blush_v to_o read_v it_o although_o he_o be_v past_a shame_n himself_o so_o in_o any_o matter_n wherein_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v consent_n with_o caluins_n writing_n i_o shall_v be_v able_a by_o god_n help_n so_o to_o defend_v the_o truth_n that_o all_o his_o much_o babble_n trifle_a quarrel_a control_a lie_a rail_a shall_v turn_v to_o his_o own_o confusion_n and_o the_o reproach_n of_o the_o baby_n lonicall_a strompet_n which_o he_o labour_v both_o with_o pen_n and_o sword_n tongue_n and_o hand_n both_o like_o a_o heretic_n &_o a_o traitor_n to_o protest_v and_o maintain_v against_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o second_o book_n cap._n 1._o the_o catholic_n require_v their_o cause_n to_o be_v upright_o try_v by_o the_o saunder_n holy_a scripture_n which_o they_o have_v always_o study_v &_o reverence_v this_o request_n be_v reasonable_a if_o it_o be_v fulke_n faithful_o mean_v but_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o heretical_a brag_n because_o you_o seem_v to_o have_v colour_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o your_o carnal_a and_o as_o you_o call_v it_o real_a presence_n otherwise_o what_o study_n soever_o you_o have_v follow_v in_o your_o closert_n your_o open_a writing_n declare_v small_a reverence_n unto_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o pigghius_n one_o of_o they_o who_o you_o name_v to_o have_v convince_v these_o heresy_n in_o our_o day_n by_o holy_a scripture_n call_v the_o holy_a scripture_n a_o nose_n of_o wax_n and_o a_o dumb_a judge_n these_o i_o ween_v be_v word_n of_o small_a reverence_n eckius_fw-la another_o of_o they_o call_v the_o scripture_n a_o black_a gospel_n and_o a_o inkish_a divinity_n and_o hosius_n a_o third_o man_n say_v these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o if_o they_o be_v understand_v general_o aswell_o of_o lay_v man_n as_o of_o priest_n to_o be_v the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o word_n in_o all_o the_o scripture_n of_o power_n to_o save_v but_o one_o only_a word_n dilige_fw-la and_o general_o all_o papist_n which_o before_o our_o time_n and_o in_o our_o day_n have_v take_v upon_o they_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n submit_v the_o understanding_n of_o they_o to_o the_o pope_n determination_n declare_v that_o they_o reverence_v they_o not_o as_o the_o holy_a word_n of_o god_n but_o esteem_v they_o as_o a_o leaden_a rule_n which_o they_o may_v draw_v to_o any_o thing_n that_o shall_v please_v they_o the_o absuide_n and_o lewd_a interpretation_n of_o many_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o other_o their_o applesquire_n whereof_o the_o subtle_a papist_n in_o these_o day_n be_v ashamed_a will_v fill_v a_o large_a volume_n if_o i_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o rehearse_v they_o the_o best_a excuse_n that_o harding_n can_v find_v for_o many_o of_o they_o be_v that_o they_o be_v spiritual_a dalliance_n in_o the_o devil_n name_n by_o which_o you_o may_v see_v what_o reverence_n they_o bear_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o make_v they_o a_o argument_n of_o dalliance_n cap._n ii_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o evil_a man_n receive_v the_o saunder_n both_o of_o christ_n in_o his_o supper_n the_o apology_n against_o which_o saunder_n fight_v profess_v that_o in_o the_o supper_n unto_o such_o as_o believe_v there_o be_v fulke_n true_o giu_fw-fr en_fw-fr the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n saunder_n repli_v that_o judas_n receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n ergo_fw-la not_o only_o they_o that_o believe_v concern_v judas_n it_o be_v a_o question_n whether_o he_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n or_o no._n not_o only_o because_o as_o saunder_n confess_v that_o some_o ancient_a father_n thought_n that_o he_o go_v out_o before_o the_o supper_n namely_o hilarius_n in_o math_n can._n 30._o post_n que_fw-fr judas_n prâditây_a iudicaur_n sine_fw-la quo_fw-la pascha_fw-la accepto_fw-la calice_n &_o fracto_fw-la pane_fw-la conficitur_fw-la after_o which_o thing_n judas_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v a_o traitor_n without_o who_o the_o passeover_n be_v make_v the_o cup_n be_v take_v and_o the_o bread_n be_v break_v but_o also_o by_o consequence_n of_o sanders_n own_o confession_n in_o lib._n 1_o cap._n 4._o fol._n 18._o where_o he_o affirm_v that_o christ_n do_v institute_v the_o sacrament_n after_o he_o have_v eat_v the_o paschall_n lamb_n wash_v his_o disciple_n foot_n and_o then_o sit_v down_o again_o to_o supper_n but_o s._n john_n testify_v that_o judas_n depart_v immediate_o after_o the_o sop_n receive_v which_o be_v before_o supper_n be_v end_v for_o this_o sop_n can_v not_o be_v the_o sacrament_n as_o augustine_n think_v see_v the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d signify_v a_o sop_n dip_v in_o brothe_n and_o so_o be_v this_o sop_n dip_v in_o the_o platter_n and_o not_o in_o the_o cup_n but_o to_o admit_v that_o judas_n be_v present_a and_o do_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n how_o prove_v he_o that_o he_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o which_o christ_n deliver_v judas_n receive_v christ_n deliver_v his_o body_n ergo_fw-la judas_n receive_v his_o body_n neither_o the_o mayor_n nor_o the_o minor_a of_o this_o argument_n be_v out_o of_o controversy_n for_o judas_n receive_v not_o whatsoever_o christ_n deliver_v for_o christ_n deliver_v a_o spiritual_a communication_n of_o his_o body_n as_o saint_n paul_n witness_v to_o they_o that_o will_v receive_v it_o which_o judas_n receive_v not_o therefore_o the_o mayor_n be_v false_a the_o minor_a take_v as_o grant_v that_o whereof_o be_v all_o the_o controversy_n namely_o that_o christ_n deliver_v his_o body_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n which_o we_o deny_v affirm_v that_o he_o give_v bread_n into_o their_o hand_n and_o his_o body_n after_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n to_o they_o which_o receive_v it_o by_o faith_n the_o apology_n further_o affirm_v the_o papist_n to_o teach_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v eat_v substantial_o not_o only_o of_o wicked_a man_n but_o also_o which_o be_v horrible_a to_o speak_v of_o mouse_n and_o dog_n saunder_n answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o worth_a the_o while_n to_o discuss_v whether_o mouse_n &_o dog_n in_o some_o sense_n eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o the_o catholic_n keep_v it_o so_o wary_o that_o neither_o mouse_n nor_o dog_n may_v come_v nigh_o it_o wherein_o he_o control_v the_o schoolman_n who_o have_v long_a disputation_n &_o doctoral_a determination_n of_o that_o question_n in_o the_o end_n he_o think_v it_o worse_o that_o wicked_a man_n shall_v eat_v then_o if_o dog_n or_o mouse_n shall_v eat_v it_o but_o in_o deed_n they_o be_v both_o blasphemous_a absurdity_n as_o for_o the_o father_n who_o he_o quote_v for_o wicked_a man_n eat_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n we_o shall_v consider_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n which_o be_v proper_a for_o that_o title_n his_o next_o argument_n be_v out_o of_o s._n paul_n whosoever_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v this_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n unworthy_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o this_o text_n he_o reason_v thus_o unworthy_a eat_v suppose_v a_o eat_n it_o be_v very_o true_a but_o saint_n paul_n call_v it_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o not_o eat_v of_o this_o body_n yea_o say_v saunder_n saint_n paul_n do_v wary_o describe_v that_o kind_n of_o bread_n both_o with_o a_o article_n and_o a_o pronoune_n ergo_fw-la that_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n i_o deny_v that_o argument_n the_o article_n and_o the_o pronoune_n show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o common_a bread_n but_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n but_o how_o can_v he_o which_o eat_v this_o bread_n unworthy_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n
be_v the_o worthy_a of_o the_o two_o but_o also_o the_o chief_a of_o many_o sacrament_n the_o authority_n of_o dionysius_n which_o he_o vouch_v as_o though_o it_o be_v without_o controversy_n of_o antiquity_n have_v often_o be_v disprove_v to_o be_v without_o the_o compass_v of_o the_o six_o hundred_o year_n see_v neither_o eusebius_n nor_o hierom_n nor_o germadius_fw-la in_o their_o several_a time_n do_v ever_o hear_v of_o any_o such_o book_n of_o dionysius_n the_o arâopagite_n s._n paul_n disciple_n but_o where_o the_o apology_n confess_v the_o lord_n supper_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n a_o sign_n and_o a_o evident_a token_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n saunder_n say_v it_o be_v constrain_v to_o believe_v many_o unwriten_a verity_n and_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o only_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o this_o supper_n that_o it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n behold_v the_o vanity_n of_o this_o fond_a quareller_n because_o these_o truth_n be_v not_o express_v in_o so_o many_o latin_a or_o english_a word_n in_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o they_o be_v unwritten_a verity_n the_o froward_a man_n himself_o in_o the_o chapter_n last_o before_o confess_v that_o mysterium_fw-la in_o the_o greek_a be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v call_v sacramentum_fw-la in_o latin_a if_o therefore_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v call_v in_o greek_a mysterium_fw-la we_o may_v find_v it_o in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v call_v a_o sacrament_n for_o where_o s._n paul_n say_v let_v a_o man_n thus_o esteem_v we_o as_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o the_o dispenser_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n who_o doubt_v but_o under_o the_o name_n of_o mystery_n the_o lord_n supper_n and_o baptism_n be_v comprehend_v although_o the_o name_n of_o mystery_n be_v large_a in_o greek_a than_o we_o use_v the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n in_o english_a yet_o in_o spite_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o name_n of_o mystery_n and_o sacrament_n be_v true_o verify_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o baptism_n likewise_o the_o name_n of_o sign_n be_v give_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n usual_o to_o other_o sacrament_n by_o analogy_n must_v likewise_o apperteine_v to_o this_o sacrament_n ge._n 17._o circumcision_n be_v call_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o covenant_n between_o god_n and_o the_o people_n likewise_o exo._n 12._o the_o blood_n of_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n be_v call_v a_o sign_n and_o s._n paul_n ro._n 4._o call_v the_o sign_n of_o circumcision_n a_o seal_n of_o justification_n last_o of_o all_o have_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o lord_n supper_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n sign_n or_o seal_v the_o argument_n of_o relative_n lead_v we_o by_o the_o hand_n to_o call_v it_o a_o evident_a sign_n or_o token_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n give_v for_o we_o for_o that_o be_v the_o thing_n signify_v which_o be_v prove_v by_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o etc._n etc._n even_o as_o the_o lamb_n be_v call_v the_o passover_o which_o be_v the_o sacrament_n sign_n or_o evident_a token_n of_o the_o passingover_n and_o not_o the_o passeover_n itself_o but_o saunder_n urge_v we_o to_o answer_v whether_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o body_n itself_o may_v stand_v together_o or_o no_o i_o answer_v he_o plain_o except_o he_o destroy_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n opposite_a the_o sign_n and_o the_o thing_n signify_v can_v stand_v together_o at_o one_o time_n and_o in_o one_o respect_n as_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o abraham_n can_v be_v the_o father_n of_o isaac_n and_o the_o son_n of_o isaac_n also_o but_o in_o diverse_a respect_n they_o may_v stand_v together_o as_o abraham_n be_v the_o father_n of_o isaac_n and_o the_o son_n of_o therah_n so_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n can_v be_v both_o the_o sign_n of_o christ_n natural_a body_n and_o blood_n give_v for_o we_o and_o the_o very_a same_o natural_a body_n itself_o but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o divine_a mystery_n and_o heavenly_a seal_n it_o be_v true_o call_v that_o whereof_o it_o make_v assurance_n namely_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n even_o as_o the_o cup_n be_v call_v the_o new_a testament_n whereof_o it_o be_v a_o seal_n and_o assurance_n and_o as_o baptism_n be_v call_v regeneration_n be_v a_o seal_n and_o assurance_n thereof_o unto_o the_o child_n of_o god_n chap._n x._o that_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v both_o the_o sign_n of_o christ_n body_n saunder_n and_o also_o his_o true_a body_n even_o as_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n he_o require_v diligent_a ear_n as_o though_o he_o have_v find_v out_o a_o great_a argument_n for_o his_o cause_n when_o in_o deed_n it_o overthrow_v fulk_n himself_o altogether_o for_o he_o will_v show_v that_o such_o a_o sign_n as_o belong_v to_o christ_n institution_n must_v needs_o have_v the_o same_o truth_n present_a whereof_o it_o be_v the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v grant_v it_o proove_v no_o more_o the_o truth_n present_a in_o the_o one_o sacrament_n then_o in_o the_o other_o see_v they_o belong_v both_o to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ._n but_o god_n and_o christ_n say_v he_o can_v institute_v a_o false_a sign_n or_o token_n i_o say_v so_o also_o and_o withal_o i_o say_v that_o see_v god_n institute_v all_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v sign_n and_o token_n of_o christ_n christ_n be_v true_o present_a in_o they_o even_o as_o true_o as_o in_o our_o sacrament_n and_o therefore_o saint_n paul_n teach_v that_o our_o father_n do_v drink_v of_o the_o same_o spiritual_a drink_n that_o we_o do_v for_o they_o drink_v of_o the_o spiritual_a rock_n which_o rock_n be_v christ._n if_o saunder_n can_v content_v himself_o with_o such_o truth_n and_o presence_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o do_v exhibit_v in_o baptism_n and_o do_v exhibit_v in_o all_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v of_o his_o institution_n we_o may_v soon_o be_v agree_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n you_o see_v he_o overthrow_v in_o his_o own_o argument_n other_o matter_n not_o incident_a to_o the_o present_a controversy_n i_o omit_v as_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o baptism_n at_o the_o same_o instant_n do_v wash_v the_o soul_n from_o sin_n as_o though_o the_o effect_n of_o baptism_n extend_v no_o far_o then_o to_o the_o time_n of_o wash_v with_o water_n likewise_o that_o the_o outward_a pronounce_v of_o the_o word_n over_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v the_o sacrament_n whereby_o it_o follow_v that_o when_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o word_n be_v once_o past_a it_o be_v no_o long_o a_o sacrament_n and_o consequent_o the_o papist_n must_v not_o call_v that_o which_o they_o worship_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n etc._n etc._n cap._n xi_o what_o sign_n must_v chief_o be_v respect_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o saunder_n christ_n supper_n and_o what_o a_o sacrament_n be_v there_o be_v if_o we_o believe_v saunder_n four_o kind_n of_o sign_n fulk_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n the_o first_o be_v token_n make_v &_o consecrate_v the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n the_o second_o be_v sign_n of_o it_o make_v which_o be_v the_o accident_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n the_o three_o a_o signification_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o four_o eat_v be_v a_o sign_n of_o a_o marvellous_a banquet_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v of_o these_o four_o the_o first_o must_v be_v chief_o respect_v which_o be_v a_o outward_a token_n of_o a_o inward_a truth_n the_o outward_a token_n be_v call_v the_o sacrament_n the_o inward_a truth_n be_v call_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o sacrament_n whereupon_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o sacrament_n allege_v by_o gratian_n out_o of_o s._n augustine_n be_v this_o a_o sacrament_n be_v the_o visible_a form_n of_o invisible_a grace_n out_o of_o this_o definition_n which_o employ_v two_o part_n of_o a_o sacrament_n he_o will_v prove_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n for_o if_o the_o body_n be_v not_o present_a say_v he_o the_o word_n make_v a_o false_a token_n i_o deny_v the_o consequence_n for_o the_o word_n make_v a_o true_a token_n and_o yet_o the_o body_n be_v not_o present_a after_o his_o gross_a imagination_n of_o bodily_a manner_n of_o presence_n his_o exemplification_n of_o the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n give_v to_o the_o apostle_n by_o these_o word_n hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la do_v and_o make_v this_o be_v to_o make_v a_o proof_n of_o one_o controversy_n by_o another_o for_o we_o deny_v the_o power_n of_o make_v which_o he_o pretend_v there_o to_o be_v give_v affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o commandment_n to_o continue_v that_o sacrament_n of_o his_o institution_n and_o show_v the_o use_n thereof_o his_o second_o argument_n be_v that_o christ_n speak_v not_o
his_o life_n for_o lack_v of_o good_a argument_n if_o he_o escape_v hang_v draw_v and_o quarter_a for_o treason_n except_o he_o think_v there_o be_v any_o child_n among_o we_o bring_v up_o in_o their_o catechism_n that_o be_v so_o ignorant_a to_o think_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n intend_v to_o work_v a_o particular_a miracle_n be_v sign_n &_o sacrament_n in_o the_o same_o nature_n that_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v be_v appoint_v by_o he_o to_o be_v a_o ordinary_a pledge_n &_o assurance_n of_o his_o grace_n unto_o his_o whole_a church_n again_o we_o deny_v that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o sacrament_n but_o we_o say_v with_o augustine_n accedat_fw-la verbum_fw-la ad_fw-la elementum_fw-la let_v the_o word_n come_v to_o the_o element_n and_o then_o it_o be_v make_v a_o sacrament_n last_o of_o all_o concern_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n etc._n etc._n we_o nothing_o doubt_n but_o that_o grace_n in_o god_n elect_v work_v that_o which_o the_o word_n sound_v according_a to_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o they_o but_o if_o saunder_n can_v have_v make_v his_o matter_n good_a he_o shall_v have_v reason_v of_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n which_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o regeneration_n and_o if_o he_o can_v prove_v that_o the_o water_n in_o baptism_n be_v not_o water_n but_o regeneration_n in_o deed_n because_o it_o be_v a_o token_n of_o regeneration_n he_o shall_v have_v reason_v somewhat_o like_a for_o his_o life_n but_o that_o which_o he_o say_v of_o do_v or_o make_v he_o will_v not_o have_v it_o wrest_v to_o the_o mere_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o speak_v do_v or_o make_v nothing_o for_o therein_o he_o use_v parable_n but_o christ_n say_v he_o do_v rather_o than_o teach_v in_o his_o supper_n and_o therefore_o his_o word_n must_v be_v understand_v even_o as_o they_o sound_v if_o this_o rule_n be_v true_a christ_n drink_v and_o give_v wine_n at_o his_o supper_n which_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n according_a to_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o word_n and_o therefore_o no_o transubstantiation_n in_o the_o cup_n but_o where_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v rather_o than_o teach_v at_o his_o supper_n he_o will_v have_v we_o think_v belike_o that_o christ_n do_v celebrate_v his_o supper_n like_o the_o popish_a mass_n in_o which_o be_v much_o ado_n &_o no_o teach_v at_o all_o but_o beside_o that_o all_o the_o three_o evangelist_n do_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o the_o sum_n of_o his_o doctrine_n s._n john_n do_v in_o four_o chapter_n from_o the_o 13._o to_o the_o 18._o describe_v at_o large_a that_o he_o be_v occupy_v in_o teach_v rather_o then_o do_v you_o have_v hear_v how_o saunder_n will_v dispute_v for_o his_o life_n cap._n xiii_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n supper_n be_v not_o figurative_a nor_o his_o token_n saunder_n a_o common_a kind_n of_o token_n the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o title_n that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n supper_n arenot_v figurative_a he_o proove_v not_o by_o any_o one_o fulke_o word_n &_o as_o for_o the_o other_o part_n that_o christ_n token_n be_v not_o a_o common_a kind_n of_o token_n which_o he_o prove_v somewhat_o at_o large_a he_o need_v not_o to_o have_v prove_v at_o al._n for_o it_o be_v confess_v of_o we_o that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o more_o excellent_a token_n then_o can_v be_v ordain_v by_o any_o man_n and_o where_o he_o say_v that_o none_o of_o the_o father_n teach_v that_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n etc._n etc._n be_v word_n figurative_a it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o oppose_v augustine_n who_o in_o plain_a term_n say_v these_o word_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n be_v a_o figurative_a speech_n which_o word_n notwithstanding_o among_o the_o papist_n have_v the_o same_o sense_n that_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o bo_z de_n doct._n chri._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 16._o the_o word_n be_v cite_v cap._n 11._o and_o what_o other_o thing_n do_v augustine_n mean_a when_o he_o say_v sicut_fw-la ergo_fw-la secundum_fw-la quendam_fw-la modum_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la est_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la christi_fw-la sanguis_fw-la christi_fw-la est_fw-la ita_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la fideifides_fw-la est_fw-la therefore_o as_o after_o a_o certain_a manner_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o the_o sacrament_n of_o faith_n mean_v baptism_n be_v faith_n epist._n 23._o bonisacio_fw-la be_v it_o not_o manifest_a that_o he_o mean_v the_o one_o be_v a_o figurative_a speech_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o fie_o upon_o this_o impudent_a boast_n of_o the_o papist_n which_o care_v not_o what_o lie_v they_o make_v so_o they_o give_v not_o place_n to_o the_o truth_n as_o for_o the_o say_n of_o cyprian_a chrysostome_n basil_n etc._n etc._n or_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a father_n concern_v the_o wonderful_a manner_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n do_v all_o prove_v a_o spiritual_a and_o divine_a manner_n of_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o in_o their_o proper_a place_n shall_v be_v several_o declare_v cap._n xiiii_o that_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v no_o sacrament_n at_o all_o if_o these_o saunder_n word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n be_v figurative_a two_o leaf_n and_o a_o half_a of_o this_o chapter_n be_v spend_v fulke_n to_o show_v the_o difference_n between_o figure_n of_o rhetoric_n and_o sacramental_a figure_n and_o that_o word_n must_v be_v join_v to_o the_o element_n to_o make_v sacrament_n all_o which_o be_v needless_a for_o it_o be_v common_o know_v and_o confess_v on_o both_o part_n save_v that_o he_o will_v make_v ignorant_a papist_n believe_v that_o oecolampadius_n caluine_n or_o peter_n martyr_n when_o they_o read_v in_o tertullian_n &_o in_o augustine_n these_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n to_o be_v so_o expound_v that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o figure_n or_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n they_o shall_v understande_v a_o figure_n of_o rhetoric_n as_o metonymy_fw-la or_o synecdoche_n and_o not_o a_o sacramental_a token_n no_o master_n saunder_n they_o be_v not_o so_o young_a grammarian_n or_o rhetorician_n as_o you_o will_v bear_v fool_n in_o hand_n but_o they_o can_v understand_v the_o difference_n of_o a_o rhetorical_a and_o a_o sacramental_a figure_n although_o they_o can_v tell_v that_o a_o rhetorical_a figure_n be_v use_v when_o a_o sacramental_a token_n be_v speak_v off_o as_o in_o so_o many_o example_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o have_v show_v but_o now_o let_v we_o see_v what_o main_a argument_n you_o have_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o supper_n be_v no_o sacrament_n if_o the_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n etc._n etc._n be_v figurative_a the_o word_n say_v you_o do_v not_o signify_v a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n therefore_o either_o they_o work_v his_o body_n or_o they_o make_v nothing_o at_o al._n i_o answer_v with_o tertull._n &_o august_n the_o word_n do_v signify_v a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n for_o so_o do_v they_o expound_v the_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o figure_n or_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n which_o their_o exposition_n be_v false_a except_o those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n do_v signify_v a_o figure_n or_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n therefore_o master_n saunder_n you_o may_v teach_v boy_n that_o body_n signify_v a_o substance_n and_o not_o a_o figure_n tertullian_n and_o augustine_n will_v not_o not_o be_v so_o answer_v at_o your_o hand_n they_o tell_v you_o that_o the_o interpretation_n of_o christ_n word_n be_v such_o as_o prove_v his_o speech_n to_o be_v figurative_a in_o spite_n of_o your_o heart_n and_o that_o every_o boy_n that_o read_v this_o chapter_n may_v laugh_v at_o your_o arrogant_a impudence_n i_o set_v down_o once_o again_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o if_o they_o be_v not_o confess_v of_o you_o to_o be_v figurative_a you_o will_v not_o confess_v that_o fire_n be_v hot_a nor_o water_n moist_a if_o they_o be_v figurative_a what_o sacrament_n will_v be_v make_v with_o they_o where_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o same_o body_n walk_v on_o earth_n suffer_v on_o the_o cross_n or_o sit_v in_o heaven_n you_o do_v as_o much_o as_o if_o you_o will_v teach_v we_o that_o abraham_n sit_v close_o in_o his_o tent_n so_o that_o no_o man_n can_v see_v he_o be_v father_n of_o the_o same_o abraham_n himself_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n therah_n
have_v no_o spirit_n in_o sander_n corporal_a judgement_n when_o we_o know_v not_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n as_o the_o which_o make_v all_o that_o they_o say_v in_o the_o consecration_n of_o his_o holy_a mystery_n but_o we_o acknowledge_v his_o word_n to_o be_v spirit_n &_o life_n because_o he_o never_o give_v his_o flesh_n but_o with_o effect_n of_o his_o quicken_a spirit_n and_o that_o be_v a_o gross_a spirit_n and_o a_o deadly_a life_n which_o imagine_v all_o that_o to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o mystery_n which_o the_o word_n sound_v for_o then_o the_o cup_n shall_v be_v make_v blood_n and_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o his_o blood_n what_o be_v they_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n say_v augustine_n in_o joan._n t._n 27._o spiritualiter_fw-la intelligenda_fw-la sunt_fw-la they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v spiritual_o therefore_o not_o according_a to_o the_o sound_n of_o word_n but_o according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o speaker_n it_o be_v cold_a devotion_n say_v saunder_n that_o hear_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o himself_o affirm_v to_o be_v present_a can_v eat_v without_o adore_v and_o deny_v godly_a honour_n to_o it_o we_o eat_v not_o without_o adore_v master_n saunder_n although_o we_o adore_v not_o that_o which_o we_o eat_v bodily_a but_o that_o which_o we_o eat_v spiritual_o give_v this_o divine_a honour_n unto_o he_o that_o we_o put_v our_o whole_a trust_n &_o confidence_n in_o his_o redemption_n whereof_o this_o external_a and_o visible_a sacrament_n be_v a_o pledge_n and_o assurance_n cap._n xxiii_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o apology_n saunder_n the_o apology_n confess_v that_o christ_n be_v give_v we_o in_o the_o fulke_n mystery_n that_o we_o may_v certain_o know_v we_o be_v flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o his_o bone_n and_o that_o christ_n continue_v in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o he_o if_o christ_n be_v give_v we_o say_v saunder_n in_o these_o mystery_n he_o be_v present_a in_o they_o for_o a_o gift_n be_v not_o make_v of_o a_o thing_n absent_a yes_o master_n saunder_n if_o the_o prince_n at_o westminster_n give_v a_o manor_n lie_v in_o yorkshire_n by_o letter_n patent_n the_o patentee_n which_o receive_v his_o patent_n at_o westminster_n have_v the_o manor_n true_o give_v unto_o he_o which_o be_v in_o yorkshire_n therefore_o a_o gift_n by_o sufficient_a assurance_n may_v be_v of_o a_o thing_n absent_a in_o nature_n thereof_o and_o so_o be_v christ_n body_n give_v we_o in_o the_o mystery_n which_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o god_n promise_n true_o give_v christ_n body_n unto_o we_o which_o according_a to_o the_o natural_a and_o corporal_a manner_n of_o presence_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o not_o on_o the_o earth_n col._n 3._o but_o saunder_n will_v understande_v how_o we_o know_v that_o we_o be_v flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o his_o bone_n except_o it_o be_v by_o the_o real_a &_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o mystery_n yes_o forsooth_o we_o know_v it_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o so_o testify_v eph._n 5._o and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n which_o dwell_v in_o we_o rom._n 8._o and_o last_o of_o all_o we_o have_v assurance_n thereof_o by_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n as_o by_o a_o seal_n confirmation_n and_o pledge_v of_o the_o performance_n of_o god_n promise_n unto_o us._n but_o a_o conjunction_n betwixt_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n &_o the_o flesh_n of_o man_n can_v be_v make_v say_v he_o by_o faith_n spirit_n and_o understanding_n as_o man_n and_o wife_n can_v become_v one_o flesh_n by_o consent_n of_o marriage_n except_o in_o deed_n they_o come_v bodily_a together_o yes_o sir_n we_o hold_v that_o christ_n be_v actual_o join_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n by_o his_o incarnation_n but_o this_o conjunction_n profit_v not_o all_o man_n but_o only_o they_o to_o who_o he_o be_v join_v by_o spirit_n faith_n &_o understanding_n and_o so_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n make_v all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o his_o bone_n for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o quicken_v the_o flesh_n prosit_v nothing_o what_o avail_v it_o the_o reprobate_n that_o god_n be_v become_v man_n join_v in_o the_o same_o substance_n of_o flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n and_o humane_a soul_n nothing_o because_o they_o lack_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o faith_n last_o of_o all_o where_o he_o say_v that_o man_n &_o wise_n can_v become_v one_o flesh_n without_o carnal_a copulation_n it_o be_v a_o beastly_a opinion_n for_o he_o that_o say_v they_o shall_v be_v two_o in_o one_o flesh_n speak_v of_o the_o holy_a conjunction_n of_o two_o person_n in_o marriage_n according_a to_o god_n institution_n before_o carnal_a copulation_n by_o which_o the_o act_n of_o generation_n be_v sanctify_v and_o the_o bed_n make_v to_o be_v undefiled_a not_o restrain_v the_o conjunction_n to_o the_o couple_v of_o their_o body_n for_o the_o scripture_n call_v joseph_n and_o marie_n husband_n and_o wife_n although_o there_o be_v no_o come_n together_o of_o their_o body_n and_o how_o can_v the_o papist_n affirm_v matrimony_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n when_o the_o conjunction_n in_o one_o flesh_n which_o be_v the_o effect_n thereof_o can_v be_v wrought_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o be_v leave_v in_o the_o choice_n of_o the_o man_n and_o the_o woman_n last_o of_o all_o where_o saunder_n say_v there_o be_v no_o other_o mean_n teach_v in_o the_o gospel_n how_o christ_n may_v be_v present_a in_o flesh_n or_o his_o flesh_n join_v to_o our_o flesh_n but_o by_o mean_n of_o transubstantiation_n it_o will_v fall_v out_o that_o see_v transubstantiation_n be_v not_o teach_v in_o the_o gospel_n neither_o be_v think_v upon_o six_o hundred_o year_n in_o the_o church_n but_o the_o contrary_a manifest_o prove_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o present_a in_o flesh_n at_o all_o nor_o his_o flesh_n shall_v be_v join_v to_o our_o flesh_n by_o any_o mean_n such_o truth_n be_v in_o his_o assertion_n cap._n xxiiii_o the_o contrariety_n of_o the_o apology_n be_v show_v and_o that_o the_o lift_v up_o of_o our_o heart_n to_o heaven_n be_v no_o good_a cause_n why_o we_o shall_v lift_v saunder_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o altar_n first_o he_o charge_v we_o with_o great_a forgetfulness_n afterward_o fulke_n to_o make_v a_o show_n of_o contrariety_n he_o falsifi_v most_o impudent_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apology_n which_o he_o cite_v himself_o in_o the_o chapter_n last_o before_o christ_n give_v himself_o present_a in_o these_o mystery_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o here_o but_o in_o heaven_n feed_v we_o from_o thence_o this_o word_n present_v he_o now_o add_v which_o because_o he_o miss_v before_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o prove_v it_o by_o reason_n shall_v i_o say_v who_o ever_o have_v to_o do_v with_o such_o a_o forgetful_a man_n or_o rather_o with_o so_o shameless_a a_o heretic_n although_o the_o apology_n never_o deny_v simple_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o mystery_n but_o always_o that_o manner_n of_o presence_n which_o the_o papist_n affirm_v and_o be_v now_o in_o controversy_n between_o us._n that_o the_o exhortation_n to_o lift_v up_o man_n heart_n be_v no_o good_a argument_n to_o prove_v that_o christ_n be_v only_o in_o heaven_n he_o use_v much_o foolish_a babble_n as_o though_o that_o say_n only_o be_v bring_v for_o a_o argument_n or_o that_o say_n of_o itself_o for_o a_o sufficient_a argument_n or_o that_o say_n for_o any_o argument_n but_o where_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o christ_n after_o his_o ascension_n concern_v his_o humanity_n have_v leave_v the_o world_n joan._n 16._o which_o the_o apostle_n understand_v to_o be_v speak_v plain_o and_o without_o all_o parable_n and_o that_o he_o sit_v in_o heaven_n and_o not_o on_o earth_n col._n 3._o the_o apology_n say_v this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o people_n be_v exhort_v to_o lift_v up_o their_o heart_n and_o not_o as_o saunder_n pervert_v it_o because_o the_o people_n be_v exhort_v to_o lift_v up_o their_o heart_n therefore_o christ_n be_v not_o present_a in_o his_o mystery_n but_o lift_v up_o of_o heart_n with_o the_o old_a father_n be_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o mystery_n upon_o the_o table_n to_o believe_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o not_o to_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n say_v saunder_n do_v you_o not_o look_v for_o some_o sound_a argument_n to_o prove_v this_o gear_n especial_o of_o he_o which_o immediate_o before_o charge_v the_o author_n of_o the_o apology_n to_o use_v a_o argument_n more_o like_o a_o tinker_n than_o a_o divine_a you_o shall_v hear_v his_o argument_n of_o authority_n of_o chrysostom_n hom._n de_fw-fr eucharistia_n do_v
may_v beâ_n convert_v yet_o he_o speak_v in_o a_o homily_n or_o sermon_n to_o the_o faithful_a for_o their_o instruction_n at_o which_o never_o a_o jew_n be_v present_a and_o where_o as_o saunder_n argue_v that_o because_o no_o infidel_n be_v admit_v to_o be_v present_a in_o time_n of_o mass_n therefore_o augustine_n may_v not_o lawful_o talk_v to_o a_o jew_n of_o the_o mystical_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n he_o show_v double_a folly_n for_o why_o may_v he_o not_o expound_v even_o to_o the_o jew_n that_o which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o speak_v to_o the_o unbelieve_a jew_n of_o the_o eat_n and_o drink_v of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o second_o when_o he_o preach_v public_o of_o that_o mystical_a presence_n or_o write_v of_o it_o in_o book_n which_o he_o set_v abroad_o to_o be_v read_v of_o all_o man_n how_o can_v he_o prohibit_v infidel_n to_o hear_v the_o one_o or_o read_v the_o other_o and_o yet_o i_o know_v the_o ancient_a father_n have_v such_o regard_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o religion_n before_o infidel_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o take_v a_o occasion_n to_o scorn_v they_o or_o deride_v they_o nevertheless_o they_o be_v not_o so_o dangerous_a as_o saunder_n imagine_v justinus_n martyr_n in_o his_o apology_n to_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n and_o senate_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o his_o dialogue_n with_o tryphon_n the_o jew_n fear_v not_o plain_o to_o express_v what_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o christian_n be_v concern_v these_o holy_a mystery_n wherefore_o augustine_n although_o in_o these_o word_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o in_o other_o word_n of_o the_o same_o homily_n as_o you_o have_v see_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n even_o in_o his_o sacrament_n the_o three_o book_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o third_z book_n he_o promise_v to_o prove_v first_o that_o christ_n in_o the_o sixth_o of_o s._n john_n speak_v of_o the_o gift_n he_o make_v afterward_o in_o his_o part_a banquet_n second_o that_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v evident_o prove_v by_o such_o word_n of_o promise_n as_o he_o there_o utter_v afterward_o he_o excuse_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v drive_v to_o handle_v deep_a &_o obscure_a matter_n be_v a_o poor_a scholar_n of_o oxford_n and_o yet_o inferior_a to_o 200_o that_o be_v in_o the_o late_a tridentine_a council_n so_o that_o if_o any_o parliament_n man_n bring_v up_o in_o hawk_v and_o hunt_v think_v he_o write_v too_o profound_a lie_n for_o his_o understanding_n he_o must_v think_v that_o he_o be_v less_o able_a to_o be_v a_o judge_n of_o this_o whole_a controversy_n and_o of_o all_o question_n in_o religion_n as_o though_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o every_o member_n of_o the_o parliament_n that_o shall_v entreat_v of_o case_n of_o religion_n to_o be_v train_v up_o in_o school_n point_n of_o popish_a divinity_n which_o the_o far_o they_o be_v from_z the_o understanding_n of_o that_o common_a people_n yâ_z further_o they_o be_v from_o faith_n &_o christian_a religion_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v common_o knowâ_n even_o to_o the_o simple_a woman_n and_o child_n and_o albeit_o that_o every_o parliament_n man_n be_v not_o able_a of_o himself_o to_o judge_v of_o all_o controversy_n of_o religion_n yet_o they_o altogether_o by_o the_o instruction_n of_o so_o many_o godly_a learned_a man_n as_o be_v among_o they_o may_v decree_v what_o law_n be_v necessary_a to_o be_v make_v for_o the_o advancement_n of_o god_n glory_n in_o religion_n as_o well_o as_o for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n in_o quiet_a &_o tranquillity_n to_o conclude_v his_o foolish_a preface_n have_v never_o do_v crake_v of_o hard_a and_o difficult_a matter_n as_o though_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o such_o ripe_a judgement_n in_o they_o that_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v write_v be_v the_o oracle_n of_o apollo_n where_o as_o in_o deed_n every_o mean_a wise_a man_n shall_v easy_o perceive_v that_o when_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o wind_v himself_o out_o of_o a_o difficult_a and_o intricate_a matter_n he_o show_v more_o boldness_n in_o advouch_v than_o soundness_n in_o his_o approve_v cap._n i._n the_o argument_n of_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o saint_n john_n be_v declare_v saunder_n first_o he_o affirm_v that_o christ_n may_v be_v receive_v three_o fulk_n way_n by_o faith_n and_o spirit_n only_o without_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n only_o without_o faith_n and_o grace_n or_o in_o both_o together_o of_o the_o last_o kind_n of_o receive_v he_o affirm_v that_o christ_n speak_v towards_o the_o late_a end_n of_o the_o chap._n in_o the_o begin_n upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o miracle_n of_o multiply_a bread_n and_o fish_n he_o exhort_v the_o jew_n to_o work_v the_o meat_n that_o perish_v not_o which_o the_o son_n of_o man_n will_v give_v they_o this_o gift_n say_v he_o be_v plain_o mean_v of_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o so_o say_v theophilact_n a_o late_a writer_n but_o because_o they_o can_v not_o come_v to_o the_o work_n of_o this_o gift_n without_o faith_n upon_o he_o therefore_o he_o teach_v for_o a_o preparation_n that_o he_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n &c_n &c_n after_o which_o preparation_n make_v he_o return_v say_v he_o to_o expound_v his_o own_o gift_n show_v most_o express_o that_o which_o he_o will_v give_v in_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v give_v be_v my_o flesh_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o gift_n of_o spiritual_a eat_n be_v not_o to_o come_v when_o christ_n speak_v unto_o his_o disciple_n but_o christ_n say_v his_o peculiar_a gift_n be_v to_o come_v this_o only_a reason_n he_o use_v in_o this_o chapter_n wherein_o you_o must_v note_v first_o that_o here_o of_o a_o falsify_v mind_n he_o cit_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n otherwise_o then_o saint_n john_n do_v write_v they_o for_o his_o word_n be_v these_o and_o the_o bread_n that_o i_o will_v give_v be_v my_o flesh_n which_o i_o will_v give_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n in_o which_o word_n the_o gift_n be_v manifest_o refer_v unto_o his_o passion_n and_o not_o unto_o his_o supper_n wherefore_o although_o spiritual_a eat_v of_o his_o flesh_n be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o that_o singular_a act_n by_o which_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n have_v virtue_n to_o feed_v unto_o eternal_a life_n and_o be_v give_v for_o meat_n be_v not_o then_o perform_v but_o be_v soon_o after_o accomplish_v in_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n for_o all_o benefit_n of_o christ_n have_v like_o stream_n flow_v always_o from_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o cross_n and_o our_o redemption_n and_o reconciliation_n thereby_o if_o saunder_n will_v excuse_v himself_o of_o falsify_v the_o scripture_n because_o the_o vulgar_a translation_n in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o the_o sentence_n leave_v out_o these_o word_n which_o i_o will_v give_v which_o it_o be_v certain_a by_o the_o greek_a text_n of_o saint_n john_n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v speak_v he_o can_v so_o escape_v for_o the_o latin_a text_n without_o his_o prejudicate_a opinion_n bring_v unto_o it_o although_o it_o want_v the_o word_n yet_o may_v well_o retain_v the_o sense_n but_o saunder_n wilful_o leave_v out_o these_o word_n which_o he_o know_v both_o to_o have_v be_v use_v by_o christ_n and_o which_o give_v a_o clear_a and_o clean_o contrary_a sense_n to_o that_o which_o he_o affirm_v and_o that_o in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n as_o be_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n witting_o incur_v the_o horrible_a curse_n of_o god_n pronounce_v against_o all_o they_o that_o add_v or_o take_v any_o thing_n from_o his_o holy_a word_n cap._n ii_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o circumstance_n and_o by_o the_o conference_n of_o holy_a saunder_n scripture_n that_o christ_n speak_v in_o saint_n john_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n the_o circumstance_n be_v 6._o the_o conference_n 17._o and_o yet_o fulk_n neither_o any_o one_o nor_o altogether_o prove_v that_o christ_n speak_v of_o his_o supper_n otherwise_o then_o as_o it_o be_v a_o seal_n of_o the_o do_v ctrine_n which_o he_o teach_v in_o that_o chapter_n the_o first_o circumstance_n be_v the_o time_n which_o he_o suppose_v to_o be_v easter_n twelvemonth_n before_o his_o supper_n institute_v to_o argue_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o his_o supper_n be_v a_o vain_a argument_n both_o because_o the_o time_n be_v uncertain_a and_o also_o because_o the_o time_n of_o easter_n if_o it_o be_v certain_a have_v better_a relation_n to_o his_o passion_n then_o to_o his_o supper_n the_o 2._o circumstance_n be_v the_o miracle_n make_v in_o bread_n a_o ridiculous_a matter_n as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o make_v also_o in_o flesh_n but_o in_o deed_n the_o
hand_n &c_n &c_n this_o be_v the_o passeover_n that_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o passeover_n you_o see_v that_o the_o pronowne_a be_v the_o singular_a number_n may_v demonstrate_v a_o singular_a substance_n but_o with_o all_o action_n belong_v to_o it_o cap._n vi_o that_o the_o pronowne_a this_o point_v final_o to_o the_o body_n &_o bâââd_n saunder_n and_o particular_o signify_v inchristes_n supper_n one_o certain_a kind_n of_o food_n he_o take_v for_o prove_v that_o which_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v untrue_a fulk_n that_o the_o pronowne_a this_o point_v not_o the_o bread_n &_o wine_n and_o thereof_o conclude_v that_o it_o point_v only_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o the_o first_o be_v false_a ergo_fw-la the_o late_a but_o if_o you_o be_v so_o hasty_a say_v saunder_n that_o you_o will_v not_o tarry_v the_o speak_n of_o four_o word_n to_o know_v what_o particular_a and_o final_a substance_n the_o pronown_a this_o do_v point_n unto_o than_o this_o do_v mean_a this_o eatable_a thing_n sir_n our_o haste_n be_v not_o so_o great_a but_o we_o can_v stay_v a_o much_o long_a time_n to_o know_v our_o master_n meaning_n but_o see_v you_o bear_v we_o in_o hand_n that_o one_o substance_n be_v make_v of_o another_o by_o these_o word_n speak_v which_o ask_v a_o time_n in_o speak_v and_o you_o yourselves_o determine_v at_o what_o instant_n the_o change_n be_v souden_o make_v all_o at_o once_o and_o will_v prove_v the_o same_o by_o the_o pronowne_a this_o and_o every_o other_o of_o the_o word_n you_o must_v give_v we_o leave_v to_o consider_v every_o moment_n of_o time_n in_o which_o they_o be_v speak_v for_o then_o every_o word_n be_v true_a when_o the_o thing_n whereof_o the_o word_n be_v sign_n agree_v with_o the_o word_n in_o that_o time_n in_o which_o they_o be_v utter_v for_o this_o proposition_n every_o man_n be_v dead_a can_v be_v true_a because_o every_o man_n shall_v die_v before_o every_o man_n be_v dead_a and_o to_o that_o you_o say_v this_o mean_v this_o eatable_a thing_n i_o affirm_v you_o be_v never_o the_o near_o for_o if_o there_o be_v not_o bread_n what_o thing_n be_v there_o eatable_a before_o it_o be_v the_o bodyâ_n and_o the_o body_n it_o be_v not_o before_o the_o word_n be_v all_o utter_v if_o by_o a_o eatable_a thing_n you_o mean_v duns_n his_o individuum_fw-la vagum_fw-la than_o you_o renounce_v your_o former_a position_n so_o often_o advouch_v that_o the_o pronowne_a this_o point_v to_o a_o certain_a substance_n and_o so_o you_o be_v rap_v on_o the_o scoâse_n on_o both_o side_n and_o with_o your_o own_o staff_n cap._n vii_o the_o name_n of_o the_o chalice_n proove_v not_o the_o rest_n of_o christ_n sande_n word_n to_o be_v figurative_a he_o be_v a_o mad_a man_n that_o will_v reason_v so_o that_o because_o fulke_n one_o word_n be_v figurative_a all_o the_o rest_n must_v be_v figurative_a but_o this_o be_v a_o good_a argument_n one_o word_n be_v figurative_a ergo_fw-la more_o may_v be_v and_o figurative_a speech_n be_v net_n inconvenient_a to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o institution_n of_o a_o sacrament_n therefore_o saunder_n may_v have_v spare_v his_o seven_o reason_n which_o he_o bring_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o chalis_fw-la proove_v not_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o word_n to_o be_v figurative_a but_o the_o name_n of_o the_o chalis_fw-la the_o new_a testament_n in_o his_o blood_n do_v invincible_o prove_v all_o the_o other_o speech_n to_o be_v figurative_a for_o the_o same_o sense_n be_v of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n and_o of_o these_o this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n but_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o latter_a word_n be_v figurative_a not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o word_n chalis_fw-la but_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o his_o blood_n ergo_fw-la the_o sense_n of_o the_o former_a word_n be_v figurative_a and_o whereas_o saunder_n say_v the_o apostle_n can_v not_o conjecture_v that_o est_fw-la be_v put_v for_o significat_fw-la which_o few_o but_o great_a doctor_n can_v discern_v token_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v sometime_o call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o thing_n themselves_o i_o say_v he_o do_v the_o apostle_n wrong_v who_o be_v bring_v up_o in_o the_o daily_o exercise_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o law_n can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a that_o the_o lamb_n be_v call_v the_o passeover_n whereof_o it_o be_v a_o token_n and_o circumcision_n the_o covenant_n of_o god_n whereof_o it_o be_v a_o seal_n and_o so_o of_o many_o other_o but_o these_o two_o be_v their_o principal_a sacrament_n unto_o which_o with_o we_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n do_v answer_v cap._n viii_o that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n supper_n be_v proper_a though_o many_o other_o be_v figurative_a and_o unproper_a saunder_n why_o these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v not_o like_o other_o of_o his_o say_n in_o which_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v fulk_n the_o door_n the_o way_n the_o true_a vine_n john_n bapt._n to_o be_v elias_n or_o the_o rock_n to_o be_v christ_n he_o promise_v to_o declare_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n which_o be_v special_o entitle_v against_o master_n nowel_n challenge_n and_o by_o he_o thorough_o confute_v the_o universal_a consent_n that_o he_o boast_v of_o in_o discern_v of_o figurative_a speech_n can_v never_o be_v prove_v to_o have_v receive_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n for_o proper_a two_o reason_n yet_o he_o allege_v why_o none_o of_o those_o proposition_n do_v so_o much_o as_o seem_v to_o sound_v like_o the_o word_n of_o the_o supper_n one_o for_o that_o they_o name_v two_o several_a nature_n as_o john_n baptist_n and_o elias_n that_o be_v false_a for_o not_o name_v john_n baptist_n christ_n say_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d this_o be_v helias_n the_o other_o they_o speak_v not_o of_o any_o certain_a thing_n or_o else_o they_o point_v not_o to_o it_o as_o to_o a_o thing_n present_a this_o be_v likewise_o false_a for_o helias_n be_v a_o certain_a thing_n and_o he_o that_o be_v point_v unto_o by_o the_o pronâune_n this_o be_v present_a last_o of_o all_o where_o he_o challenge_v we_o to_o show_v where_o that_o proposition_n be_v figurative_a which_o first_o institute_v and_o make_v any_o thing_n i_o have_v show_v before_o that_o the_o proposition_n which_o god_n use_v institute_v and_o make_v the_o sacrament_n of_o circumcision_n and_o the_o paschal_n be_v figurative_a for_o speak_v of_o circumcsion_n of_o the_o flesh_n he_o say_v to_o abraham_n this_o be_v my_o covenant_n gen._n 17._o and_o of_o the_o lamb_n to_o be_v slay_v and_o use_v as_o he_o appoint_v he_o say_v you_o shall_v eat_v it_o in_o haste_n for_o it_o be_v the_o passeover_n of_o the_o lord_n these_o be_v word_n of_o institution_n yet_o be_v they_o figurative_a for_o circumcision_n be_v not_o the_o covenant_n nor_o the_o lamb_n the_o passeover_n but_o figurative_o seal_v sign_n and_o token_n of_o they_o cap._n ix_o it_o be_v show_v by_o 27_o circumstance_n of_o christ_n supper_n that_o he_o saunder_n make_v his_o real_a flesh_n and_o blood_n present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o consequent_o that_o his_o word_n be_v proper_a the_o first_o circumstance_n of_o christ_n last_o supper_n be_v to_o consider_v who_o make_v it_o how_o necessary_a the_o consideration_n of_o the_o circumstance_n of_o every_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v for_o the_o true_a understanding_n fulke_n thereof_o every_o wise_a man_n will_v acknowledge_v but_o no_o circumstance_n alone_o nor_o all_o the_o circumstance_n together_o do_v prove_v these_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v proper_a and_o not_o figurative_a as_o first_o we_o acknowledge_v the_o maker_n of_o the_o supper_n to_o be_v almighty_a to_o do_v whatsoever_o it_o please_v he_o but_o although_o he_o be_v send_v in_o the_o flesh_n to_o man_n that_o be_v flesh_n promise_v his_o flesh_n and_o give_v his_o flesh_n all_o which_o we_o constant_o believe_v yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o he_o purpose_v to_o give_v his_o flesh_n in_o the_o sacrament_n after_o his_o incarnation_n otherwise_o than_o he_o give_v it_o to_o the_o patriarch_n before_o his_o incarnation_n acknowledge_v also_o the_o providence_n wisdom_n truth_n and_o goodness_n of_o the_o speaker_n we_o affirm_v that_o he_o speak_v here_o most_o wise_o provident_o true_o and_o well_o but_o yet_o figurative_o without_o that_o he_o do_v blind_a his_o spouse_n with_o figurative_a word_n as_o saunder_n say_v which_o he_o do_v no_o more_o than_o god_n blind_v his_o spouse_n the_o church_n of_o israel_n with_o figurative_a word_n when_o he_o speak_v figurative_o in_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o circumcision_n and_o of_o the_o paschall_n lamb_n the_o second_o circumstance_n may_v be_v to_o consider_v the_o time_n when_o saunder_n the_o supper_n be_v make_v the_o
ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o must_v needs_o be_v reser_v to_o corpus_fw-la and_o can_v be_v refer_v to_o figura_fw-la corporis_fw-la and_o here_o he_o obte_v that_o he_o may_v be_v instruct_v wherein_o he_o do_v misconstrue_v the_o word_n i_o have_v already_o satisfy_v his_o request_n and_o further_o i_o say_v he_o do_v without_o all_o grammar_n rhetoric_n logic_n philosophy_n and_o divinity_n refer_v hoc_fw-la to_o corpus_fw-la which_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o that_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v in_o his_o hand_n which_o by_o their_o own_o popish_a divinity_n can_v be_v nothing_o but_o bread_n before_o he_o have_v speak_v out_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n as_o for_o he_o that_o will_v lay_v the_o figure_n in_o the_o verb_n ãâã_d to_o take_v it_o for_o significat_fw-la saunder_n count_v he_o a_o ignorant_a man_n because_o it_o must_v be_v resolve_v by_o est_fw-la significant_a and_o then_o the_o reason_n of_o signify_v shall_v be_v find_v in_o the_o noun_n body_n rather_o then_o in_o the_o verb_n is_n for_o which_o cause_n occolampadius_n admit_v either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o that_o be_v est_fw-fr for_o significat_fw-la or_o copus_fw-la for_o signum_fw-la corporis_fw-la in_o deed_n the_o matter_n be_v not_o great_a for_o the_o sense_n but_o when_o you_o call_v we_o to_o construe_v the_o word_n by_o grammar_n but_o take_v the_o proposition_n thus_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la significans_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la i_o say_v the_o reason_n of_o signify_v consist_v not_o in_o the_o word_n bodie_n but_o in_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o proposition_n which_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o body_n although_o significans_fw-la follow_v the_o verb_n est_fw-fr for_o the_o action_n of_o signify_v pertain_v to_o the_o bread_n the_o passion_n signify_v pertain_v to_o the_o body_n where_o saunder_n challenge_v all_o the_o grammarian_n in_o christendom_n to_o find_v another_o construction_n i_o appeal_v to_o all_o the_o grammarian_n in_o the_o world_n whether_o these_o word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la quod_fw-la provobis_fw-la datur_fw-la may_v not_o be_v construe_v grammatical_o as_o well_o as_o these_o other_o example_n out_o of_o genesis_n exodus_fw-la and_o a_o thousand_o more_o of_o like_a that_o may_v be_v add_v the_o 19_o circumstance_n of_o the_o verb_n facere_fw-la to_o do_v or_o make_v or_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n saunder_n the_o verb_n facere_fw-la which_o signify_v most_o general_o make_v and_o do_v he_o will_v have_v now_o to_o signify_v offer_v fulke_n sacrifice_n because_o that_o be_v the_o most_o excellent_a deed_n that_o can_v be_v make_v which_o be_v a_o mad_a reason_n if_o christ_n which_o do_v always_o the_o best_a thing_n shall_v be_v say_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n so_o often_o as_o he_o say_v facere_fw-la for_o every_o thing_n that_o he_o do_v be_v the_o best_a in_o all_o respect_n that_o he_o do_v it_o but_o to_o prove_v that_o facere_fw-la signify_v sometime_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n he_o quote_v two_o place_n of_o scripture_n but_o reherse_v neither_o of_o both_o for_o shame_n the_o first_o 3_o reg._n 18._o where_o elias_n say_v to_o the_o baalite_n ego_fw-la faciam_fw-la bovem_fw-la alterum_fw-la where_o facere_fw-la signify_v not_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n but_o to_o prepare_v or_o dress_v or_o make_v ready_a a_o ox_n or_o at_o the_o least_o be_v take_v for_o interficere_fw-la to_o kill_v a_o ox_n which_o afterward_o be_v lay_v on_o the_o woâde_n and_o offer_v by_o invocation_n the_o other_o place_n leu._n 15._o be_v of_o two_o turtle_n dove_n faciet_fw-la unum_fw-la pro_fw-la peccato_fw-la &_o alterum_fw-la in_o holocauslum_fw-la he_o shall_v prepare_v the_o one_o for_o a_o sin_n offer_v and_o the_o other_o to_o be_v a_o burn_a offering_n where_o facere_fw-la signify_v as_o before_o to_o make_v ready_a by_o kill_v draw_v wash_v and_o dress_v as_o the_o law_n prescribe_v the_o same_o hebrew_n verb_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o be_v use_v in_o both_o place_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o calf_n that_o abraham_n make_v ready_a for_o his_o guest_n the_o old_a interpreter_n turn_v by_o the_o verb_n coquo_fw-la which_o signify_v to_o dress_v as_o a_o cook_n dress_v genesis_n 18._o wherefore_o we_o have_v not_o yet_o find_v facere_fw-la in_o the_o scripture_n for_o sacrificare_fw-la to_o offer_v sacrifice_n but_o saunder_n say_v it_o skâleth_v not_o whether_o it_o be_v join_v with_o another_o word_n in_o the_o accusative_a or_o ablative_a case_n or_o stand_v alone_o do_v insinuate_v that_o although_o in_o scripture_n it_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v that_o signification_n yet_o in_o some_o other_o writer_n it_o be_v use_v for_o sacrificare_fw-la join_v with_o a_o noun_n of_o the_o ablative_a case_n namely_o in_o virgil_n cùm_fw-la faciam_fw-la vitula_fw-la pro_fw-la frugibus_fw-la ipse_fw-la venito_fw-la where_o yet_o a_o good_a grammarian_n will_v not_o construe_v facere_fw-la absolute_o to_o sacrifice_n but_o understand_v oblationen_fw-mi or_o rem_fw-la diâânam_fw-la or_o some_o such_o like_a word_n but_o in_o our_o text_n the_o circumstance_n of_o deed_n and_o word_n say_v he_o do_v make_v it_o so_o to_o signify_v first_o because_o the_o 14._o day_n at_o evening_n he_o begin_v the_o bless_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o passion_n second_o he_o have_v offer_v the_o old_a paschal_n lamb_n the_o chief_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n these_o two_o circumstance_n show_v it_o be_v time_n to_o go_v about_o his_o only_a sacrifice_n on_o the_o cross_n they_o prove_v not_o that_o he_o offer_v another_o sacrifice_n at_o the_o table_z three_o hetoke_v bread_n and_o wine_n into_o his_o hand_n part_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o melchisedek_n i_o answer_v the_o scripture_n tell_v we_o not_o of_o any_o such_o sacrifice_n of_o melchisedek_n four_o he_o bless_a and_o give_v thanks_n wherein_o he_o consecrate_v his_o own_o body_n the_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o mankind_n i_o answer_v his_o own_o body_n have_v no_o need_n of_o consecration_n he_o consecrate_a bread_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n which_o be_v not_o the_o only_a sacrifice_n for_o mankind_n which_o be_v but_o once_o and_o no_o more_o offer_v or_o to_o be_v offer_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v oftentimes_o offer_v up_o himself_o say_v the_o apostle_n heb._n 9_o for_o 25._o wherefore_o his_o commandment_n hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la do_v this_o be_v not_o to_o make_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o he_o make_v not_o but_o cyptian_n say_v saunder_n take_v the_o verb_n facere_fw-la so_o lib._n 2._o ep._n 3._o jesus_n christus_fw-la etc._n etc._n jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o god_n himself_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o first_o have_v offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o god_n the_o father_n et_fw-la hoc_fw-la fieri_fw-la ãâã_d svi_fw-la commemorationem_fw-la praecepit_fw-la and_o have_v command_v this_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v in_o his_o remembrance_n that_o fieri_fw-la signify_v here_o not_o offerri_fw-la but_o general_o have_v relation_n to_o all_o that_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o the_o whole_a argument_n of_o the_o epistle_n which_o be_v against_o minister_a with_o water_n only_o but_o also_o the_o very_a word_n follow_v which_o saunder_n have_v fraudulent_o cut_v off_o declare_v sufficient_o utique_fw-la ille_fw-la saccrdo_n vice_fw-la christi_fw-la verè_fw-la fungitur_fw-la qui_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la christus_fw-la fecit_fw-la imitatur_fw-la &c_n &c_n very_o that_o priest_n do_v true_o supply_v the_o room_n of_o christ_n which_o imitate_v that_o which_o christ_n have_v do_v and_o then_o he_o offer_v a_o true_a and_o full_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n the_o father_n in_o the_o church_n if_o he_o so_o begin_v to_o offer_v according_a as_o he_o may_v see_v christ_n himself_o to_o have_v offer_v nay_o that_o cyprian_a mean_v not_o that_o christ_n in_o his_o supper_n do_v offer_v his_o own_o body_n in_o sacrifice_n to_o his_o father_n for_o redemption_n of_o he_o world_n but_o only_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n and_o command_v the_o same_o to_o be_v keep_v in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o passion_n cyprian_n himself_o testify_v in_o the_o same_o epistle_n et_fw-la quia_fw-la passionis_fw-la eius_fw-la mentionem_fw-la in_o sacrificijs_fw-la omnibus_fw-la facimus_fw-la passio_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la domini_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la quod_fw-la offerimus_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la quà m_fw-la quod_fw-la ille_fw-la fecit_fw-la facere_fw-la debemus_fw-la and_o because_o we_o make_v mention_n of_o his_o passion_n in_o all_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o we_o offer_v be_v the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n we_o ought_v to_o do_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o he_o himself_o do_v note_v here_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o cyprian_n offer_v be_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n as_o well_o as_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n proper_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n proper_o i_o may_v allege_v other_o place_n out_o of_o that_o epistle_n to_o refel_v the_o impudency_n of_o saunder_n
all_o out_o over_o it_o the_o verb_n be_v in_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v give_v be_v my_o flesh_n although_o it_o respect_v the_o natural_a flesh_n of_o christ_n yet_o it_o proove_v not_o that_o the_o verb_n be_v in_o the_o supper_n must_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o son_n more_o than_o the_o same_o verb_n in_o saint_n paul_n the_o rock_n be_v christ_n yet_o because_o you_o may_v see_v what_o a_o foolish_a conference_n saunder_n make_v of_o word_n i_o will_v reason_n with_o he_o in_o his_o own_o sense_n and_o overthrow_v he_o in_o his_o own_o conference_n i_o say_v not_o say_v saunder_n that_o the_o bread_n shall_v be_v but_o the_o bread_n be_v my_o flesh_n if_o the_o bread_n be_v his_o flesh_n than_o his_o flesh_n be_v the_o bread_n and_o if_o the_o word_n bread_n signify_v a_o eatable_a thing_n as_o we_o have_v be_v often_o tell_v then_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o eatable_a thing_n when_o he_o so_o say_v and_o consequent_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o say_v he_o will_v give_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n may_v be_v eat_v before_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o word_n communicate_v be_v the_o next_o matter_n of_o conference_n which_o be_v use_v of_o s._n paul_n do_v interpret_v the_o verb_n be_v to_o signify_v a_o substantial_a and_o not_o a_o accidental_a be_v for_o communicate_v do_v show_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v common_a between_o it_o and_o christ_n flesh_n no_o division_n no_o separation_n no_o distinction_n come_v between_o these_o two_o but_o a_o barâ_n sign_n of_o bread_n can_v make_v no_o such_o communicate_v because_o it_o be_v clean_o of_o another_o kind_n etc._n etc._n that_o sanders_n argument_n may_v be_v the_o strong_a he_o dispute_v against_o that_o often_o time_n which_o we_o utter_o deny_v for_o we_o never_o say_v that_o natural_a bread_n or_o a_o bare_a sign_n can_v make_v we_o to_o have_v communion_n with_o christ_n but_o the_o very_a body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n yet_o not_o corporal_o but_o spiritual_o join_v unto_o we_o of_o which_o communicate_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v effectual_a seal_n &_o sacrament_n as_o for_o sanders_n assertion_n of_o communicate_v to_o signify_v all_o thing_n common_a between_o christ_n and_o we_o not_o only_o without_o division_n but_o even_o with_o out_o distinction_n be_v horrible_a heresy_n and_o detestable_a blasphemy_n saint_n john_n ep._n 1._o cap._n 1._o use_v the_o same_o word_n often_o say_v that_o we_o have_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d communicate_v with_o god_n the_o father_n and_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n have_v we_o then_o all_o thing_n common_a with_o god_n the_o father_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o distinction_n between_o we_o and_o he_o o_o intolerable_a blasphemy_n the_o same_o apostle_n say_v we_o have_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d communicate_v one_o with_o another_o by_o which_o he_o not_o only_o show_v that_o the_o word_n of_o communicate_v signify_v not_o all_o that_o which_o saunder_n say_v it_o do_v but_o also_o teach_v that_o our_o communicate_v with_o christ_n and_o with_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n be_v spiritual_a whereof_o s._n paul_n speak_v 1._o cor._n 10._o we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o body_n etc._n etc._n and_o last_o of_o all_o that_o we_o have_v this_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d or_o communicate_v by_o other_o mean_n then_o by_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n that_o we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v say_v saint_n john_n we_o preach_v unto_o you_o that_o you_o also_o may_v have_v communicate_v with_o we_o &_o that_o our_o communicate_v may_v be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o with_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ._n again_o if_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n as_o he_o be_v light_a we_o have_v communicate_v one_o with_o another_o and_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n do_v purge_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n the_o last_o word_n of_o conference_n be_v body_n and_o blood_n for_o which_o he_o heap_v up_o so_o many_o text_n as_o they_o be_v name_v in_o and_o more_o then_o either_o they_o be_v name_v &_o mean_v in_o to_o prove_v that_o body_n and_o blood_n stand_v not_o for_o sign_n or_o figure_n of_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o in_o the_o end_n conclude_v that_o because_o these_o word_n be_v take_v proper_o therefore_o to_o defend_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n supper_n to_o be_v figurative_a be_v ignorance_n in_o grammar_n and_o logic_n blindness_n in_o divinity_n malice_n inexcusable_a in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n but_o so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v but_o sander_n sophistical_a conclusion_n it_o be_v little_a to_o be_v regard_v what_o logic_n divinity_n or_o conscience_n he_o have_v that_o reason_v thus_o let_v all_o the_o logician_n divine_n and_o man_n of_o good_a conscience_n consider_v until_o christ_n come_v and_o judge_v all_o thing_n the_o word_n body_n in_o this_o say_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v not_o figurative_a therefore_o the_o whole_a say_n be_v not_o figurative_a this_o signify_v a_o general_a thing_n and_o not_o that_o thing_n in_o his_o hand_n be_v declare_v that_o to_o be_v present_o which_o be_v not_o until_o all_o the_o word_n be_v say_v body_n be_v take_v proper_o therefore_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o whole_a say_n utter_v together_o can_v be_v figurative_a but_o now_o we_o shall_v see_v conference_n of_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n it_o be_v evident_a he_o say_v that_o john_n be_v not_o elias_n and_o use_v many_o argument_n to_o prove_v it_o yet_o will_v he_o admit_v no_o argument_n out_o of_o the_o present_a word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o say_n be_v figurative_a as_o well_o as_o this_o be_v elias_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v more_o odds_n between_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o natural_a bread_n then_o he_o say_v be_v manifest_a between_o john_n and_o elias_n second_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n must_v needs_o be_v figurative_a because_o it_o speak_v of_o two_o diverse_a nature_n as_o though_o bread_n and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o two_o diverse_a nature_n but_o there_o be_v no_o conversion_n of_o any_o rock_n into_o christ_n for_o christ_n do_v neither_o say_v of_o the_o rock_n this_o be_v my_o body_n nor_o command_v we_o so_o to_o say_v see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v the_o rock_n be_v christ_n who_o doubt_v but_o that_o it_o be_v so_o by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n although_o not_o express_v by_o moses_n and_o see_v the_o apostle_n speak_v so_o in_o the_o time_n past_a who_o will_v deny_v but_o that_o moses_n or_o any_o man_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n at_o such_o time_n as_o the_o israelite_n do_v drink_v of_o it_o may_v have_v say_v of_o the_o rock_n this_o be_v christ_n the_o other_o place_n which_o prove_v the_o absence_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o humane_a nature_n from_o the_o world_n as_o the_o poor_a you_o shall_v have_v always_o but_o i_o you_o shall_v not_o have_v always_o he_o be_v rise_v he_o be_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n saunder_n say_v they_o deny_v not_o his_o invisible_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n nether_a be_v any_o thing_n impossible_a to_o god_n and_o christ_n sit_v in_o heaven_n be_v almighty_a etc._n etc._n but_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o tell_v his_o apostle_n that_o they_o shall_v see_v he_o no_o more_o after_o his_o ascension_n say_v i_o go_v to_o my_o father_n and_o you_o shall_v see_v i_o no_o more_o john_n 16._o for_o 10._o but_o also_o he_o tell_v they_o plain_o and_o without_o any_o parable_n as_o they_o confess_v that_o he_o leave_v the_o world_n and_o go_v to_o his_o father_n io._n 16._o ver_fw-la 20._o whereas_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o world_n when_o he_o only_o depart_v out_o of_o sight_n and_o purpose_v still_o to_o be_v present_a invisible_o he_o have_v not_o speak_v plain_o but_o very_o dark_o whereas_o chrysostom_n de_fw-fr sacerd_v lib._n 3._o say_v it_o be_v a_o great_a miracle_n that_o he_o which_o sit_v with_o his_o father_n in_o heaven_n at_o the_o same_o instant_n be_v touch_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o man_n and_o deliver_v himself_o to_o those_o that_o will_v touch_v and_o embrace_v he_o it_o be_v manifest_a he_o speak_v of_o the_o heavenly_a mystery_n figurative_o for_o immediate_o before_o he_o say_v when_o thou_o see_v turbam_fw-la circumfusam_fw-la pretioso_fw-la illo_fw-la sanguine_fw-la intingi_fw-la ac_fw-la rubâfieri_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o people_n stand_v about_o to_o be_v dip_v and_o make_v read_v with_o that_o precious_a blood_n do_v thou_o think_v thou_o be_v still_o among_o mortal_a man_n and_o stand_v upon_o the_o earth_n be_v thou_o not_o rather_o immediate_o remove_v into_o the_o heaven_n do_v thou_o not_o cast_v away_o all_o cogitation_n
the_o other_o although_o he_o speak_v contrary_a to_o popery_n which_o teach_v the_o presence_n to_o be_v after_o consecration_n and_o not_o at_o the_o time_n of_o consecrate_v but_o what_o bridle_n may_v hold_v in_o the_o shameless_a fury_n of_o saunder_n the_o three_o figure_n be_v of_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n which_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o so_o apply_v by_o s._n john_n in_o that_o say_n you_o shall_v not_o break_v a_o bone_n of_o he_o joan._n 19_o &_o s._n paul_n 1._o cor._n 5._o &_o not_o a_o figure_n of_o the_o supper_n from_o which_o as_o it_o differ_v in_o sign_n so_o it_o be_v all_o one_o in_o the_o thing_n signify_v the_o four_o be_v the_o pprophecy_n and_o figure_n of_o manna_n which_o as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v 1._o cor._n 10_o be_v the_o same_o spiritual_a meat_n that_o we_o eat_v &_o not_o a_o figure_n thereof_o but_o a_o sacrament_n of_o our_o spiritual_a feed_n by_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n like_v as_o the_o water_n of_o the_o rock_n which_o be_v christ_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o our_o spiritual_a nourishment_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n wherefore_o the_o part_n of_o this_o comparison_n as_o they_o have_v be_v all_o answer_v before_o in_o the_o three_o book_n so_o they_o be_v of_o no_o force_n to_o prove_v the_o real_a presence_n or_o transubstantiation_n but_o the_o contrary_a see_v the_o difference_n of_o these_o two_o sacrament_n manna_n and_o the_o lord_n bread_n be_v only_o in_o the_o sign_n &_o nothing_o at_o all_o in_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v according_a to_o s._n aug._n rule_n the_o fist_n figure_n be_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n whereunto_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n shed_v on_o the_o cross_n do_v answer_v as_o the_o apostle_n manifest_o teach_v heb._n 9_o therefore_o these_o word_n of_o the_o supper_n this_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o necessity_n must_v be_v figurative_a even_o as_o these_o which_o be_v of_o the_o same_o sense_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n for_o we_o may_v not_o so_o far_o advance_v the_o sacrament_n that_o we_o abase_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o only_a sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n the_o sixth_o be_v the_o prophecy_n and_o figure_n of_o job_n which_o be_v a_o manifest_a pervert_v of_o the_o scripture_n from_o the_o true_a meaning_n for_o either_o job_n complain_v of_o the_o cruelty_n of_o his_o servant_n that_o will_v even_o eat_v his_o flesh_n in_o his_o adversity_n and_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o love_n that_o his_o servant_n have_v to_o be_v join_v unto_o his_o flesh_n as_o the_o context_n of_o that_o place_n job._n 31._o do_v evident_o show_v or_o else_o he_o show_v the_o complaint_n of_o his_o servant_n that_o be_v so_o occupy_v in_o hospitality_n that_o they_o have_v no_o leisure_n to_o eat_v their_o meat_n and_o therefore_o desire_v to_o eat_v the_o mere_a that_o be_v provide_v for_o the_o stranger_n or_o if_o with_o chrysost._n we_o shall_v understand_v their_o desire_n to_o be_v of_o eat_v of_o job_n flesh_n yet_o it_o perrein_v not_o to_o transubstantiation_n see_v we_o may_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n without_o eat_v of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o seven_o conference_n be_v of_o prophecy_n take_v out_o of_o david_n and_o solomon_n whereas_o neither_o of_o both_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n david_n say_v psa._n 22._o thou_o have_v prepare_v a_o table_n in_o my_o sight_n against_o they_o who_o afflict_v i_o by_o which_o word_n he_o show_v how_o bountiful_o god_n have_v bestow_v his_o benifâââ_n upon_o he_o both_o in_o this_o life_n and_o also_o with_o assurance_n of_o the_o ãâã_d to_o come_v without_o any_o special_a regard_n unto_o the_o supper_n of_o christ_n or_o any_o sacrament_n that_o be_v of_o the_o same_o signification_n unto_o he_o the_o say_n of_o solomon_n pro._n 9_o i_o have_v a_o swer_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o work_n where_o it_o be_v place_v by_o saunder_n the_o 8._o conference_n be_v another_o prophecy_n of_o david_n where_o he_o say_v all_o that_o be_v fat_a upon_o earth_n have_v eat_v &_o adore_v saunder_n say_v they_o have_v adore_v that_o which_o they_o do_v eat_v but_o david_n say_v not_o so_o ps._n 21._o but_o that_o they_o shall_v worship_v god_n the_o author_n of_o their_o food_n as_o it_o follow_v immediate_o they_o shall_v all_o fall_v down_o etc._n etc._n and_o whereas_o saunder_n quote_v aug._n in_o ps._n 98._o to_o justify_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n the_o footstool_n wherein_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n corporal_o dwell_v you_o shall_v understand_v that_o augustine_n utter_o deni_v the_o lord_n supper_n to_o be_v that_o body_n that_o be_v crucify_v but_o a_o sacrament_n which_o be_v spiritual_o understand_v shall_v quicken_v us._n the_o last_o conference_n be_v of_o many_o prophecy_n &_o figure_n join_v together_o as_o he_o say_v for_o brevity_n sake_n the_o first_o be_v of_o no_o be_v naked_a after_o he_o be_v drink_v &_o laugh_v to_o scorn_v of_o his_o son_n so_o say_v saunder_n be_v christ_n after_o he_o have_v drink_v his_o own_o blood_n in_o his_o supper_n which_o he_o plant_v for_o himself_o in_o the_o virgin_n womb_n hang_v naked_a &_o laugh_v to_o scorn_v not_o only_o of_o the_o jew_n but_o also_o of_o the_o sacramentary_n for_o so_o gross_a a_o deed_n that_o he_o drink_v his_o own_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n what_o shall_v i_o say_v to_o this_o monstrous_a blasphemy_n wherein_o he_o compare_v that_o filthy_a drunkenness_n &_o shameless_a nakedness_n of_o noah_n to_o the_o holy_a mystery_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n after_o this_o he_o join_v the_o cake_n that_o abraham_n set_v before_o the_o angel_n as_o figure_n of_o that_o mystical_a cake_n which_o be_v to_o come_v in_o christ_n supper_n but_o whereof_o then_o be_v the_o butter_n milk_n &_o calf_n flesh_n figure_n o_o madness_n more_o than_o folly_n for_o now_o wheresoever_o bread_n corn_n wine_n vine_n fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v name_v all_o be_v figure_n of_o the_o sacrament_n wherein_o yet_o he_o say_v be_v neither_o bread_n nor_o wine_n nor_o substance_n of_o any_o earthly_a fruit_n isaac_n bless_a jacob_n which_o corn_n &_o wine_n say_v to_o esau_n what_o can_v i_o do_v more_o to_o theeâ_n jacob_n prophesy_v of_o the_o fat_a bread_n of_o aser_n that_o shall_v give_v dainty_n to_o the_o faithful_a king_n of_o that_o church_n god_n promise_v as_o the_o high_a reward_n for_o keep_v of_o his_o commandment_n to_o bless_v the_o loaf_n of_o his_o people_n &_o to_o give_v abundance_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o saunder_n on_o this_o sort_n to_o play_v with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o may_v prove_v what_o he_o listen_v and_o more_o probable_o may_v we_o prove_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n to_o remain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o which_o the_o scripture_n speak_v so_o often_o with_o so_o great_a commendation_n if_o we_o shall_v reason_v after_o his_o manner_n as_o for_o the_o meat_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n the_o she_o we_o bread_n the_o priest_n joave_n they_o be_v in_o deed_n figure_n ofy_v e_o spiritual_a feed_n that_o both_o they_o &_o we_o have_v &_o have_v of_o yâ_z flesh_n of_o christ._n but_o the_o curse_n of_o elies_n house_n that_o his_o posterity_n shall_v come_v &_o beg_v a_o morsel_n of_o bread_n at_o the_o successor_n of_o sadoc_n it_o be_v a_o gross_a profanation_n of_o god_n word_n to_o apply_v it_o to_o a_o submission_n of_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n to_o obtain_v the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o dissemble_n of_o david_n before_o achis_n which_o come_v of_o infidelity_n be_v blasphemous_a to_o apply_v to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o especial_o with_o such_o term_n as_o saunder_n use_v at_o his_o last_o supper_n he_o drivele_v like_o a_o child_n to_o their_o seem_n that_o be_v wise_a in_o the_o world_n he_o change_v his_o countenance_n and_o carry_v himself_o after_o a_o sort_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n when_o hold_v and_o give_v to_o be_v eat_v that_o which_o seem_v bread_n he_o doubt_v not_o to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n etc._n etc._n for_o christ_n carry_v himself_o after_o a_o sort_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n augustine_n be_v cite_v in_o ps._n 33._o who_o be_v delude_v with_o that_o fond_a translation_n &_o ferebatur_fw-la in_o manibus_fw-la suis_fw-la which_o be_v neither_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n text_n 1_o sam._n 21._o which_o say_v he_o play_v the_o mad_a man_n in_o their_o hand_n nor_o according_a to_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a which_o say_v &_o collabebatur_fw-la inter_fw-la manus_fw-la eorum_fw-la he_o fall_v down_o among_o their_o hand_n trouble_v himself_o to_o find_v how_o david_n as_o a_o figure_n of_o christ_n shall_v
i_o use_v in_o the_o chapter_n last_o before_o but_o saunder_n exclaim_v against_o the_o shameless_a interpretation_n of_o heretic_n which_o imagine_v that_o s._n paul_n say_v he_o that_o eat_v by_o mouth_n material_a bread_n at_o christ_n âââper_n refuse_v to_o eat_v by_o faith_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n sit_v in_o heaven_n ãâã_d guilty_a of_o not_o eat_v christ_n body_n who_o ever_o hear_v of_o such_o a_o ãâã_d nay_o rather_o who_o ever_o hear_v of_o such_o a_o lie_n for_o which_o of_o yâ_z sacramentary_n as_o you_o call_v they_o do_v so_o interpret_v s._n paul_n although_o we_o say_v that_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o christ_n body_n which_o contemn_v the_o same_o in_o his_o sacrament_n and_o either_o receive_v it_o negligent_o or_o else_o refuse_v to_o receive_v it_o contumelious_o for_o not_o only_o the_o reprobate_n receive_v unworthy_o but_o sometime_o also_o the_o elect_a of_o who_o the_o apostle_n especial_o speak_v dissuade_v they_o from_o receive_v unworthy_o whereby_o as_o by_o other_o sin_n they_o pro_fw-la voke_v god_n to_o punish_v they_o &_o deserve_v eternal_a damnation_n if_o god_n shall_v deal_v with_o they_o according_a to_o their_o desert_n but_o to_o condemn_v a_o man_n for_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n who_o do_v eat_v only_o the_o figure_n of_o it_o seem_v great_a unjustice_n to_o saunder_n and_o yet_o the_o scripture_n never_o say_v that_o any_o man_n be_v condemn_v for_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o for_o eat_v the_o sacrament_n unworthy_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n whereof_o that_o be_v a_o sacrament_n tush_o say_v saunder_n if_o it_o be_v so_o mean_v the_o talk_n of_o saint_n paul_n will_v no_o more_o hang_v together_o then_o if_o it_o be_v say_v he_o that_o touch_v unworthy_o the_o king_n garment_n be_v guilty_a of_o murder_v his_o person_n i_o answer_v first_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o thing_n that_o more_o near_o concern_v christ_n then_o the_o king_n garment_n do_v concern_v the_o king_n &_o therefore_o the_o similitude_n be_v nought_o but_o yet_o he_o that_o with_o contempt_n touch_v the_o king_n garment_n be_v guilty_a of_o contempt_n of_o the_o king_n person_n and_o he_o that_o of_o malice_n thrust_v his_o weapon_n through_o the_o king_n garment_n may_v just_o be_v guilty_a of_o murder_v his_o person_n even_o so_o and_o much_o rather_o as_o the_o neglect_n or_o contempt_n of_o the_o lord_n sa_fw-fr crament_n be_v less_o or_o more_o so_o much_o be_v the_o guiltiness_n against_o the_o lord_n person_n although_o his_o body_n &_o blood_n be_v no_o more_o touch_v by_o the_o contemner_n than_o the_o king_n person_n by_o the_o abuser_n of_o his_o garment_n image_n crown_n scepter_z seal_z or_o instrument_n saunder_n after_o this_o profess_v that_o he_o be_v loath_a to_o heap_v up_o in_o this_o place_n the_o manifold_a witness_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n concern_v that_o evil_a man_n eat_v christ_n body_n who_o word_n he_o have_v partly_o touch_v before_o li._n 2._o cap_n 3._o and_o i_o be_o as_o loath_a to_o repete_fw-la that_o i_o have_v so_o often_o answer_v un_o âo_o he_o &_o other_o therefore_o i_o will_v only_o note_v the_o place_n where_o ãâã_d father_n cite_v by_o saunder_n be_v both_o rehearse_v more_o at_o large_a &_o full_o answer_v namely_o theodoret_n in_o 1._o cor._n cap._n 11._o âllud_fw-la autem_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o my_o answer_n to_o d._n hesk_n li._n 3_o ca._n 52._o priâosius_n li._n 3._o ca._n 50_o sedulius_n ãâã_d ca_o 49._o s._n hierom_n in_o 1._o cor._n cap._n 11._o âi_fw-la 3._o ca._n 54_o chrysost_o in_o math._n hom._n 83._o li._n 3_o cap._n 46._o augustin_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la cont_n donatist_n li._n 5_o ca._n 8._o li_n 3._o ca_fw-mi 48._o as_o for_o haymo_n &_o theophylact_n late_a writer_n i_o will_v noâ_n staâd_v upon_o their_o authority_n there_o remain_v only_a cy_n ãâ¦ã_o l_o in_o joan._n li._n 9_o ca._n 19_o upon_o these_o wordâ_n exivit_fw-la conti_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o judas_n go_v out_o by_o &_o by_o after_o the_o supper_n etc._n etc._n which_o saunder_n cit_v thus_o timet_fw-la diabolus_fw-la benedictioris_fw-la virtutem_fw-la nâ_n sâintillam_fw-la in_o animo_fw-la cius_fw-la accenderit_fw-la the_o aâuell_n fear_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o consecration_n or_o blessing_n lest_o perhaps_o it_o may_v have_v kindle_v a_o spark_n of_o grace_n or_o of_o repentance_n in_o his_o mind_n but_o the_o word_n of_o cyrill_n howsoever_o it_o bathe_v please_v m._n saunder_n to_o mangle_v they_o be_v thus_o timet_fw-la ut_fw-la credo_fw-la diabolus_fw-la ne_fw-la morando_fw-la locus_fw-la poenitentiae_fw-la detur_fw-la &_o quasi_fw-la a_o temulentia_fw-la mentem_fw-la svam_fw-la rectius_fw-la cogitans_fw-la homo_fw-la cripiat_v hac_fw-la de_fw-la causa_fw-la festinat_fw-la &_o impellit_fw-la nam_fw-la etiam_fw-la judam_fw-la cùm_fw-la post_fw-la panem_fw-la omnino_fw-la se_fw-la paraverit_fw-la tum_fw-la moram_fw-la tum_fw-la benedictionis_fw-la virtutem_fw-la timens_fw-la ne_fw-la scintillam_fw-la in_o animo_fw-la eius_fw-la accenderit_fw-la ac_fw-la inde_fw-la illuminaverit_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la meliora_fw-la retraxerit_fw-la magna_fw-la praecipitem_fw-la agit_fw-fr ecleritate_fw-la the_o devil_n as_o i_o think_v fear_v lest_o by_o tarry_v place_n may_v be_v give_v to_o repentance_n &_o the_o man_n think_v better_a may_v deliver_v his_o mind_n as_o it_o be_v from_o drunkenness_n for_o this_o cause_n he_o make_v haste_n &_o drive_v forward_o for_o with_o great_a celerity_n he_o drive_v even_o judas_n headlong_o when_o after_o the_o bread_n he_o have_v altogether_o prepare_v himself_o fear_v both_o the_o delay_n and_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o blessing_n lest_o it_o have_v kindle_v a_o spark_n in_o his_o mind_n and_o thereof_o have_v lighten_v he_o and_o draw_v he_o to_o better_a thing_n this_o say_n of_o cyrillus_n do_v no_o less_o differ_v in_o sense_n and_o understanding_n from_o sander_n slanderous_a report_n of_o he_o than_o it_o do_v in_o form_n &_o context_n of_o word_n from_o that_o which_o saunder_n affirm_v to_o be_v his_o say_n for_o cyrill_n plain_o cale_v it_o bread_n which_o judas_n have_v receive_v again_o it_o be_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o blessing_n and_o not_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o devil_n fear_v what_o be_v this_o for_o the_o real_a presence_n acp._n x._o the_o real_a presence_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o kind_n of_o discern_a ãâã_d saunder_n lord_n body_n first_o he_o labour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o corinthian_n fulke_n be_v not_o malicious_a contempt_n of_o christ_n but_o such_o contempt_n as_o rise_v of_o negligence_n and_o lack_n of_o discretion_n then_o he_o reason_v thus_o because_o s._n paul_n charge_v they_o to_o be_v guilty_a not_o only_o of_o christ_n worship_n and_o name_n but_o also_o of_o his_o own_o body_n and_o blood_n with_o which_o fault_n he_o never_o burden_a any_o other_o than_o the_o unworthy_a receiver_n or_o the_o jew_n that_o lay_v injurious_a hand_n upon_o christ_n at_o his_o death_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o such_o a_o communicant_a receive_v christ_n natural_a body_n i_o answer_v not_o only_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n which_o receive_v the_o communion_n unworthy_o and_o which_o lay_v violent_a hand_n on_o christ_n person_n but_o even_o they_o also_o that_o crucify_v the_o son_n of_o god_n again_o of_o who_o the_o apostle_n speak_v heb._n 6._o verse_n 6._o and_o corrupt_v the_o blood_n of_o his_o testament_n by_o which_o they_o be_v sanctify_v whole_o heb._n 10._o vers_fw-la 29._o neither_o be_v they_o burden_a with_o a_o great_a fault_n than_o they_o commit_v which_o unworthy_o receive_v the_o pledge_n of_o christ_n presence_n be_v say_v to_o offend_v against_o christ_n himself_o but_o saunder_n urge_v the_o argument_n of_o discern_v further_o because_o the_o apostle_n bid_v they_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o christ_n body_n and_o all_o other_o meat_n or_o creature_n in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o none_o other_o meaâe_n or_o creature_n be_v present_a beside_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n i_o deny_v the_o argument_n which_o follow_v as_o this_o he_o that_o despise_v circumcision_n have_v break_v the_o covenant_n of_o god_n as_o god_n say_v gen._n 17_o ergo_fw-la circumcision_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n and_o not_o a_o outward_a seal_n and_o sign_n thereof_o he_o that_o despise_v baptism_n despise_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o which_o baptism_n be_v sanctify_v therefore_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n real_o wherefore_o he_o that_o discern_v not_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v call_v and_o to_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n be_v in_o ãâ¦ã_o ede_fw-mi the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n after_o a_o certain_a ma_fw-fr ãâ¦ã_o r_o from_o common_a meat_n be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o
answer_v partly_o because_o saunder_n bring_v no_o new_a matter_n in_o this_o reply_n but_o either_o such_o as_o he_o have_v bring_v in_o the_o six_o book_n before_o and_o partly_o because_o his_o chief_a and_o most_o general_a answer_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o beg_n of_o the_o whole_a matter_n in_o controversy_n with_o a_o affirm_v and_o deny_v ground_v upon_o his_o own_o authority_n by_o mean_n whereof_o in_o this_o one_o article_n he_o have_v note_v jump_n 218_o untruethe_n how_o well_o and_o just_o let_v the_o reader_n of_o his_o book_n and_o master_n jewel_n reply_v be_v judge_n as_o for_o i_o i_o will_v not_o examine_v they_o all_o but_o only_o so_o many_o as_o touch_v the_o controversy_n with_o any_o show_n of_o argument_n save_v that_o in_o a_o few_o of_o the_o first_o i_o will_v give_v the_o reader_n a_o taste_n that_o he_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o rest_n and_o whereas_o he_o charge_v the_o bishop_n for_o set_v one_o truth_n against_o another_o for_o falsify_v of_o autority_n for_o misconstrue_v of_o their_o meaning_n &c_n &c_n as_o the_o matter_n shall_v occur_v i_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o consider_v they_o cap._n i._n master_n jewel_n have_v not_o answer_v doctor_n harding_n well_o touch_v saunder_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n supper_n in_o this_o article_n fol._n 316._o the_o people_n be_v not_o teach_v in_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n to_o believe_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v real_o substantial_o corporal_o carnal_o or_o natural_o in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o give_v a_o taste_n as_o i_o promise_v of_o sanders_n collection_n of_o untrueth_n i_o will_v examine_v a_o few_o fulke_n the_o first_o untruth_n be_v note_v to_o be_v this_o master_n jewel_n say_v whether_o christ_n body_n be_v corporal_o in_o the_o sacrament_n harding_n answer_v not_o one_o word_n harding_n have_v say_v the_o term_n real_o substantial_o &c._n &c._n be_v sound_n in_o the_o doctor_n treat_v of_o the_o true_a be_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n ergo_fw-la say_v saunder_n master_n jewel_n say_v not_o true_o for_o he_o proove_v afterward_o christ_n body_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n here_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o untruth_n be_v the_o whole_a matter_n in_o controversy_n whether_o harding_n have_v prove_v in_o deed_n that_o which_o he_o intend_v the_o 2._o untruth_n jewel_n say_v in_o this_o matter_n he_o be_v able_a to_o allege_v nothing_o for_o direct_a proof_n harding_n have_v say_v christian_a people_n have_v ever_o be_v so_o teach_v of_o that_o kind_n of_o presence_n which_o be_v found_v upon_o christ_n plain_a word_n ergo_fw-la say_v saunder_n he_o be_v able_a to_o allege_v somewhat_o but_o what_o i_o pray_v you_o that_o christian_a people_n be_v ever_o so_o teach_v which_o be_v false_a that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v ground_v upon_o christ_n word_n which_o be_v false_a also_o for_o what_o one_o doctor_n affirm_v the_o presence_n according_a to_o the_o article_n harding_n say_v the_o three_o evangelist_n and_o saint_n paul_n ergo_fw-la say_v saunder_n there_o be_v the_o third_o untruth_n for_o m._n jewel_n have_v word_n plain_o write_v etc._n etc._n but_o if_o these_o word_n prove_v the_o presence_n according_a to_o the_o article_n the_o controversy_n shall_v be_v at_o a_o end_n the_o 4._o untruth_n be_v that_o m._n jewel_n say_v harding_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n found_v his_o carnal_a presence_n in_o such_o gross_a sort_n real_o and_o fleshly_a in_o the_o sacrament_n saunder_n repli_v it_o be_v less_o carnal_a gross_a and_o fleshly_a to_o have_v the_o substance_n of_o christ_n corporal_a flesh_n in_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n real_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n then_o to_o be_v in_o his_o mother_n womb_n as_o martion_n and_o apelles_n count_v it_o or_o to_o make_v a_o lie_n when_o he_o say_v take_v eat_v this_o &c_n &c_n as_o though_o the_o grant_v of_o christ_n humanity_n prove_v the_o popish_a presence_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o humanity_n or_o that_o christ_n may_v not_o say_v true_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v his_o body_n except_o it_o be_v after_o that_o manner_n his_o body_n his_o presence_n in_o spiritual_a manner_n we_o grant_v but_o we_o understande_v spiritual_a manner_n to_o be_v otherwise_o then_o invisiblie_o for_o many_o thing_n may_v be_v so_o present_a that_o they_o be_v not_o see_v and_o yet_o be_v not_o spiritual_o but_o corporal_o present_a the_o five_o untruth_n be_v that_o m._n jewel_n say_v christ_n use_v no_o lead_n to_o that_o carnal_a presence_n saunder_n answer_v the_o word_n this_o lead_v the_o apostle_n to_o that_o understanding_n as_o if_o i_o say_v this_o be_v a_o lion_n it_o will_v follow_v under_o this_o visible_a form_n that_o i_o show_v a_o lion_n be_v substantial_o contain_v etc._n etc._n as_o right_o as_o a_o ram_n horn_n if_o i_o show_v a_o king_n or_o a_o strong_a man_n i_o may_v say_v true_o in_o some_o sense_n this_o be_v a_o lyon_n for_o if_o i_o show_v one_o substance_n and_o affirm_v another_o of_o it_o the_o speech_n must_v needs_o be_v either_o false_a or_o figurative_a the_o sixth_o untruth_n and_o a_o forge_a lie_n be_v that_o master_n jewel_n say_v d._n fisher_n say_v this_o sense_n can_v in_o any_o wise_a be_v gather_v of_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o christ._n fisher_n word_n as_o saunder_n reherse_v they_o be_v these_o no_o man_n shall_v prove_v by_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o any_o priest_n in_o these_o day_n do_v consecrate_v the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n again_o no_o word_n be_v put_v whereby_o it_o may_v be_v prove_v that_o in_o our_o mass_n the_o very_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v make_v judge_n indifferent_o of_o the_o word_n what_o lie_v jewel_n have_v forge_v although_o fisher_n mean_v that_o by_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o father_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o church_n the_o understanding_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v more_o certain_o obtain_v then_o by_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o fisher_n have_v other_o word_n non_fw-la potest_fw-la igitur_fw-la per_fw-la illam_fw-la scripturam_fw-la probari_fw-la quòd_fw-la aut_fw-la laicus_fw-la aut_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la quoties_fw-la id_fw-la negotij_fw-la tentaverit_fw-la pari_fw-la modo_fw-la conficiet_fw-la ex_fw-la pane_fw-la vinóque_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la atque_fw-la christus_fw-la ipse_fw-la conficit_fw-la cùm_fw-la nec_fw-la issue_v in_o scripture_n contineatur_fw-la which_o m._n jewel_n begin_v to_o english_a thus_o it_o can_v therefore_o be_v prove_v by_o any_o scripture_n here_o saunder_n play_v the_o schoolmaster_n and_o appose_v he_o what_o can_v be_v prove_v m._n jewel_n give_v i_o the_o nominative_a case_n to_o the_o verb_n non_fw-fr potest_fw-la it_o can_v say_v saunder_n what_o can_v whereupon_o be_v ground_v the_o 7._o untruth_n when_o jewel_n say_v doct._n fisher_n say_v the_o carnal_a presence_n can_v be_v prove_v neither_o by_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n nor_o by_o any_o other_o but_o i_o put_v case_n master_n jewel_n will_v answer_v your_o deep_a demand_n in_o say_v that_o potest_fw-la in_o this_o place_n be_v a_o verb_n impersonal_a and_o therefore_o he_o can_v give_v it_o no_o nominative_a case_n at_o all_o but_o must_v english_a it_o thus_o non_fw-la potest_fw-la it_o can_v if_o you_o will_v ask_v he_o why_o he_o say_v then_o the_o carnal_a presence_n can_v be_v prove_v as_o though_o presence_n be_v the_o nominative_a case_n he_o will_v answer_v you_o he_o do_v not_o so_o construe_v or_o translate_v the_o latin_a but_o he_o infer_v that_o conclusion_n upon_o fisher_n word_n no_o word_n be_v put_v whereby_o it_o may_v be_v prove_v that_o in_o our_o mass_n the_o very_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v make_v but_o your_o learning_n will_v have_v the_o whole_a speech_n follow_v to_o be_v the_o nominative_a i_o say_v let_v it_o so_o be_v if_o you_o will_v needs_o have_v it_o so_o yet_o master_n jewel_n conclusion_n be_v true_a that_o fisher_n affirm_v the_o carnal_a presence_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v make_v either_o by_o lie_v man_n or_o priest_n ergo_fw-la it_z can_v be_v prove_v at_o all_o yet_o say_v saunder_n how_o many_o enormous_a fault_n have_v you_o commit_v here_o master_n jewel_n first_o harding_n affirm_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n to_o teach_v a_o real_a presence_n fisher_n speak_v of_o these_o word_n make_v this_o thing_n and_o not_o of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v a_o enormous_a fault_n if_o fisher_n have_v not_o say_v non_fw-la potest_fw-la per_fw-la ullam_fw-la scripturam_fw-la probari_fw-la it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o any_o scripture_n but_o see_v he_o say_v so_o this_o be_v a_o enormous_a slanderous_a impudent_a and_o foolish_a lie_n and_o cavil_v of_o saunder_n second_o harding_n speak_v of_o the_o real_a
presence_n if_o any_o sacrament_n be_v make_v at_o all_o fisher_n whether_o any_o man_n have_v authority_n to_o make_v any_o sacrament_n at_o all_o or_o no._n when_o you_o can_v find_v harding_n if_o or_o condition_n you_o shall_v be_v answer_v to_o fisher_n whither_o or_o question_n three_o harding_n speak_v of_o christ_n word_n fisher_n of_o our_o do_n if_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o christ_n word_n fisher_n speak_v only_o of_o our_o do_n 4_o fisher_n doubt_v not_o but_o the_o word_n make_v the_o presence_n but_o he_o ask_v the_o heretic_n how_o they_o can_v prove_v it_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n nay_o sir_n he_o affirm_v precise_o that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n these_o be_v the_o four_o great_a enormous_a fault_n i_o trust_v after_o this_o taste_n no_o man_n be_v desirous_a to_o examine_v the_o rest_n of_o sanders_n untruth_n false_o father_v upon_o master_n jewel_n wherefore_o i_o will_v go_v from_o henceforth_o only_o to_o the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n hitherto_o you_o hear_v not_o master_n jewel_n article_n disprove_v videlicet_fw-la that_o the_o people_n be_v not_o teach_v etc._n etc._n as_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o chapter_n the_o question_n be_v not_o of_o the_o word_n but_o of_o the_o meaning_n say_v jewel_n christ_n mean_v not_o this_o to_o be_v his_o body_n real_o hereto_o saunder_n allege_v a_o place_n of_o hilary_n lib._n 8._o de_fw-fr trin._n to_o prove_v that_o christ_n lack_v neither_o wisdom_n nor_o utterance_n to_o speak_v plain_o of_o his_o sacrament_n and_o mystery_n which_o be_v very_o true_a for_o he_o speak_v plain_o sincere_o and_o true_o although_o he_o speak_v figurative_o neither_o do_v he_o speak_v otherwise_o then_o he_o mean_v see_v it_o be_v his_o body_n after_o a_o certain_a manner_n as_o augustine_n say_v but_o see_v here_o be_v three_o or_o four_o person_n speak_v m._n jewel_n m._n harding_n m._n saunder_n and_o myself_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o bring_v their_o several_a speech_n in_o form_n of_o a_o dialogue_n for_o briefenesse_n as_o saunder_n give_v i_o example_n jewel_n christ_n be_v the_o rock_n but_o yet_o not_o real_o sand._n s._n paul_n speak_v not_o these_o word_n with_o intent_n to_o make_v any_o sacrament_n or_o any_o other_o thing_n fulke_n s._n paul_n speak_v these_o word_n of_o a_o sacrament_n make_v by_o god_n in_o the_o wilderness_n sand._n two_o diverse_a nature_n in_o those_o word_n be_v name_v which_o can_v not_o be_v one_o substance_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n name_v one_o substance_n fulke_n one_o substance_n be_v demonstrate_v and_o another_o name_v moses_n may_v have_v say_v true_o show_v the_o rock_n to_o the_o people_n this_o be_v christ_n or_o else_o s._n paul_n can_v not_o have_v say_v true_o the_o rock_n be_v christ._n sand._n it_o be_v not_o any_o one_o certain_a rock_n whereof_o s._n paul_n speak_v for_o the_o water_n flow_v out_o of_o two_o rock_n either_o of_o which_o do_v signify_v christ_n and_o they_o both_o be_v only_o one_o rock_n in_o meaning_n and_o in_o substance_n figure_v therefore_o saint_n paul_n mean_v only_o of_o the_o spiritual_a rock_n which_o be_v christ._n fulke_n manna_n which_o be_v the_o spiritual_a meat_n they_o do_v eat_v rain_v every_o day_n yet_o be_v it_o but_o one_o christ_n in_o signification_n therefore_o s._n paul_n mean_v only_o of_o the_o spiritual_a manna_n which_o be_v christ_n and_o not_o of_o the_o corporal_a manna_n which_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n if_o this_o reason_n hold_v not_o of_o the_o spiritual_a meat_n how_o can_v it_o hold_v of_o the_o spiritual_a drink_n jewel_n christ_n give_v his_o disciple_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v the_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n sand._n he_o do_v so_o but_o he_o give_v such_o a_o figure_n as_o be_v also_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n as_o himself_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o his_o father_n substance_n be_v also_o the_o selfsame_o substance_n with_o his_o father_n fulke_n as_o he_o give_v a_o figure_n he_o give_v not_o the_o substance_n christ_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o his_o father_n substance_n as_o he_o be_v a_o person_n distinct_a by_o himself_o and_o not_o his_o father_n neither_o do_v augustine_n mean_a of_o such_o a_o unity_n in_o essence_n as_o be_v between_o god_n the_o father_n &_o the_o son_n when_o he_o do_v plain_o divide_v sacramentum_fw-la &_o rem_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o thing_n or_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o be_v the_o figure_n and_o the_o thing_n figure_v sand._n he_o give_v a_o true_a and_o not_o a_o false_a sign_n lib._n 2._o ca._n 12._o a_o miraculous_a not_o a_o common_a figure_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 13._o a_o mystical_a not_o a_o artificial_a figure_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 16._o a_o divine_a not_o a_o rhetorical_a figure_n lib._n 2._o cap_n 14._o fulke_n these_o be_v answer_v in_o their_o proper_a place_n above_o cite_v sand._n he_o give_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o have_v truth_n &_o not_o which_o betoken_v a_o thing_n absent_a from_o it_o which_o august_n declare_v in_o psa._n 39_o the_o old_a father_n do_v celebrate_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o thing_n to_o come_v etc._n etc._n fulke_n augustine_n in_o this_o place_n and_o in_o many_o other_o make_v this_o difference_n between_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o of_o the_o new_a that_o they_o be_v of_o christ_n to_o come_v once_o of_o christ_n exhibit_v and_o already_o come_v but_o of_o the_o real_a presence_n he_o speak_v no_o word_n ablata_fw-la sunt_fw-la signa_fw-la promittentia_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o promise_a sign_n be_v take_v away_o because_o the_o truth_n that_o be_v promise_v be_v exhibit_v in_o this_o body_n we_o be_v of_o this_o body_n we_o be_v partaker_n speak_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v sacrifice_v once_o for_o all_o in_o which_o we_o be_v after_o a_o mystical_a manner_n include_v and_o be_v also_o partaker_n thereof_o after_o a_o mystical_a manner_n and_o so_o be_v all_o that_o ever_o please_v god_n not_o after_o a_o corporal_a manner_n such_o as_o the_o papist_n imagine_v wherefore_o augustine_n say_v upon_o the_o same_o psalm_n allude_v to_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n sursum_fw-la corda_fw-la habcamus_fw-la siresurrexistis_fw-la cum_fw-la christo_fw-la dicit_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la domini_fw-la accipientibus_fw-la dicit_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v we_o have_v our_o heart_n above_o if_o you_o be_v rise_v again_o with_o christ_n he_o speak_v to_o the_o faithful_a he_o speak_v to_o they_o which_o receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n if_o you_o be_v rise_v again_o with_o christ_n savour_v of_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v above_o where_o christ_n be_v sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n behold_v augustine_n teach_v how_o to_o receive_v christ_n true_o and_o not_o as_o he_o say_v elsewhere_o sacramento_n tenus_fw-la as_o far_o as_o the_o sacrament_n or_o outward_a sign_n only_o sand._n he_o give_v a_o figure_n but_o he_o speak_v not_o a_o figure_n fulke_n augustine_n affirm_v both_o prove_v li._n 2._o cap._n 14._o sand._n the_o name_n of_o body_n and_o blood_n do_v usual_o signify_v a_o visible_a corruptible_a &_o mortal_a nature_n which_o augustine_n know_v be_v a_o fray_v lest_o child_n will_v think_v that_o christ_n have_v walk_v on_o the_o earth_n none_o otherwise_o then_o in_o the_o shape_n of_o bread_n for_o that_o respect_n he_o always_o teach_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o sign_n and_o figure_n of_o christ_n visible_a body_n fulke_n augustine_n fear_v no_o such_o matter_n de_fw-fr trin._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 10._o but_o only_a by_o way_n of_o a_o similitude_n show_v that_o if_o child_n shall_v never_o learn_v more_o of_o christ_n then_o that_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v show_v they_o and_o tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o also_o if_o they_o shall_v never_o see_v the_o shape_n of_o bread_n but_o only_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o will_v imagine_v that_o christ_n have_v appear_v only_o in_o that_o shape_n but_o this_o be_v impossible_a therefore_o augustine_n can_v not_o fear_v it_o and_o see_v he_o have_v no_o such_o fear_n he_o have_v no_o such_o respect_n as_o saunder_n dream_v as_o well_o concern_v his_o fear_n as_o concern_v his_o respect_n jew._n tertullian_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n sand._n he_o mean_v so_o as_o i_o say_v before_o of_o s._n augustine_n and_o speak_v against_o the_o marcionite_n which_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n body_n fulk_n tertullian_n prove_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a body_n because_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o figure_n thereof_o for_o a_o phantasm_n or_o a_o vain_a thing_n can_v
significat_fw-la in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o blood_n hic_fw-la remain_v without_o a_o substantive_a fulke_n a_o babble_n answer_v lib._n 4._o circum_v 23._o sand._n 18_o in_o these_o word_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n you_o take_v the_o noun_n blood_n for_o the_o sign_n of_o blood_n and_o so_o the_o new_a testament_n establish_v by_o the_o figure_n of_o blood_n fulke_n you_o fable_n we_o take_v it_o proper_o and_o these_o word_n to_o be_v a_o true_a exposition_n of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n sand._n 19_o if_o you_o take_v blood_n proper_o in_o these_o word_n it_o must_v also_o be_v proper_a in_o these_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n fulke_n that_o follow_v not_o sand._n 20_o the_o construction_n of_o these_o word_n this_o cup_n be_v shed_v for_o you_o proove_v that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o cup_n to_o be_v shed_v which_o you_o say_v be_v wine_n fulke_n this_o cavil_v be_v answer_v lib._n 4._o circum_v 26._o &_o 27._o sand._n 21_o in_o christ_n word_n the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v give_v be_v my_o flesh_n you_o expound_v i_o have_v give_v and_o i_o do_v give_v fulke_n yea_o i_o will_v give_v as_o i_o have_v do_v and_o do_v sand._n 22_o in_o saint_n paul_n the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v the_o communicate_v &c._n &c._n you_o expound_v signify_v the_o communicate_v as_o though_o the_o jew_n figure_n do_v not_o the_o same_o and_o yet_o there_o s._n paul_n distinct_v our_o sacrament_n from_o they_o fulke_n and_o how_o can_v bread_n be_v the_o communicate_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o as_o the_o jew_n sacrament_n be_v the_o same_o saint_n paul_n show_v what_o our_o sacrament_n have_v like_a with_o they_o &_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o gentile_n also_o &_o not_o what_o difference_n there_o be_v you_o be_v well_o study_v in_o saint_n paul_n sand._n 23._o the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n you_o will_v have_v to_o be_v a_o cup_n of_o wine_n as_o though_o the_o blessing_n wrought_v nothing_o in_o it_o fulke_n as_o though_o blessing_n can_v work_v nothing_o but_o transubstantiation_n sand._n 24._o you_o make_v christ_n give_v thanks_n to_o his_o father_n in_o begin_v the_o state_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o better_a word_n than_o deed_n for_o his_o word_n be_v this_o be_v my_o body_n yet_o you_o will_v have_v he_o to_o offer_v no_o body_n at_o all_o to_o his_o father_n in_o that_o thanksgiving_n fulke_n where_o learn_v you_o that_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v at_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o supper_n belike_o baptism_n pertain_v not_o to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n second_o how_o prove_v you_o that_o this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v word_n of_o thanksgiving_n or_o oblation_n to_o god_n sand._n 25._o you_o teach_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o instituter_n of_o shadow_n and_o to_o give_v to_o our_o mouth_n less_o than_o moses_n for_o manna_n be_v better_a than_o common_a bread_n fulke_n sacrament_n be_v no_o shadow_n neither_o do_v moses_n give_v manna_n but_o god_n for_o aught_o that_o i_o know_v and_o it_o be_v most_o convenient_a that_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n shall_v be_v less_o glorious_a than_o of_o the_o old_a because_o the_o doctrine_n be_v more_o clear_a sand._n 26._o you_o expound_v to_o be_v guilty_a of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n for_o eat_v that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o not_o eat_v or_o refuse_v to_o eat_v for_o you_o teach_v evil_a man_n not_o to_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n fulke_n for_o we_o expound_v guilty_a for_o eat_v to_o be_v guilty_a for_o eat_v the_o sacrament_n unworthy_o that_o be_v in_o some_o unreverent_o or_o negligent_o in_o some_o contemptuous_o refuse_v that_o christ_n do_v offer_v thereby_o sand._n 27._o you_o will_v not_o have_v christ_n supper_n to_o be_v a_o external_a sacrifice_n and_o to_o be_v worse_o than_o jewish_a and_o idolater_n altar_n and_o table_n who_o both_o do_v sacrifice_n and_o s._n paul_n compare_v christ_n table_n with_o they_o fulk_n we_o will_v have_v no_o more_o sacrifice_n but_o the_o only_a and_o once_o offer_v sacrifice_n of_o christ_n death_n for_o our_o redemption_n the_o repetition_n of_o sacrifice_n show_v a_o imperfection_n in_o it_o and_o not_o a_o betternes_n saint_n paul_n compare_v christ_n table_n with_o the_o altar_n &_o table_n of_o devil_n not_o in_o sacrifice_n but_o in_o cause_v the_o partaker_n to_o communicate_v with_o their_o altar_n &_o table_n which_o show_v what_o the_o communicate_v of_o christ_n table_n be_v and_o overthrow_v your_o carnal_a presence_n sand._n 28._o you_o expound_v the_o show_n of_o christ_n death_n by_o a_o figure_n whereby_o you_o show_v he_o not_o to_o be_v true_o dead_a fulk_n you_o show_v it_o by_o eat_v he_o alive_a whereby_o there_o be_v no_o argument_n of_o his_o death_n we_o show_v it_o by_o preach_v join_v to_o the_o visible_a element_n without_o which_o it_o be_v lame_a dead_a and_o unperfect_a sand._n 29_o you_o expound_v the_o not_o make_v difference_n etc._n etc._n in_o such_o sort_n that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v the_o body_n present_v wherein_o difference_n be_v to_o be_v make_v fulk_n as_o though_o difference_n of_o the_o king_n person_n and_o authority_n can_v not_o be_v make_v but_o in_o the_o king_n presence_n sand._n 30_o you_o deny_v our_o union_n with_o christ_n flesh_n by_o corporal_a participation_n which_o s._n paul_n teach_v by_o example_n of_o adam_n and_o eve_n be_v two_o in_o one_o flesh_n fulk_n our_o corporal_a participation_n be_v by_o his_o incarnation_n which_o be_v apply_v unto_o we_o by_o faith_n through_o his_o spirit_n unite_n we_o unto_o he_o and_o testify_v in_o the_o supper_n sand._n 31_o whereas_o christ_n be_v so_o much_o more_o excellent_a than_o angel_n by_o how_o much_o he_o have_v a_o more_o excellent_a name_n you_o regard_v not_o the_o name_n body_n and_o blood_n give_v to_o the_o mystery_n but_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v as_o they_o be_v before_o etc._n etc._n fulk_n the_o apostle_n reason_v not_o because_o christ_n have_v a_o better_a name_n but_o because_o he_o have_v it_o by_o inheritance_n for_o else_o the_o angel_n be_v name_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o prince_n be_v call_v go_n you_o have_v not_o seek_v christ_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o confirmation_n of_o your_o heresy_n again_o we_o so_o much_o regard_v the_o name_n of_o body_n and_o blood_n give_v to_o the_o mystery_n that_o we_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v the_o same_o that_o they_o be_v call_v after_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n although_o they_o have_v not_o that_o name_n by_o inheritance_n but_o by_o grace_n affirm_v in_o the_o element_n a_o great_a alteration_n from_o that_o they_o be_v before_o not_o in_o substance_n but_o in_o use_n and_o effect_n sand._n 32_o no_o promise_n in_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v find_v make_v to_o he_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v material_a bread_n and_o wine_n but_o to_o he_o that_o receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n therefore_o you_o affirm_v bread_n to_o be_v eat_v and_o wine_n to_o be_v drunken_a in_o the_o supper_n beside_o the_o word_n of_o god_n fulk_n the_o promise_n be_v make_v in_o scripture_n to_o he_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v bread_n and_o wine_n according_a to_o christ_n institution_n although_o not_o for_o eat_v bread_n and_o drink_a wine_n only_o this_o reason_n will_v prove_v that_o water_n be_v use_v without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o baptism_n because_o no_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o he_o that_o be_v wash_v in_o water_n but_o to_o he_o that_o be_v wash_v according_a to_o christ_n institution_n sand._n 33_o although_o david_n prophesy_v of_o eat_v and_o adore_v you_o will_v grant_v no_o meat_n to_o be_v external_o adore_v fulk_n david_n never_o prophesy_v of_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n sand._n 34_o notwithstanding_o the_o prophet_n teach_v that_o all_o external_a idolatry_n be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n you_o say_v idolatry_n be_v commit_v in_o worship_v the_o sacrament_n fulk_n the_o prophet_n teach_v not_o that_o idolatry_n external_a shall_v be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n but_o among_o true_a christian_n which_o do_v renounce_v all_o worship_v of_o idol_n sand._n 35_o christ_n come_v to_o save_v &_o feed_v the_o whole_a manâ_n why_o deny_v you_o the_o food_n of_o life_n to_o our_o body_n fulk_n we_o affirm_v that_o christ_n feed_v body_n &_o soul_n unto_o eternal_a life_n without_o the_o sacrament_n and_o with_o it_o although_o the_o food_n of_o life_n be_v not_o receive_v at_o the_o mouth_n like_o other_o meat_n nor_o swallow_v and_o digest_v as_o they_o be_v sand._n 36_o if_o in_o the_o supper_n we_o seed_n on_o christ_n by_o faith_n alone_o why_o be_v it_o call_v a_o supper_n more_o than_o baptism_n
figurative_a word_n jewel_n that_o m._n harding_n call_v the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v in_o deed_n a_o catholic_a error_n sand._n no_o error_n can_v be_v catholic_a because_o christ_n say_v hell_n gate_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o the_o church_n and_o it_o be_v a_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o hill_n fulke_n and_o yet_o all_o nation_n be_v make_v drink_v with_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n fornication_n wherefore_o a_o error_n may_v be_v catholic_a although_o not_o simple_o yet_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o small_a number_n that_o at_o sometime_o do_v embrace_v the_o truth_n cap._n xii_o sand._n of_o christ_n glorify_a body_n and_o the_o place_n of_o s._n hierome_n expound_v hard._n the_o body_n which_o be_v before_o the_o death_n thereof_o thrall_a and_o frail_a be_v now_o spiritual_a jewel_n to_o what_o end_n allege_v master_n harding_n the_o spiritual_a state_n of_o christ_n body_n enrich_v say_v it_o be_v change_v into_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o god_n which_o heresy_n be_v like_a master_n harding_n if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o sand._n the_o defence_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v direct_o against_o that_o heresy_n fulke_n to_o grant_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n in_o word_n and_o to_o deny_v the_o essential_a property_n thereof_o be_v to_o come_v as_o near_o to_o that_o heresy_n as_o can_v be_v sand._n the_o ancient_a father_n prove_v that_o as_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n consist_v of_o two_o thing_n the_o sign_n or_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n so_o christ_n consist_v of_o two_o nature_n the_o one_o divine_a the_o other_o humane_a wherefore_o you_o deny_v the_o presence_n agree_v with_o the_o arrian_n valentinian_o etc._n etc._n fulke_n the_o ancient_a father_n never_o make_v the_o form_n or_o accident_n of_o bread_n but_o bread_n itself_o to_o be_v the_o sign_n or_o one_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n represent_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o thing_n signify_v they_o make_v like_a to_o the_o godheade_n whereby_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o death_n hard._n s._n hierome_n show_v two_o way_n of_o understanding_n christ_n flesh_n one_o spiritual_a as_o it_o be_v very_o meat_n a_o other_o as_o it_o be_v crucify_v declare_v the_o manner_n of_o eat_v it_o only_o to_o differ_v from_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o be_v crucify_v the_o substance_n be_v all_o one_o jewel_n he_o speak_v neither_o of_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o of_o any_o real_a presence_n sand._n he_o mean_v both_o fulk_n he_o can_v mean_v neither_o of_o both_o see_v he_o distinguish_v that_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a flesh_n which_o be_v meat_n in_o deed_n unto_o eternal_a life_n from_o that_o flesh_n which_o be_v crucify_v which_o if_o it_o be_v meat_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o it_o be_v crucify_v that_o be_v in_o the_o natural_a substance_n s._n hieroms_n distinction_n shall_v not_o be_v of_o that_o flesh_n which_o &c._n &c._n and_o that_o flesh_n which_o &c._n &c._n but_o of_o the_o effect_n and_o affect_n of_o the_o same_o flesh_n wherefore_o when_o he_o say_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v two_o way_n to_o be_v understand_v he_o mean_v of_o this_o word_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o of_o the_o diverse_a manner_n of_o presence_n thereof_o in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o on_o the_o cross_n jewel_n s._n hierom_n say_v of_o this_o oblation_n which_o be_v merueilous_o make_v in_o the_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o eat_v but_o of_o that_o oblation_n which_o christ_n offer_v upon_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n according_a to_o itself_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o no_o man_n to_o eat_v that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o gross_a and_o fleshly_a manner_n these_o word_n show_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o sacrifice_n make_v in_o the_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o very_a sacrifice_n in_o deed_n etc._n etc._n sand._n the_o difference_n be_v so_o great_a that_o the_o thing_n offer_v be_v all_o one_o and_o that_o which_o be_v crucify_v and_o eat_v be_v the_o same_o in_o substance_n but_o not_o in_o manner_n of_o presence_n fulke_n the_o difference_n be_v so_o great_a as_o must_v needs_o be_v between_o a_o sacrifice_n once_o offer_v and_o never_o to_o be_v repete_v and_o the_o memorial_n of_o the_o same_o the_o same_o substance_n that_o be_v crucify_v be_v eat_v but_o not_o by_o mean_n of_o any_o bodily_a presence_n but_o by_o a_o spiritual_a kind_n or_o manner_n of_o eat_v by_o faith_n sand._n what_o marvelous_a make_n can_v you_o find_v in_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n except_o they_o be_v make_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n fulke_n it_o be_v a_o marvellous_a thing_n that_o the_o element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v make_v to_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n in_o earth_n the_o communication_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n sit_v in_o heaven_n jewel_n if_o a_o man_n take_v it_o fleshly_a say_v chrysostome_n in_o joan._n hom._n 47_o he_o gain_v nothing_o sand._n it_o follow_v immediate_o what_o say_v we_o then_o be_v not_o flesh_n flesh_n he_o understand_v fleshly_a that_o devise_v a_o gross_a and_o fleshly_a manner_n of_o eat_v but_o not_o he_o that_o say_v the_o flesh_n must_v be_v eat_v if_o the_o manner_n be_v divine_a and_o spiritual_a as_o in_o our_o sacrament_n fulke_n the_o manner_n you_o teach_v be_v gross_a and_o carnal_a for_o spiritual_a eat_n we_o confess_v which_o be_v not_o only_o in_o the_o sacrament_n jewel_n it_o be_v a_o figure_n or_o form_n of_o speech_n say_v s._n augustine_n will_v we_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o christ_n passion_n sand._n you_o be_v take_v m._n jewel_n for_o see_v you_o say_v we_o eat_v christ_n in_o the_o supper_n only_o by_o faith_n and_o we_o must_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o passion_n christ_n by_o faith_n at_o lest_o how_o say_v s._n hierome_n we_o may_v not_o eat_v that_o oblation_n which_o christ_n offer_v on_o the_o cross_n according_a to_o itself_o may_v we_o not_o be_v leeve_o in_o he_o etc._n etc._n fulke_n in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o eat_v bread_n which_o be_v the_o oblation_n merueilous_o make_v in_o the_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n we_o eat_v not_o that_o which_o be_v sacrifice_v on_o the_o cross_v in_o the_o real_a substance_n thereof_o but_o by_o faith_n apply_v unto_o we_o the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o his_o passion_n jewel_n s._n hierome_n call_v the_o eat_n of_o the_o divine_a &_o spiritual_a flesh_n of_o christ_n the_o remember_v that_o he_o die_v for_o us._n saunder_n then_z the_o oblation_n itself_o be_v eat_v of_o we_o which_o he_o offer_v on_o the_o cross_n according_a to_o itself_o fulke_n what_o mad_a man_n will_v say_v the_o oblation_n itself_o &_o the_o remembrance_n thereof_o to_o be_v all_o one_o jewel_n clemens_n alexandrinus_n say_v there_o be_v a_o fleshly_a blood_n wherewith_o we_o be_v redeem_v &_o a_o spiritual_a wherewith_o we_o be_v anoint_v and_o this_o be_v to_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v partaker_n of_o his_o immortality_n as_o christ_n blood_n be_v not_o real_o present_a to_o anoint_v we_o so_o it_o be_v not_o real_o present_a to_o nourish_v us._n saunder_n clemens_n speak_v of_o the_o effect_n of_o christ_n blood_n hierom_n of_o the_o carnal_a blood_n itself_o fulke_n a_o monstrous_a shift_n when_o hierom_n distinguish_v in_o express_a word_n the_o spiritual_a and_o divine_a blood_n by_o which_o we_o be_v nourish_v from_o the_o carnal_a blood_n that_o be_v shed_v with_o the_o spear_n by_o which_o we_o be_v redeem_v wherefore_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o effect_n &_o fruit_n as_o well_o as_o clemens_n saunder_n that_o s._n hierom_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n it_o be_v prove_v because_o he_o cit_v such_o word_n out_o of_o s._n john_n as_o all_o the_o father_n reason_n scripture_n prove_v to_o appertain_v by_o way_n of_o promise_n to_o the_o supper_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o twenty_o chapiters_n together_o of_o my_o third_o book_n fulke_n his_o cite_n of_o word_n out_o of_o the_o sixth_o of_o saint_n john_n prove_v no_o more_o then_o drink_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n in_o clemens_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n your_o twenty_o chapter_n be_v answer_v in_o as_o many_o by_o i_o jewel_n saint_n augustine_n say_v judas_n betray_v christ_n carnal_a thou_o have_v betray_v christ_n spiritual_a for_o in_o thy_o fury_n thou_o betray_v the_o holy_a gospel_n to_o be_v burn_v with_o wicked_a fire_n these_o word_n of_o clement_n and_o augustine_n agree_v so_o near_o in_o sense_n and_o phrase_n with_o the_o word_n of_o hierom_n may_v stand_v for_o sufficient_a exposition_n to_o the_o same_o saunder_n augustine_n take_v christ_n spiritual_a another_o way_n clean_o diverse_a from_o clement_n or_o saint_n hierome_n
saunder_n s._n augustine_n speak_v these_o word_n to_o the_o faithless_a jew_n of_o capernaum_n and_o not_o to_o catholic_n fulke_n if_o jew_n become_v faithful_a what_o differ_v they_o from_o catholic_n why_o shall_v they_o have_v another_o manner_n of_o eat_v christ_n than_o other_o catholic_n saunder_n s._n augustine_n confess_v we_o to_o receive_v christ_n by_o mouth_n also_o hominem_fw-la jesum_fw-la christum_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o do_v receive_v with_o a_o faithful_a heart_n and_o mouth_n the_o man_n jesus_n christ_n give_v his_o flesh_n unto_o we_o to_o be_v eat_v and_o his_o blood_n to_o be_v drink_v although_o it_o may_v seem_v more_o horrible_a to_o eat_v man_n flesh_n then_o to_o kill_v it_o and_o to_o drink_v man_n blood_n then_o to_o shed_v it_o therefore_o his_o meaning_n be_v not_o to_o remove_v utter_o the_o natural_a office_n of_o the_o body_n as_o master_z jewel_n most_o impudent_o say_v fulk_n he_o remove_v not_o the_o natural_a office_n of_o the_o body_n from_o eat_v the_o sacrament_n but_o from_o eat_v the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ._n and_o most_o horrible_a be_v the_o impudence_n of_o master_n saunder_n which_o dissemble_v that_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o place_n by_o he_o cite_v speak_v of_o figurative_a saying_n contra_fw-la advers._n leg_n &_o proph_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 9_o immediate_o before_o the_o word_n by_o he_o rehearse_v compare_v our_o eat_n of_o christ_n flesh_n with_o christ_n be_v one_o flesh_n with_o his_o church_n and_o immediate_o after_o the_o word_n aforesaid_a conclude_v that_o figurative_a say_n must_v not_o be_v contemn_v sicut_fw-la dvos_fw-la etc._n etc._n even_o as_o we_o do_v know_v christ_n and_o his_o church_n to_o be_v two_o in_o one_o flesh_n without_o any_o obscenity_n against_o the_o will_n of_o these_o man_n even_o as_o we_o receive_v with_o faithful_a hart_n and_o mouth_n the_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n jesus_n christ_n etc._n etc._n atque_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la and_o in_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n if_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v or_o do_v figurative_o be_v expound_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o sound_a faith_n of_o any_o matter_n or_o word_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n let_v not_o that_o exposition_n be_v take_v contemptuous_o saunder_n say_v he_o not_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o so_o great_a a_o sacrament_n it_o please_v the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o our_o lord_n body_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o christian_a before_o other_o meat_n and_o yet_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o body_n remove_v and_o that_o utter_o remove_v fulke_n say_v he_o not_o before_o it_o be_v a_o figurative_a speech_n to_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o drink_v his_o blood_n and_o be_v it_o then_o a_o great_a merueile_v if_o the_o sacrament_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n whereof_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n for_o the_o question_n be_v not_o in_o that_o ep._n 118._o whether_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o other_o thing_n but_o whether_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v receive_v fast_v or_o after_o meat_n the_o rest_n of_o your_o chat_n concern_v the_o council_n of_o 8._o cardinal_n compare_v with_o the_o conference_n wittenberg_n i_o pass_v over_o as_o contain_v no_o argument_n touch_v the_o matter_n in_o question_n cap._n xvi_o saunder_n whether_o christ_n body_n dwell_v real_o in_o our_o ãâã_d by_o his_o na_fw-mi ãâ¦ã_o itie_n jewel_n four_o special_a mean_n there_o be_v by_o every_o of_o which_o christ_n body_n dwell_v in_o our_o body_n not_o by_o imagination_n but_o real_o substantial_o natural_o fleshly_a and_o in_o deed_n saunder_n you_o have_v be_v better_a to_o have_v subscribe_v four_o time_n than_o to_o have_v make_v a_o assertion_n so_o vain_a as_o this_o fulke_n the_o assertion_n be_v of_o the_o phrase_n or_o manner_n o_o speak_v against_o which_o you_o cavilâ_n most_o vain_o jewel_n christ_n body_n by_o his_o nativity_n whereby_o he_o embrace_v we_o dwell_v in_o our_o body_n real_o substantial_o etc._n etc._n saunder_n if_o you_o have_v say_v by_o his_o incarnation_n he_o dwell_v naturaly_a in_o we_o or_o we_o in_o he_o that_o say_v may_v have_v a_o true_a sense_n but_o to_o say_v that_o his_o body_n dwell_v in_o our_o body_n not_o only_o natural_o but_o also_o real_o etc._n etc._n it_o seem_v to_o i_o very_o hard_a fulke_n his_o nativity_n import_v his_o incarnation_n and_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o natural_o but_o in_o the_o truth_n and_o real_a substance_n of_o his_o body_n after_o a_o natural_a manner_n saunder_n christ_n take_v not_o the_o common_a general_a substance_n of_o all_o mankind_n but_o only_o the_o whole_a particular_a nature_n of_o man_n fulke_n saunder_n fight_v against_o his_o own_o shadow_n for_o here_o be_v no_o man_n that_o say_v against_o he_o and_o so_o through_o the_o whole_a chapter_n whereas_o master_n jewel_n defend_v the_o phrase_n of_o speak_v christ_n body_n dwell_v real_o etc._n etc._n in_o our_o body_n which_o in_o some_o sense_n be_v true_a saunder_n answer_v it_o be_v not_o true_a in_o every_o sense_n and_o he_o dwell_v not_o only_o by_o his_o birth_n whereas_o master_n jewel_n affirm_v three_o other_o way_n by_o which_o christ_n may_v be_v say_v so_o to_o dwell_v in_o us._n saunder_n one_o thing_n i_o must_v put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o you_o defend_v that_o christ_n natural_a body_n may_v not_o be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o but_o you_o say_v now_o that_o his_o body_n by_o his_o nativity_n dwell_v real_o etc._n etc._n in_o our_o body_n which_o dwell_v in_o many_o place_n therefore_o you_o be_v against_o your_o own_o doctrine_n fulke_n so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v no_o great_a contrariety_n in_o master_n jewel_n doctrine_n it_o be_v safe_a enough_o this_o be_v miserable_a sophistry_n more_o worthy_a to_o be_v hiss_v at_o among_o boy_n âhen_o to_o be_v answer_v of_o learned_a man_n i_o think_v there_o be_v no_o cobbler_n in_o cambridge_n or_o oxford_n but_o he_o can_v wind_v himself_o out_o of_o this_o fallacia_fw-la to_o dwell_v in_o all_o man_n by_o participation_n of_o common_a nature_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o one_o whole_a body_n to_o be_v whole_a in_o ten_o thousand_o place_n be_v another_o thing_n cap._n xvii_o saunder_n whether_o christ_n body_n dwell_v in_o our_o body_n by_o faith_n real_o or_o no._n fulke_n the_o question_n shall_v be_v whether_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n in_o some_o sense_n may_v not_o be_v justify_v saunder_n master_n jewel_n phrase_n defend_v joan_n of_o kent_n heresy_n fulke_n if_o he_o have_v say_v the_o virgin_n mary_n conceive_v christ_n by_o faith_n in_o her_o heart_n more_o happy_o then_o carnal_o in_o her_o womb_n in_o affirm_v the_o one_o he_o have_v not_o deny_v the_o other_o and_o yet_o he_o have_v say_v nothing_o but_o the_o truth_n do_v not_o whole_a christ_n dwell_v in_o the_o godly_a by_o faith_n before_o his_o incarnation_n do_v they_o not_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n before_o his_o body_n be_v conceive_v in_o the_o virgin_n womb_n if_o these_o say_n be_v true_a the_o other_o phrase_n according_a to_o this_o sense_n may_v be_v defend_v cap._n xviii_o saunder_n the_o contradiction_n of_o m._n jewel_n concern_v christ_n real_o dwell_v in_o we_o by_o faith_n and_o not_o real_o dwell_v in_o we_o by_o faith_n fulke_n if_o the_o word_n real_o may_v be_v take_v in_o diverse_a sense_n what_o contradiction_n be_v there_o when_o he_o say_v christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o real_o by_o faith_n the_o word_n real_o be_v make_v opposite_a to_o imaginative_o figured_o or_o fantastical_o and_o signify_v christ_n in_o deed_n be_v communicate_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o incarnation_n death_n passion_n resurrection_n etc._n etc._n where_o he_o say_v christ_n be_v not_o real_o and_o fleshly_a place_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n the_o word_n real_o be_v opposite_a to_o faith_n which_o be_v a_o substance_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v hope_v foâ_n which_o be_v not_o actual_o present_a &_o signify_v that_o the_o natural_a substance_n of_o christ_n flesh_n lie_v not_o local_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o heart_n according_a to_o these_o two_o signification_n what_o contradiction_n be_v there_o but_o that_o you_o be_v dispose_v to_o cavil_v cap._n xix_o saunder_n whether_o christ_n dwell_v real_o in_o our_o body_n by_o baptism_n or_o no._n fulke_n this_o saying_n may_v be_v justify_v in_o the_o affirmative_a as_o well_o as_o that_o he_o dwell_v real_o in_o our_o body_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o supper_n the_o diverse_a understanding_n of_o the_o word_n real_o make_v all_o the_o controversy_n in_o this_o matter_n m._n jewel_n take_v it_o in_o one_o sense_n m._n saunder_n in_o another_o not_o ignorant_o mistake_v but_o wilful_o &_o malicious_o
contrary_a to_o i_o own_o rule_n bristol_n say_v i_o conclude_v negative_o out_o of_o the_o place_n 1._o thes._n 4._o s._n paul_n find_v âone_n other_o comfort_n to_o moderate_v the_o mourning_n of_o the_o faithful_a but_o only_o the_o quiet_a rest_n of_o they_o that_o be_v asleep_a in_o the_o lord_n and_z the_o hope_v of_o their_o glorious_a resurrection_n ergo_fw-la there_o be_v no_o comfort_n in_o pray_v for_o their_o soul_n ãâã_d answer_n my_o argument_n be_v apt_a and_o good_a to_o confute_v allen_n which_o cit_v that_o place_n to_o prove_v that_o as_o immoderate_a mourning_n be_v against_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o resurrection_n so_o be_v join_v with_o prayer_n and_o alm_n it_o have_v the_o lively_a hope_n of_o life_n in_o those_o that_o sleep_n in_o peace_n this_o advantage_n bristol_n have_v by_o rend_v and_o tear_v my_o argument_n from_o the_o body_n of_o my_o book_n that_o it_o can_v be_v perceive_v upon_o what_o ground_n i_o use_v they_o nevertheless_o have_v often_o before_o in_o that_o answer_n to_o allen_n protest_v that_o he_o can_v bring_v nothing_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n for_o allow_a prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a this_o argument_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o same_o conclusion_n after_o this_o manner_n if_o in_o most_o convenient_a place_n the_o holy_a ghost_n âoyne_v not_o prayer_n and_o alm_n to_o moderate_a mourning_n for_o the_o depart_v then_o do_v he_o join_v they_o in_o no_o place_n but_o in_o most_o convenient_a place_n he_o join_v not_o ergo_fw-la in_fw-la no_o place_n the_o mayor_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n spirit_n which_o always_o choose_v that_o which_o be_v most_o convenient_a the_o minor_a be_v manifest_a and_o grant_v ergo_fw-la the_o conclusion_n be_v true_a but_o bristol_n ask_v i_o if_o i_o preach_v to_o moderate_v the_o mourning_n of_o the_o faithful_a use_v none_o other_o comfort_n then_o these_o two_o i_o answer_v he_o concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o depart_a i_o use_v none_o other_o proper_a place_n of_o comfort_n but_o these_o two_o the_o hope_n of_o their_o glorious_a resurrection_n &_o their_o quiet_a rest_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n but_o s._n paul_n say_v bristol_n speak_v nothing_o of_o their_o quiet_a rest_n after_o death_n although_o he_o name_v they_o that_o be_v asleep_a in_o the_o lord_n if_o they_o sleep_v in_o the_o lord_n they_o be_v not_o only_o at_o rest_n but_o in_o happiness_n can_v you_o interpret_v to_o sleep_v in_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v in_o hellish_a torment_n such_o as_o you_o feign_v your_o purgatory_n pain_n to_o be_v be_v they_o not_o bless_v which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n the_o prophet_n esay_n say_v cap._n 57_o of_o the_o righteous_a after_o their_o death_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v peace_n they_o shall_v rest_v in_o their_o bed_n ergo_fw-la they_o that_o sleep_v in_o the_o lord_n enjoy_v a_o quiet_a rest_n the_o 2._o argument_n be_v out_o of_o 1._o cor._n 11._o saint_n paul_n reherse_v what_o he_o receive_v and_o deliver_v concern_v the_o sacrament_n but_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a he_o rehearse_v noâ_n ergo_fw-la he_o neither_o receive_v nor_o deliver_v it_o so_o you_o make_v say_v bristol_n as_o though_o the_o apostle_n there_o prescribe_v the_o whole_a order_n of_o ministration_n contrary_a to_o that_o he_o say_v afterward_o of_o set_v other_o thing_n in_o order_n i_o answer_v that_o objection_n be_v avoid_v in_o the_o same_o place_n immediate_o after_o pur._n 362._o &_o therefore_o i_o will_v not_o here_o repete_fw-la the_o answer_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o one_o place_n negative_o you_o yourself_o here_o confess_v that_o i_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v write_v by_o any_o of_o the_o evangelist_n which_o entreat_v of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o you_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o affirm_v that_o the_o apostle_n intend_v no_o more_o in_o that_o place_n but_o to_o correct_v the_o sin_n of_o unworthy_a receive_n upon_o coulot_n of_o a_o place_n of_o augustine_n ep._n ad_fw-la jan._n 118._o cap._n 3._o ind_n enim_fw-la for_o that_o respect_n the_o apostle_n also_o say_v that_o they_o receive_v it_o unworthy_o who_o do_v not_o by_o a_o reverence_n singular_o dew_n discern_v it_o from_o other_o meat_n as_o sufficient_o appear_v through_o that_o same_o whole_a place_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n if_o it_o be_v diligent_o consider_v do_v augustine_n say_v or_o can_v any_o man_n prove_v out_o of_o his_o say_n that_o he_o mean_v that_o s._n paul_n intend_v no_o more_o but_o to_o correct_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o unworthy_a receive_n but_o admit_v it_o be_v so_o how_o can_v he_o better_o correct_v that_o sin_n then_o by_o show_v the_o whole_a institution_n substantial_a matter_n and_o form_n end_n and_o use_v of_o that_o sacrament_n and_o so_o he_o do_v although_o ceremony_n and_o external_a observation_n about_o it_o he_o do_v not_o express_v the_o three_o argument_n be_v out_o of_o leu._n 21._o and_o numer_n 19_o which_o prescribe_v what_o law_n be_v appoint_v for_o lament_v the_o dead_a and_o diverse_a other_o ordinance_n concern_v the_o dead_a in_o which_o be_v no_o sacrifice_n or_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v offer_v but_o that_o they_o be_v so_o separate_v from_o the_o live_n that_o the_o priest_n may_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o they_o but_o in_o special_a case_n bristol_n say_v i_o may_v as_o well_o conclude_v that_o the_o dead_a shall_v not_o be_v bury_v in_o âeede_o so_o to_o conclude_v be_v to_o conclude_v of_o one_o place_n negative_o but_o i_o presuppose_v my_o former_a assertion_n that_o ân_v no_o place_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v mention_v prayer_n or_o offering_n for_o the_o dead_a no_o not_o in_o those_o which_o contain_v special_a order_n for_o the_o dead_a i_o add_v further_o that_o the_o âriest_n to_o who_o special_o offer_v of_o sacrifice_n pertain_v âs_v so_o separate_v from_o the_o dead_a that_o he_o be_v forbid_v to_o âourne_v for_o they_o much_o more_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o they_o âr_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o which_o can_v not_o be_v without_o lamentation_n for_o their_o miserable_a estate_n etc._n etc._n from_o these_o particular_a place_n i_o come_v to_o the_o whole_a âawe_n and_o conclude_v negative_o thus_o all_o lawful_a sacrifice_n be_v prescribe_v by_o the_o law_n sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a âas_v not_o prescribe_v by_o the_o law_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o lawful_a sacrifice_n the_o answer_n he_o say_v be_v by_o return_v it_o âppon_o myself_o but_o in_o deed_n he_o make_v it_o by_o deny_v âhe_v minor_a affirm_v that_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v prescribe_v under_o the_o name_n of_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n i_o may_v âere_z reply_n out_o of_o your_o own_o doctrine_n that_o not_o the_o guiltiness_n but_o the_o pain_n of_o sin_n be_v in_o many_o to_o be_v purâed_v which_o have_v obtain_v remission_n of_o all_o their_o sin_n âither_o by_o pope_n pardon_n or_o priest_n absolution_n or_o by_o âods_n forgiveness_n unto_o the_o penitent_a but_o i_o will_v follow_v the_o argument_n i_o show_v that_o the_o form_n of_o sacrifice_n âas_v such_o as_o can_v not_o be_v offer_v but_o of_o the_o live_n or_o âor_a the_o live_n because_o they_o be_v command_v in_o all_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n general_o to_o lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n to_o be_v sacrifice_v hereunto_o bristol_n repli_v that_o this_o gross_a absurdity_n will_v follow_v that_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n can_v not_o be_v offer_v but_o of_o they_o that_o be_v present_a therefore_o not_o for_o the_o child_n the_o sick_a âor_a captive_n for_o king_n and_o city_n of_o the_o world_n uncircumcised_a and_o diverse_a other_o sort_n i_o reioygne_n that_o no_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n but_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n or_o prospeâities_n can_v be_v offer_v for_o the_o absent_a and_o especial_o for_o the_o uncircumcised_a which_o can_v not_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n before_o they_o be_v ingraff_v into_o the_o people_n of_o god_n but_o temporal_a benefit_n at_o the_o prayer_n of_o god_n people_n they_o may_v obtain_v as_o for_o child_n sick_a captive_n etc._n etc._n they_o may_v have_v remission_n of_o sin_n without_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v but_o the_o sacrament_n thereof_o as_o well_o in_o their_o childhood_n sickness_n captivity_n when_o they_o can_v not_o offer_v according_a to_o the_o law_n as_o in_o time_n of_o desolation_n and_o destruction_n of_o the_o temple_n when_o no_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n can_v be_v offer_v by_o any_o or_o for_o any_o but_o only_o in_o the_o place_n where_o the_o tabernacle_n or_o temple_n be_v wherefore_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o judas_n machabaeus_n wheresoever_o he_o learn_v it_o have_v no_o warrant_n iâ_n the_o law_n the_o four_o argument_n of_o the_o whole_a scripture_n negative_o to_o conclude_v i_o say_v it_o be_v good_a logic_n after_o this_o manner_n